Searchable Theosophical Texts
Theosophy House

THE HIDDEN SIDE 
OF THINGS
BY
C 
The Secret Doctrine by H P Blavatsky
Return to Searchable Text Index
 
1948 
THE
THEOSOPHICAL PUBLISHING HOUSE 
A DYAR, 
First Edition
1913 
Second ” 1919
Third ” 1923 
Fourth ” 1948
FOREWORD 
THIS book has
been in contemplation, and even in process of construction, for 
the last ten
or twelve years, but only now has it been found possible to publish 
it. It has
lost nothing by the delay, for a student of the occult never ceases 
to learn, and
I know a good deal more in various ways now than I did twelve 
years ago,
even though I see still more clearly than ever what an infinity of 
further
knowledge stretches before us for our acquiring. 
Much of what
is written here has appeared in the form of articles in The 
Theosophist
and elsewhere ; but all has been revised, and considerable additions 
have been
made. I trust that it may help some brothers to realise the importance 
of that far
larger part of life which is beyond our physical sight -- to 
understand
that, as the Lord Buddha Himself has taught us: 
The unseen
things are more. 
C. W.
LEADBEATER 
CONTENTS 
FIRST SECTION
INTRODUCTORY 
PAGE 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER I 
OCCULTISM 3 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER II 
THE WORLD AS
A WHOLE 
A Wider
Outlook. The Fourth Dimension. The Higher World. 
The Purpose
of Life 14 
SECOND
SECTION 
HOW WE ARE
INFLUENCED 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER III 
BY PLANETS 
Radiations.
The Deity of the Solar System. Different Types of Matter. 
The Living
Centres. Their Influence. 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER IV 
BY THE SUN 
The Heat of
the Sun. The Willow-Leaves. Vitality. The Vitality Globule. 
The
Absorption of Vitality. Vitality and Health. Vitality not Magnetism 44 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER V 
BY NATURAL
SURROUNDINGS 
The Weather.
Rocks. Trees. The Seven Types. Animals. Human Beings. Travel 64 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER VI 
BY
NATURE-SPIRITS 
An Evolution
Apart. Lines of Evolution. Overlapping. Fairies. National Types. 
On a Sacred
Mountain in 
Romances of
Fairyland. Their Attitude towards 
Friendship.
Water-Spirits. Freshwater Fairies. Sylphs. Their Amusements. 
An Abnormal
Development. The Advantages of Studying Them 84 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER VII 
BY CENTRES OF
MAGNETISM 
Our Great
Cathedrals. 
Buildings.
Cemeteries. Universities and Schools. Libraries, Museums and 
Galleries.
The Stock-yards of 
Rivers 125 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER VIII 
BY CEREMONIES
The
Hierarchy. The Three Paths. Christian Magic. The 
Anglican
Church. The Music. The Thought-Forms. The Effect of Devotion. Holy 
Water.
Baptism. Union is Strength. Consecration. The Bells. Incense. Services 
for the Dead.
Other Religions. The Orders of the Clergy 154 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER IX 
BY SOUNDS 
Sound, Colour
and Form. Religious Music. Singing. Military Music. Sounds 
in Nature. In
Domestic Life. Noises 195 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER X 
BY PUBLIC
OPINION 
Race
Prejudice. Popular Prejudice. Political Prejudice. Government. Religious 
Prejudice.
Class Prejudice. Public Standards. Caste Prejudice. The Duty of 
Freedom.
Business Methods. The Results of Deceit. Prejudice against Persons. 
The Influence
of Friends. Popular Superstitions. The Fear of Gossip. A Better 
Aspect 211 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XI 
BY OCCASIONAL
EVENTS 
A Funeral.
The Disposal of the Dead Body. A Surgical Operation. A 
Lecture. A
Political Meeting. Crowds. A Séance. A Religious Revival. A 
Wave of
Patriotism. War Catastrophes 240 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XII 
BY UNSEEN
BEINGS 
Sensitive
People. A Remarkable Case. The Vision Investigated. Writing a Book 284 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XIII 
OUR ATTITUDE
TOWARDS THESE 
INFLUENCES 
Protective
Shells. The Etheric Shell. Shields. A Warning. The Astral Shell. 
The Mental
Shell. The Best Use of a Shell. A Beautiful Story. The 
THIRD SECTION
HOW WE
INFLUENCE OURSELVES 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XIV 
BY OUR HABITS
Food.
Intoxicating Liquors. Flesh-Eating. Smoking. Drugs. Cleanliness. 
Occult
Hygiene. Physical Exercise. 
Thoroughness.
Novel and Newspaper-Reading. Speech. Meditation 355 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XV 
BY PHYSICAL
ENVIRONMENT 
Houses.
Streets. Pictures. Curiosities. Books. Furnishing. Jewellery. Talismans. 
Things We
Carry About. Money. Clothing 390 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XVI 
BY MENTAL
CONDITIONS 
Thought-forms.
Moods. Recurrent Thoughts. Falling in Love. Unset Blossom. 
Occultism and
Marriage. Changes in Consciousness 422 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XVII 
BY OUR
AMUSEMENTS 
Children's
Games. Sport. Fishing. Horse. Racing. Gambling. The Theatre 438 
FOURTH
SECTION 
HOW WE
INFLUENCE OTHERS 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XVIII 
BY WHAT WE
ARE 
The
Interrelation of Men. The Duty of Happiness Peace 453 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XIX 
BY WHAT WE
THINK 
The Realm of
Thought. The Effects of Thought. The Thought-Wave. The 
Thought-Form.
What We can do by Thought. The Responsibility of Thought 471 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XX 
BY WHAT WE DO
Work for the
Poor. The Force of the Master. The Manufacture of Talismans. 
Varieties of
Talismans. Demagnetisation. Do Little Things Well. Writing a 
Letter. Work
during Sleep 501 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XXI 
BY COLLECTIVE
THOUGHT 
Church Hymns
and Rituals. Congregations. Monasteries. Effect upon the 
Dead. Saving
Souls. People who Dislike Ceremonies. Theosophical Meetings 531 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XXII 
BY OUR
RELATION TO CHILDREN 
The Duty of
Parents. The Plasticity of Childhood. The Influence of Parents. 
The Aura of a
Child. Carelessness of Parents. The Necessity for Love. 
Religious
Training. Physical Training 552 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XXIII 
BY OUR
RELATION TO LOWER KINGDOMS 
Domestic
Animals. Birds. Plants. Nature-Spirits. Inanimate Surroundings. A 
Ship.
Machines. Unlucky Ships. Stone used in Building. Sea-Sickness 584 
FIFTH SECTION
CONCLUSION 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XXIV 
THE RESULTS
OF THE KNOWLEDGE 
A Summary.
The Future 605 
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XXV 
THE WAY TO
SEERSHIP 615 
FIRST SECTION
INTRODUCTORY 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER I 
OCCULTISM 
THE term `
occultism' is one which has been much misunderstood. In the mind of 
the ignorant
it was, even recently, synonymous with magic, and its students were 
supposed to
be practitioners of the black art, veiled in flowing robes of 
scarlet
covered with cabalistic signs, sitting amidst uncanny surroundings with 
a black cat
as a familiar, compounding unholy decoctions by the aid of satanic 
evocations. 
Even now, and
among those whom education has raised above such superstition as 
this, there
still remains a good deal of misapprehension. For them its 
derivation
from the Latin word occultus ought to explain at once that it is the 
science of
the hidden; but they often regard it contemptuously as nonsensical 
and
unpractical, as connected with dreams and fortune-telling, with hysteria and 
necromancy,
with the search for the elixir of life and the philosopher' s stone. 
Students, who
should know better, perpetually speak as though the hidden side of 
things were
intentionally concealed, as though knowledge with regard to it ought 
to be in the
hands of all men, but was being deliberately withheld by the 
caprice or
selfishness of a few; whereas the fact is that nothing is or can be 
hidden from
us except by our own limitations, and that for every man as he 
evolves the
world grows wider and wider, because he is able to see more and more 
of its
grandeur and its loveliness. 
As an
objection against this statement may be cited the well-known fact that, at 
each of the
great Initiations which mark the advance of the neophyte along the 
path of the
higher progress, a definite new block of knowledge is given to him. 
That is quite
true, but the knowledge can be given only because the recipient 
has evolved
to the point at which he can grasp it. It is no more being withheld 
from ordinary
humanity than the knowledge of conic sections is being withheld 
from the
child who is still struggling with the multiplication-table. When that 
child reaches
the level at which he can comprehend quadratic equations, the 
teacher is
ready to explain to him the rules which govern them. In exactly the 
same way,
when a man has qualified himself for the reception of the information 
given at a
certain Initiation, he is forthwith initiated. But the only way to 
attain the
capacity to imbibe that higher knowledge is to begin by trying to 
understand
our present conditions, and to order our lives intelligently in view 
of the facts
which we find. 
Occultism,
then, is the study of the hidden side of nature; or rather, it is the 
study of the
whole of nature, instead of only that small part of it which comes 
under the
investigation of modern science. At the present stage of our 
development,
by far the greater part of nature is entirely unknown to the 
majority of
mankind, because they have as yet unfolded only a minute proportion 
of the
faculties which they possess. The ordinary man, therefore, is basing his 
philosophy
(so far as he has any) upon entirely inadequate grounds; his actions 
are moulded
more or less in accordance with the few laws of nature which he 
knows, and
consequently both his theory of life and his daily practice are 
necessarily
inaccurate. The occultist adopts a far more comprehensive view; he 
takes into
account those forces of the higher worlds whose action is hidden from 
the
materialist, and so he moulds his life in obedience to the entire code of 
Nature' s
laws, instead of only by occasional reference to a minute fragment of 
it. 
It is
difficult for the man who knows nothing of the occult to realise how 
great, how
serious and how all-pervading are his own limitations. The only way 
in which we
can adequately symbolise them is to suppose some form of 
consciousness
still more limited than our own, and to think in what directions 
it would
differ from ours. Suppose it were possible that a consciousness could 
exist capable
of appreciating only solid matter-- the liquid and gaseous forms 
of matter
being to it as entirely non-existent as are the etheric and astral and 
mental forms
to the ordinary man. We can readily see how for such a 
consciousness
any adequate conception of the world in which we live would be 
impossible.
Solid matter, which alone could be perceived by it, would constantly 
be found to
be undergoing serious modifications, about which no rational theory 
could be
formed. 
For example,
whenever a shower of rain took place, the solid matter of the earth 
would undergo
change; it would in many cases become both softer and heavier when 
charged with
moisture, but the reason of such a change would necessarily be 
wholly
incomprehensible to the consciousness which we are supposing. The wind 
might lift
clouds of sand and transfer them from one place to another; but such 
motion of
solid matter would be entirely inexplicable to one who had no 
conception of
the existence of the air. Without considering more examples of 
what is
already so obvious, we see clearly how hopelessly inadequate would be 
such an idea
of the world as would be attainable by this consciousness limited 
to solid
matter. What we do not realise so readily, however, is that our present 
consciousness
falls just as far short of that of the developed man as this 
supposed
consciousness would fall short of that which we now possess. 
Theosophical
students are at least theoretically acquainted with the idea that 
to everything
there is a hidden side; and they also know that in the great 
majority of
cases this unseen side is of far greater importance than that which 
is visible to
the physical eye. 
To put the
same idea from another point of view, the senses, by means of which 
we obtain all
our information about external objects, are as yet imperfectly 
developed;
therefore the information obtained is partial. What we see in the 
world about
us is by no means all that there is to see, and a man who will take 
the trouble
to cultivate his senses will find that, in proportion as he 
succeeds,
life will become fuller and richer for him. For the lover of nature, 
of art, of
music, a vast field of incredibly intensified and exalted pleasure 
lies close at
hand, if he will fit himself to enter upon it. Above all, for the 
lover of his
fellow-man there is the possibility of far more intimate 
comprehension
and therefore far wider usefulness. 
We are only
halfway up the ladder of evolution at present, and so our senses are 
only
half-evolved. But it is possible for us to hurry up that ladder-- possible, 
by hard work,
to make our senses now what all men' s senses will be in the 
distant
future. The man who has succeeded in doing this is often called a seer 
or a
clairvoyant. 
A fine word
that-- clairvoyant. It means ` one who sees clearly' ; but it has 
been horribly
misused and degraded, so that people associate it with all sorts 
of trickery
and imposture-- with gypsies who for sixpence will tell a 
maid-servant
what is the colour of the hair of the duke who is coming to marry 
her, or with
establishments in Bond Street where for a guinea fee the veil of 
the future is
supposed to be lifted for more aristocratic clients. 
All this is
irregular and unscientific; in many cases it is mere charlatanry and 
bare-faced
robbery. But not always; to foresee the future up to a certain point 
is a
possibility; it can be done, and it has been done, scores of times; and 
some of these
irregular practitioners unquestionably do at times possess flashes 
of higher
vision, though usually they cannot depend upon having them when they 
want them. 
But behind
all this vagueness there is a bed-rock of fact-- something which can 
be approached
rationally and studied scientifically. It is as the result of many 
years of such
study and experiment that I state emphatically what I have written 
above-- that
it is possible for men to develop their senses until they can see 
much more of
this wonderful and beautiful world in which we live than is ever 
suspected by
the untrained average man, who lives contentedly in the midst of 
Cimmerean
darkness and calls it light. 
Two thousand
and five hundred years ago the greatest of Indian teachers, Gautama 
the BUDDHA,
said to His disciples: ` Do not complain and cry and pray, but open 
your eyes and
see. The truth is all about you, if you will only take the bandage 
from your
eyes and look; and it is so wonderful, so beautiful, so far beyond 
anything that
men have ever dreamt of or prayed for, and it is for ever and for 
ever.' 
He assuredly
meant far more than this of which I am writing now, but this is a 
step on the
way towards that glorious goal of perfect realisation. If it does 
not yet tell
us quite all the truth, at any rate it gives us a good deal of it. 
It removes
for us a host of common misconceptions, and clears up for us many 
points which
are considered as mysteries or problems by those who are as yet 
uninstructed
in this lore. It shows that all these things were mysteries and 
problems to
us only because heretofore we saw so small a part of the facts, 
because we
were looking at the various matters from below, and as isolated and 
unconnected
fragments, instead of rising above them to a standpoint whence they 
are
comprehensible as parts of a mighty whole. It settles in a moment many 
questions
which have been much disputed-- such, for example, as that of the 
continued
existence of man after death. It explains many of the strange things 
which the
Churches tell us; it dispels our ignorance and removes our fear of the 
unknown by
supplying us with a rational and orderly scheme. 
Besides all
this, it opens up a new world to us in regard to our every-day 
life-- a new
world which is yet a part of the old. It shows us that, as I began 
by saying,
there is a hidden side to everything, and that our most ordinary 
actions often
produce results of which without this study we should never have 
known. By it
we understand the rationale of what is commonly called telepathy, 
for we see
that just as there are waves of heat or light or electricity, so 
there are
waves produced by thought, though they are in a finer type of matter 
than the
others, and therefore not perceptible to our physical senses. By 
studying
these vibrations we see how thought acts, and we learn that it is a 
tremendous
power for good or for ill-- a power which we are all of us 
unconsciously
wielding to some extent-- which we can use a hundredfold more 
effectively
when we comprehend its workings. Further investigation reveals to us 
the method of
formation of what are called ` thought-forms,' and indicates how 
these can be
usefully employed both for ourselves and for others in a dozen 
different
ways. 
The occultist
studies carefully all these unseen effects, and consequently knows 
much more
fully than other men the result of what he is doing. He has more 
information
about life than others have, and he exercises his common-sense by 
modifying his
life in accordance with what he knows. In many ways we live 
differently
now from our forefathers in mediaeval times, because we know more 
than they
did. We have discovered certain laws of hygiene; wise men live 
according to
that knowledge, and therefore the average length of life is 
decidedly
greater now than it was in the Middle Ages. There are still some who 
are foolish
or ignorant, who either do not know the laws of health or are 
careless
about keeping them; they think that because disease-germs are invisible 
to them, they
are therefore of no importance; they don't believe in new ideas. 
Those are the
people who suffer first when an epidemic disease arrives, or some 
unusual
strain is put upon the community. They suffer unnecessarily, because 
they are
behind the times. But they injure not only themselves by their neglect; 
the
conditions caused by their ignorance or carelessness often bring infection 
into a
district which might otherwise be free from it. 
The matter of
which I am writing is precisely the same thing at a different 
level. The
microscope revealed disease-germs; the intelligent man profited by 
the
discovery, and rearranged his life, while the unintelligent man paid no 
attention,
but went on as before. Clairvoyance reveals thought-force and many 
other
previously unsuspected powers; once more the intelligent man profits by 
this
discovery, and rearranges his life accordingly. Once more also the 
unintelligent
man takes no heed of the new discoveries; once more he thinks that 
what he
cannot see can have no importance for him; once more he continues to 
suffer quite
unnecessarily, because he is behind the times. 
Not only does
he often suffer positive pain, but he also misses so much of the 
pleasure of
life. To painting, to music, to poetry, to literature, to religious 
ceremonies,
to the beauties of nature there is always a hidden side-- a fulness, 
a completeness
beyond the mere physical; and the man who can see or sense this 
has at his
command a wealth of enjoyment far beyond the comprehension of the man 
who passes
through it all with unopened perceptions. 
The
perceptions exist in every human being, though as yet undeveloped in most. 
To unfold
them means generally a good deal of time and hard work, but it is 
exceedingly
well worth while. Only let no man undertake the effort unless his 
motives are
absolutely pure and unselfish, for he who seeks wider faculty for 
any but the
most exalted purposes will bring upon himself a curse and not a 
blessing. 
But the man
of affairs, who has no time to spare for a sustained effort to 
evolve
nascent powers within himself, is not thereby debarred from sharing in 
some at least
of the benefits derived from occult study, any more than the man 
who possesses
no microscope is thereby prevented from living hygienically. The 
latter has
not seen the disease-germs, but from the testimony of the specialist 
he knows that
they exist, and he knows how to guard himself from them. Just in 
the same way
a man who has as yet no dawning of clairvoyant vision may study the 
writings of
those who have gained it, and in this way profit by the results of 
their labour.
True, he cannot yet see all the glory and the beauty which are 
hidden from
us by the imperfection of our senses; but he can readily learn how 
to avoid the
unseen evil, and how to set in motion the unseen forces of good. 
So, long
before he actually sees them, he can conclusively prove to himself 
their
existence, just as the man who drives an electric motor proves to himself 
the existence
of electricity, though he has never seen it and does not in the 
least know
what it is. 
We must try
to understand as much as we can of the world in which we live. We 
must not fall
behind in the march of evolution, we must not let ourselves be 
anachronisms,
for lack of interest in these new discoveries, which yet are only 
the presentation
from a new point of view of the most archaic wisdom. “Knowledge 
is power” in
this case as in every other; in this case, as in every other, to 
secure the
best results, the glorious trinity of power, wisdom and love must 
ever go hand
in hand. 
There is a
difference, however, between theoretical acquaintance and actual 
realisation;
and I have thought that it might help students somewhat towards the 
grasp of the
realities to have a description of the unseen side of some of the 
simple
transactions of every day life as they appear to clairvoyant vision-- to 
one, let us
say, who has developed within himself the power of perception 
through the
astral, mental and causal bodies. Their appearance as seen by means 
of the
intuitional vehicle is infinitely grander and more effective still, but 
so entirely
inexpressible that it seems useless to say anything about it; for on 
that level
all experience is within the man instead of without, and the glory 
and the
beauty of it is no longer something which he watches with interest, but 
something
which he feels in his inmost heart, because it is part of himself. 
The object of
this book is to give some hints as to the inner side of the world 
as a whole
and of our daily life. We shall consider this latter in three 
divisions,
which will resemble the conjugations of our youthful days in being 
passive,
middle and active respectively-- how we are influenced, how we 
influence
ourselves, and how we influence others; and we shall conclude by 
observing a
few of the results which must inevitably flow from a wider diffusion 
of this
knowledge as to the realities of existence. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER II 
THE WORLD AS
A WHOLE 
A WIDER
OUTLOOK 
WHEN we look
upon the world around us, we cannot hide from ourselves the 
existence of
a vast amount of sorrow and suffering. True, much of it is 
obviously the
fault of the sufferers, and might easily be avoided by the 
exercise of a
little self-control and common-sense; but there is also much which 
is not
immediately self-induced, but undoubtedly comes from without. It often 
seems as
though evil triumphs, as though justice fails in the midst of the storm 
and stress of
the roaring confusion of life, and because of this many despair of 
the ultimate
result, and doubt whether there is in truth any plan of definite 
progress
behind all this bewildering chaos. 
It is all a
question of the point of view; the man who is himself in the thick 
of the fight
cannot judge of the plan of the general or the progress of the 
conflict. To
understand the battle as a whole, one must withdraw from the tumult 
and look down
upon the field from above. In exactly the same way, to comprehend 
the plan of
the battle of life we must withdraw ourselves from it for the time, 
and in
thought look down upon it from above-- from the point of view not of the 
body which
perishes but of the soul which lives for ever. We must take into 
account not
only the small part of life which our physical eyes can see, but the 
vast totality
of which at present so much is invisible to us. 
Until that
has been done we are in the position of a man looking from beneath at 
the under
side of some huge piece of elaborate tapestry which is in process of 
being woven.
The whole thing is to us but a confused medley of varied colour, of 
ragged
hanging ends, without order or beauty, and we are unable to conceive what 
all this mad
clatter of machinery can be doing; but when through our knowledge 
of the hidden
side of nature we are able to look down from above, the pattern 
begins to
unfold itself before our eyes, and the apparent chaos shows itself as 
orderly
progress. 
A more
forcible analogy may be obtained by contemplating in imagination the view 
of life which
would present itself to some tiny microbe whirled down by a 
resistless
flood, such as that which rushes through the gorge of Niagara. 
Boiling,
foaming, swirling, the force of that stream is so tremendous that its 
centre is
many feet higher than its sides. The microbe on the surface of such a 
torrent must
be dashed hither and thither wildly amidst the foam, sometimes 
thrown high
in air, sometimes whirled backwards in an eddy, unable to see the 
banks between
which he is passing, having every sense occupied in the mad 
struggle to
keep himself somehow above water. To him that strife and stress is 
all the world
of which he knows; how can he tell whither the stream is going? 
But the man
who stands on the bank, looking down on it all, can see that all 
this
bewildering tumult is merely superficial, and that the one fact of real 
importance is
the steady onward sweep of those millions of tons of water 
downwards
towards the sea. If we can furthermore suppose the microbe to have 
some idea of
progress, and to identify it with forward motion, he might well be 
dismayed when
he found himself hurled aside or borne backwards by an eddy; while 
the spectator
could see that the apparent backward movement was but a delusion, 
since even
the little eddies were all being swept onwards with the rest. It is 
no
exaggeration to say that as is the knowledge of the microbe struggling in the 
stream to
that of the man looking down upon it, so is the comprehension of life 
possessed by
the man in the world to that of one who knows its hidden side. 
Best of all,
though not so easy to follow because of the effort of imagination 
involved, is
the parable offered to us by Mr. Hinton in his Scientific Romances. 
For purposes
connected with his argument Mr. Hinton supposes the construction of 
a large
vertical wooden frame, from top to bottom of which are tightly stretched 
a multitude
of threads at all sorts of angles. If then a sheet of paper be 
inserted
horizontally in the frame so that these threads pass through it, it is 
obvious that
each thread will make a minute hole in the paper. If then the frame 
as a whole be
moved slowly upwards, but the paper kept still, various effects 
will be
produced. When a thread is perpendicular it will slip through its hole 
without
difficulty, but when a thread is fixed at an angle it will cut a slit in 
the paper as
the frame moves. 
Suppose instead
of a sheet of paper we have a thin sheet of wax, and let the wax 
be
sufficiently viscous to close up behind the moving thread. Then instead of a 
number of
slits we shall have a number of moving holes, and to a sight which 
cannot see
the threads that cause them, the movement of these holes will 
necessarily
appear irregular and inexplicable. Some will approach one another, 
some will
recede; various patterns and combinations will be formed and dissolve; 
all depending
upon the arrangement of the invisible threads. Now, by a still 
more daring
flight of fancy, think not of the holes but of the minute sections 
of thread for
the moment filling them, and imagine those sections as conscious 
atoms. They
think of themselves as separate entities, they find themselves 
moving
without their own volition in what seems a maze of inextricable 
confusion,
and this bewildering dance is life as they know it. Yet all this 
apparent
complexity and aimless motion is in fact a delusion caused by the 
limitation of
the consciousness of those atoms, for only one extremely simple 
movement is
really taking place-- the steady upward motion of the frame as a 
whole. But
the atom can never comprehend that until it realises that it is not a 
separated
fragment, but part of a thread. 
` Which
things are an allegory,' and a very beautiful one; for the threads are 
ourselves--
our true selves, our souls-- and the atoms represent us in this 
earthly life.
So long as we confine our consciousness to the atom, and look on 
life only
from this earthly standpoint, we can never understand what is 
happening in
the world. But if we will raise our consciousness to the point of 
view of the
soul, the thread of which the bodily life is only a minute part and 
a temporary
expression, we shall then see that there is a splendid simplicity at 
the back of
all the complexity, a unity behind all the diversity. The complexity 
and the
diversity are illusions produced by our limitations; the simplicity and 
the unity are
real. 
The world in
which we live has a hidden side to it, for the conception of it in 
the mind of
the ordinary man in the street is utterly imperfect along three 
quite
distinct lines. First, it has an extension at its own level which he is at 
present quite
incapable of appreciating; secondly, it has a higher side which is 
too refined
for his undeveloped perceptions; thirdly, it has a meaning and a 
purpose of
which he usually has not the faintest glimpse. To say that we do not 
see the whole
of our world is to state the case far too feebly; what we see is 
an absolutely
insignificant part of it, beautiful though that part may be. And 
just as the
additional extension is infinite compared to our idea of space, and 
cannot be
expressed in its terms, so are the scope and the splendour of the 
whole
infinitely greater than any conception that can possibly be formed of it 
here, and
they cannot be expressed in any terms of that part of the world which 
we know. 
THE FOURTH
DIMENSION 
The extension
spoken of under the first head has often been called the fourth 
dimension.
Many writers have scoffed at this and denied its existence, yet for 
all that it
remains a fact that our physical world is in truth a world of many 
dimensions,
and that every object in it has an extension, however minute, in a 
direction
which is unthinkable to us at our present stage of mental evolution. 
When we
develop astral senses we are brought so much more directly into contact 
with this
extension that our minds are more or less forced into recognition of 
it, and the
more intelligent gradually grow to understand it; though there are 
those of less
intellectual growth who, even after death and in the astral world, 
cling
desperately to their accustomed limitations and adopt most extraordinary 
and
irrational hypotheses to avoid admitting the existence of the higher life 
which they so
greatly fear. 
Because the
easiest way for most people to arrive at a realisation of the fourth 
dimension of
space is to develop within themselves the power of astral sight, 
many persons
have come to suppose that the fourth dimension is an exclusive 
appanage of
the astral world. A little thought will show that this cannot be so. 
Fundamentally
there is only one kind of matter existing in the universe, 
although we
call it physical, astral or mental according to the extent of its 
subdivision
and the rapidity of its vibration. Consequently the dimensions of 
space-- if
they exist at all-- exist independently of the matter which lies 
within them;
and whether that space has three dimensions or four or more, all 
the matter
within it exists subject to those conditions, whether we are able to 
appreciate
them or not. 
It may
perhaps help us a little in trying to understand this matter if we 
realise that
what we call space is a limitation of consciousness, and that there 
is a higher
level at which a sufficiently developed consciousness is entirely 
free from
this. We may invest this higher consciousness with the power of 
expression in
any number of directions, and may then assume that each descent 
into a denser
world of matter imposes upon it an additional limitation, and 
shuts off the
perception of one of these directions. We may suppose that by the 
time the
consciousness has descended as far as the mental world only five of 
these
directions remain to it; that when it descends or moves outward once more 
to the astral
level it loses yet one more of its powers, and so is limited to 
the
conception of four dimensions; then the further descent or outward movement 
which brings
it into the physical world cuts off from it the possibility of 
grasping even
that fourth dimension, and so we find ourselves confined to the 
three with
which we are familiar. 
Looking at it
from this point of view, it is clear that the conditions of the 
universe have
remained unaffected, though our power of appreciating them has 
changed; so
that, although it is true that when our consciousness is functioning 
through
astral matter we are able to appreciate a fourth dimension which 
normally is
hidden from us while we work through the physical brain, we must not 
therefore
make the mistake of thinking that the fourth dimension belongs to the 
astral world
only and that physical matter exists somehow in a different kind of 
space from
the astral or mental. Such a suggestion is shown to be unjustified by 
the fact that
it is possible for a man using his physical brain to attain by 
means of
practice the power of comprehending some of the four-dimensional forms. 
I do not wish
here to take up fully the consideration of this fascinating 
subject;
those who would follow it further should apply themselves to the works 
of Mr. C. H.
Hinton-- Scientific Romances and The Fourth Dimension -- the former 
book for all
the interesting possibilities connected with this study, and the 
latter for
the means whereby the mind can realise the fourth dimension as a 
fact. For our
present purposes it is necessary only to indicate that here is an 
aspect or
extension of our world which, though utterly unknown to the vast 
majority of
men, requires to be studied and to be taken into consideration by 
those who
wish to understand the whole of life instead of only a tiny fragment 
of it. 
THE HIGHER
WORLD 
There is a
hidden side to our physical world in a second and higher sense which 
is well known
to all students of Theosophy, for many lectures have been 
delivered and
many books have been written in the endeavour to describe the 
astral and
mental worlds-- the unseen realm which interpenetrates that with 
which we are
all familiar, and forms by far the most important part of it. A 
good deal of
information about this higher aspect of our world has been given in 
the fifth and
the sixth of the Theosophical manuals, and in my own book upon The 
Other Side of
Death; so here I need do no more than make a short general 
statement for
the benefit of any reader who has not yet met with those works. 
Modern
physicists tell us that matter is interpenetrated by aether-- a 
hypothetical
substance which they endow with many apparently contradictory 
qualities.
The occultist knows that there are many varieties of this finer 
interpenetrative
matter, and that some of the qualities attributed to it by the 
scientific
men belong not to it at all, but to the primordial substance of which 
it is the
negation. I do not wish here to turn aside from the object of this 
book to give
a lengthy disquisition upon the qualities of aether; those who wish 
to study this
subject may be referred to the book upon Occult Chemistry , p. 93 
. Here it
must suffice to say that the true aether of space exists, just as 
scientific
men have supposed, and possesses most of the curious contradictory 
qualities ascribed
to it. It is not, however, of that aether itself, but of 
matter built
up out of the bubbles in it, that the inner worlds of finer matter 
are built, of
which we have spoken just now. That with which we are concerned at 
the moment is
the fact that all the matter visible to us is interpenetrated not 
only by
aether, but also by various kinds of finer matter, and that of this 
finer matter
there are many degrees. 
To the type
which is nearest to the physical world occult students have given 
the name
astral matter; the kind next above that has been called mental, because 
out of its
texture is built that mechanism of consciousness which is commonly 
called the
mind in man; and there are other types finer still, with which for 
the moment we
are not concerned. Every portion of space with which we have to do 
must be
thought of as containing all these different kinds of matter. It is 
practically a
scientific postulate that even in the densest forms of matter no 
two particles
ever touch one another, but each floats alone in its field of 
aether, like
a sun in space. Just in the same way each particle of the physical 
aether floats
in a sea of astral matter, and each astral particle in turn floats 
in a mental
ocean; so that all these additional worlds need no more space than 
does this
fragment which we know, for in truth they are all parts of one and the 
same world. 
Man has
within himself matter of these finer grades, and by learning to focus 
his
consciousness in it, instead of only in his physical brain, he may become 
cognisant of
these inner and higher parts of the world, and acquire much 
knowledge of
the deepest interest and value. The nature of this unseen world, 
its scenery,
its inhabitants, its possibilities, are described in the works 
above
mentioned. It is the existence of these higher realms of nature that makes 
occultism
possible; and few indeed are the departments of life in which their 
influence has
not to be considered. From the cradle to the grave we are in close 
relation with
them during what we call our waking life; during sleep and after 
we are even
more intimately connected with them, for our existence is then 
almost
confined to them. 
Perhaps the
greatest of the many fundamental changes which are inevitable for 
the man who
studies the facts of life is that which is produced in his attitude 
towards
death. This matter has been fully treated elsewhere; here I need state 
only that the
knowledge of the truth about death robs it of all its terror and 
much of its
sorrow, and enables us to see it in its true proportion and to 
understand
its place in the scheme of our evolution. It is perfectly possible to 
learn to know
about all these things instead of accepting beliefs blindly at 
secondhand,
as most people do; and knowledge means power, security and 
happiness. 
THE PURPOSE
OF LIFE 
The third
aspect of our world which is hidden from the majority is the plan and 
purpose of
existence. Most men seem to muddle through life without any 
discernible
object, except possibly the purely physical struggle to make money 
or attain
power, because they vaguely think that these things will bring them 
happiness.
They have no definite theory as to why they are here, nor any 
certainty as
to the future that awaits them. They have not even realised that 
they are
souls and not bodies, and that as such their development is part of a 
mighty scheme
of cosmic evolution. 
When once
this grandest of truths has dawned upon a man' s horizon there comes 
over him that
change which occidental religion calls conversion-- a fine word 
which has
been sadly degraded by improper associations, for it has often been 
used to
signify nothing more than a crisis of emotion hypnotically induced by 
the surging
waves of excited feeling radiated by a half-maddened crowd. Its true 
meaning is
exactly what its derivation implies, ` a turning together with' . 
Before it,
the man, unaware of the stupendous current of evolution, has, under 
the delusion
of selfishness, been fighting against it; but the moment that the 
magnificence
of the Divine Plan bursts upon his astonished sight there is no 
other
possibility for him but to throw all his energies into the effort to 
promote its
fulfilment, to ` turn and go together with' that splendid stream of 
the love and
the wisdom of God. 
His one
object then is to qualify himself to help the world, and all his 
thoughts and
actions are directed towards that aim. He may forget for the moment 
under the
stress of temptation, but the oblivion can be only temporary; and this 
is the
meaning of the ecclesiastical dogma that the elect can never finally fail 
.
Discrimination has come to him, the opening of the doors of the mind, to adopt 
the terms
employed for this change in older faiths; he knows now what is real 
and what is
unreal, what is worth gaining and what is valueless. He lives as an 
immortal soul
who is a Spark of the Divine Fire, instead of as one of the beasts 
that perish--
to use a biblical phrase which, however, is entirely incorrect, 
inasmuch as
the beasts do not perish, except in the sense of their being 
reabsorbed
into their group-soul. 
Most truly
for this man an aspect of life has been displayed which erst was 
hidden from
his eyes. It would even be truer to say that now for the first time 
he has really
begun to live, while before he merely dragged out an inefficient 
existence. 
SECOND
SECTION 
HOW WE ARE
INFLUENCED 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER III 
BY PLANETS 
RADIATIONS 
THE first
fact which it is necessary for us to realise is that everything is 
radiating
influence on its surroundings, and these surroundings are all the 
while returning
the compliment by pouring influence upon it in return. Literally 
everything--
sun, moon, stars, angels, men, animals, trees, rocks-- everything 
is pouring
out a ceaseless stream of vibrations, each of its own characteristic 
type; not in
the physical world only, but in other and subtler worlds as well. 
Our physical
senses can appreciate only a limited number of such radiations. We 
readily feel
the heat poured forth by the sun or by a fire, but we are usually 
not conscious
of the fact that we ourselves are constantly radiating heat; yet 
if we hold
out a hand towards a radiometer the delicate instrument will respond 
to the heat
imparted by that hand even at a distance of several feet, and will 
begin to
revolve. We say that a rose has a scent and that a daisy has none; yet 
the daisy is
throwing off particles just as much as the rose, only in the one 
case they
happen to be perceptible to our senses, and in the other they are not. 
From early
ages men have believed that the sun, the moon, the planets and the 
stars
exercised a certain influence over human life. In the present day most 
people are
content to laugh at such a belief, without knowing anything about it; 
yet anyone
who will take the trouble to make a careful and impartial study of 
astrology
will discover much that cannot be lightly thrown aside. He will meet 
with plenty
of errors, no doubt, some of them ridiculous enough; but he will 
also find a
proportion of accurate results which is far too large to be 
reasonably
ascribed to coincidence. His investigations will convince him that 
there is
unquestionably some foundation for the claims of the astrologers, while 
at the same
time he cannot but observe that their systems are as yet far from 
perfect. 
When we
remember the enormous space that separates us from even the nearest of 
the planets,
it is at once obvious that we must reject the idea that they can 
exercise upon
us any physical action worth considering; and furthermore, if 
there were
any such action, it would seem that its strength should depend less 
upon the
position of the planet in the sky than upon its proximity to the 
earth-- a
factor which is not usually taken into account by astrologers. The 
more we
contemplate the matter the less does it seem rational or possible to 
suppose that
the planets can affect the earth or its inhabitants to any 
appreciable
extent; yet the fact remains that a theory based upon this apparent 
impossibility
often works out accurately. Perhaps the explanation may be found 
along the
line that just as the movement of the hands of a clock shows the 
passage of
time, though it does not cause it, so the motions of the planets 
indicate the
prevalence of certain influences, but are in no way responsible for 
them. Let us
see what light occult study throws upon this somewhat perplexing 
subject. 
THE DEITY OF
THE SOLAR SYSTEM 
Occult
students regard the entire solar system in all its vast complexity as a 
partial
manifestation of one great living Being, and all its parts as expressing 
aspects of
Him. Many names have been given to Him; in our Theosophical 
literature He
has often been described under the Gnostic title of the Logos-- 
the Word that
was in the beginning with God, and was God; but now we usually 
speak of Him
as the Solar Deity. All the physical constituents of the solar 
system-- the
sun with its wonderful corona, all the planets with their 
satellites,
their oceans, their atmospheres and the various aethers surrounding 
them-- all
these are collectively His physical body, the expression of Him in 
the physical
realm. 
In the same
way the collective astral worlds-- not only the astral worlds 
belonging to
each of the physical planets, but also the purely astral planets of 
all the
chains of the system (such, for example, as planets B and F of our 
chain)-- make
up His astral body, and the collective worlds of the mental realm 
are His
mental body-- the vehicle through which He manifests Himself upon that 
particular
level. Every atom of every world is a centre through which He is 
conscious, so
that not only is it true that God is omnipresent, but also that 
whatever is
is God. 
Thus we see
that the old pantheistic conception was quite true, yet it is only a 
part of the
truth, because while all nature in all its worlds is nothing but His 
garment, yet
He Himself exists outside of and above all this in a stupendous 
life of which
we can know nothing-- a life among other Rulers of other systems. 
Just as all
our lives are lived literally within Him and are in truth a part of 
His, so His
life and that of the Solar Deities of countless other systems are a 
part of a
still greater life of the Deity of the visible universe; and if there 
be in the
depths of space yet other universes invisible to us, all of their 
Deities in
turn must in the same way form part of One Great Consciousness which 
includes the
whole. 
DIFFERENT
TYPES OF MATTER 
In these `
bodies' of the Solar Deity on their various levels there are certain 
different
classes or types of matter, which are fairly equally distributed over 
the whole
system. I am not speaking here of our usual division of the worlds and 
their
subsections-- a division which is made according to the density of the 
matter, so
that in the physical world, for example, we have the solid, liquid, 
gaseous,
etheric, super-etheric, sub-atomic and atomic conditions of matter-- 
all of them
physical, but differing in density. The types which I mean 
constitute a
totally distinct series of cross-divisions, each of which contains 
matter in all
its different conditions, so that if we denote the various types 
by numbers,
we shall find solid, liquid and gaseous matter of the first type, 
solid, liquid
and gaseous matter of the second type, and so on all the way 
through. 
These types
of matter are as thoroughly intermingled as are the constituents of 
our
atmosphere. Conceive a room filled with air; any decided vibration 
communicated
to the air, such as a sound, for example, would be perceptible in 
every part of
the room. Suppose that it were possible to produce some kind of 
undulation
which should affect the oxygen alone without disturbing the nitrogen, 
that
undulation would still be felt in every part of the room. If we allow that, 
for a moment,
the proportion of oxygen might be greater in one part of the room 
than another,
then the oscillation, though perceptible everywhere, would be 
strongest in
that part. Just as the air in a room is composed (principally) of 
oxygen and
nitrogen, so is the matter of the solar system composed of these 
different
types; and just as a wave (if there could be such a thing) which 
affected only
the oxygen or only the nitrogen would nevertheless be felt in all 
parts of the
room, so a movement or modification which affects only one of these 
types produces
an effect throughout the entire solar system, though it may be 
stronger in
one part than in another. 
This
statement is true of all worlds, but for the sake of clearness let us for 
the moment
confine our thought to one world only. Perhaps the idea is easiest to 
follow with
regard to the astral. It has often been explained that in the astral 
body of man,
matter belonging to each of the astral sub-sections is to be found, 
and that the
proportion between the denser and the finer kinds shows how far 
that body is
capable of responding to coarse or refined desires, and so is to 
some extent
an indication of the degree to which the man has evolved himself. 
Similarly in
each astral body there is matter of each of these types, and in 
this case the
proportion between them will show the disposition of the man-- 
whether he is
devotional or philosophic, artistic or scientific, pragmatic or 
mystic. 
THE LIVING
CENTRES 
Now each of
these types of matter in the astral body of the Solar Deity is to 
some extent a
separate vehicle, and may be thought of as also the astral body of 
a subsidiary
Deity or Minister, who is at the same time an aspect of the Deity 
of the
system, a kind of ganglion or force-centre in Him. Indeed, if these types 
differ among
themselves, it is because the matter composing them originally came 
forth through
these different living Centres, and the matter of each type is 
still the
special vehicle and expression of the subsidiary Deity through whom it 
came, so that
the slightest thought, movement or alteration of any kind in Him 
is instantly
reflected in some way or other in all the matter of the 
corresponding
type. Naturally each such type of matter has its own special 
affinities,
and is capable of vibrating under influences which may probably 
evoke no
response from the other types. 
Since every
man has within himself matter of all these types, it is obvious that 
any
modification in or action of any one of these great living Centres must to 
some degree
affect all beings in the system. The extent to which any particular 
person is so
affected depends upon the proportion of the type of matter acted 
upon which he
happens to have in his astral body. Consequently we find different 
types of men
as of matter, and by reason of their constitution, by the very 
composition
of their astral bodies, some of them are more susceptible to one 
influence,
some to another. 
The types are
seven, and astrologers have often given to them the names of 
certain of
the planets. Each type is divided into seven sub-types, because each 
` planet' may
be either practically uninfluenced, or it may be affected 
predominantly
by any one of the other six. In addition to the forty-nine 
definite
sub-types thus obtained, there are any number of possible permutations 
and
combinations of influences, often so complicated that it is no easy matter 
to follow
them. Nevertheless, this gives us a certain system of classification, 
according to
which we can arrange not only human beings, but also the animal, 
vegetable and
mineral kingdoms, and the elemental essence which precedes them in 
evolution. 
Everything in
the solar system belongs to one or other of these seven great 
streams,
because it has come out through one or other of these great 
Force-Centres,
to which therefore it belongs in essence, although it must 
inevitably be
affected more or less by the others also. This gives each man, 
each animal,
each plant, each mineral a certain fundamental characteristic which 
never
changes-- sometimes symbolised as his note, his colour or his ray. 
This
characteristic is permanent not only through one chain-period, but through 
the whole
planetary scheme, so that the life which manifests through elemental 
essence of
type A will in the due course of its evolution ensoul successively 
minerals,
plants, and animals of type A; and when its group-soul breaks up into 
units and
receives the Third Outpouring, the human beings which are the result 
of its
evolution will be men of type A and no other, and under normal conditions 
will continue
so all through their development until they grow into Adepts of 
type A. 
In the
earlier days of Theosophical study we were under the impression that this 
plan was
carried out consistently to the very end, and that these Adepts 
rejoined the
Solar Deity through the same subsidiary Deity or Minister through 
whom they
originally came forth. Further research shows that this thought 
requires
modification. We find that bands of egos of many different types join 
themselves
together for a common object. 
For example,
in the investigations connected primarily with the lives of Alcyone 
it was found
that certain bands of egos circled round the various Masters, and 
came closer
and closer to Them as time went on. One by one, as they became fit 
for it, these
egos reached the stage at which they were accepted as pupils or 
apprentices
by one or other of the Masters. To become truly a pupil of a Master 
means
entering into relations with Him whose intimacy is far beyond any tie of 
which we know
on earth. It means a degree of union with Him which no words can 
fully
express, although at the same time a pupil retains absolutely his own 
individuality
and his own initiative. 
In this way
each Master becomes a centre of what may be truly described as a 
great
organism, since his pupils are veritably members of Him. When we realise 
that He
Himself is in just the same way a Member of some still greater Master we 
arrive at a
conception of a mighty. organism which is in a very real sense one, 
although
built up of thousands of perfectly distinct egos. 
Such an
organism is the Heavenly Man who emerges as the result of the evolution 
of each great
root-race. In Him, as in an earthly man, are seven great centres, 
each of which
is a mighty Adept; and the Manu and the Bodhisattva occupy in this 
great
organism the place of the brain and the heart centres respectively. Round 
Them-- and
yet not round Them, but in Them and part of Them, although so fully 
and
gloriously ourselves-- shall we, Their servants, be; and this great figure 
in its
totality represents the flower of that particular race, and includes all 
who have
attained Adeptship through it. Each root-race is thus represented at 
its close by
one of these Heavenly Men; and They, these splendid totalities, 
will, as
Their next stage in evolution, become Ministers Themselves of some 
future Solar
Deity. Yet each one of these contains within Himself men of all 
possible
types, so that each of these future Ministers is in truth a 
representative
not of one line but of all lines. 
When looked
at from a sufficiently high level the whole solar system is seen to 
consist of
these great living Centres or Ministers, and the types of matter 
through which
each is expressing Himself. Let me repeat here for the sake of 
clearness,
what I wrote some time ago on this subject in The Inner Life, vol. i, 
page 217: 
Each of these
great living Centres has a sort of orderly periodic change or 
motion of his
own, corresponding perhaps on some infinitely higher level to the 
regular
beating of the human heart, or to the inspiration and expiration of the 
breath. Some
of these periodic changes are more rapid than others, so that a 
complicated
series of effects is produced; and it has been observed that the 
movements of
the physical planets in their relation to one another furnish a 
clue to the
operation of these influences at any given moment. Each of these 
Centres has
His special location or major focus within the body of the sun, and 
a minor
exterior focus which is always marked by the position of a planet. 
The exact
relation can hardly be made clear in our three-dimensional 
phraseology;
but we may perhaps put it that each Centre has a field of influence 
practically
co-extensive with a solar system; that if a section of this field 
could be
taken it would be found to be elliptical; and that one of the foci of 
each ellipse
would always be the sun, and the other would be the special planet 
ruled by that
Minister. It is probable that, in the gradual condensation of the 
original
glowing nebula from which the system was formed, the location of the 
planets was
determined by the formation of vortices at these minor foci, they 
being auxiliary
points of distribution of these influences-- ganglia, as it 
were, in the
solar system. 
It must of
course be understood that we are referring here not to the curious 
astrological
theory which considers the sun himself as a planet, but to the real 
planets which
revolve round him. 
THEIR
INFLUENCE 
The
influences belonging to these great types differ widely in quality, and one 
way in which
this difference shows itself is in their action upon the living 
elemental
essence both in man and around him. Be it ever remembered that this 
dominance is
exerted in all worlds, not only in the astral, though we are just 
now confining
ourselves to that for simplicity' s sake. These mysterious 
agencies may
have, and indeed must have, other and more important lines of 
action not at
present known to us; but this at least forces itself upon the 
notice of the
observer, that each Centre produces its own special effect upon 
the manifold
varieties of elemental essence. 
One, for
example, will be found greatly to stimulate the activity and the 
vitality of
those kinds of essence which specially appertain to the Centre 
through which
it comes, while apparently checking and controlling others; the 
sway of
another type will be seen to be strong over a quite different set of 
essences
which belong to its Centre, while apparently not affecting the previous 
set in the
least. There are all sorts of combinations and permutations of these 
mystic
powers, the action of one of them being in some cases greatly intensified 
and in others
almost neutralised by the presence of another. 
Since this
elemental essence is vividly active in the astral and mental bodies 
of man, it is
clear that any unusual excitation of any of these classes of that 
essence-- any
sudden increase in its activity-- must undoubtedly affect to some 
extent either
his emotions or his mind, or both; and it is also obvious that 
these forces
would work differently on different men, because of the varieties 
of essence
entering into their composition. 
These influences
neither exist nor are exercised for the sake of the man or with 
any reference
to him, any more than the wind exists for the sake of the vessel 
which is
helped or hindered by it; they are part of the play of cosmic forces of 
whose object
we know nothing, though we may to some extent learn how to 
calculate
upon them and to use them. Such energies in themselves are no more 
good nor evil
than any other of the powers of nature: like electricity or any 
other great
natural force they may be helpful or hurtful to us, according to the 
use that we
make of them. Just as certain experiments are more likely to be 
successful if
undertaken when the air is heavily charged with electricity, while 
certain
others under such conditions will most probably fail, so an effort 
involving the
use of the powers of our mental and emotional nature will more or 
less readily
achieve its object according to the influences which predominate 
when it is
made. 
LIBERTY OF
ACTION 
It is of the
utmost importance for us to understand that such pressure cannot 
dominate man'
s will in the slightest degree; all it can do is in some cases to 
make it
easier or more difficult for that will to act along certain lines. In no 
case can a
man be swept away by it into any course of action without his own 
consent,
though he may evidently be helped or hindered by it in any effort that 
he chances to
be making. The really strong man has little need to trouble 
himself as to
the agencies which happen to be in the ascendant, but for men of 
weaker will
it may sometimes be worth while to know at what moment this or that 
force can
most advantageously be applied. These factors may be put aside as a 
negligible
quantity by the man of iron determination or by the student of true 
occultism;
but since most men still allow themselves to be the helpless sport of 
the forces of
desire, and have not yet developed anything worth calling a will 
of their own,
their feebleness permits these influences to assume an importance 
in human life
to which they have intrinsically no claim. 
For example,
a certain variety of pressure may occasionally bring about a 
condition of
affairs in which all forms of nervous excitement are considerably 
intensified, and
there is consequently a general sense of irritability abroad. 
That
condition cannot cause a quarrel between sensible people; but under such 
circumstances
disputes arise far more readily than usual, even on the most 
trifling
pretexts, and the large number of people who seem to be always on the 
verge of
losing their tempers are likely to relinquish all control of themselves 
on even less
than ordinary provocation. It may sometimes happen that such 
influences,
playing on the smouldering discontent of ignorant jealousy, may fan 
it into an
outburst of popular frenzy from which wide-spread disaster may ensue. 
Even in such
a case as this we must guard ourselves against the fatal mistake of 
supposing the
influence to be evil because man' s passions turn it to evil 
effect. The
force itself is simply a wave of activity sent forth from one of the 
Centres of
the Deity, and is in itself of the nature of an intensification of 
certain
vibrations-- necessary perhaps to produce some far-reaching cosmic 
effect. The
increased activity produced incidentally by its means in the astral 
body of a man
offers him an opportunity of testing his power to manage his 
vehicles; and
whether he succeeds or fails in this, it is still one of the 
lessons which
help in his evolution. Karma may throw a man into certain 
surroundings
or bring him under certain influences, but it can never force him 
to commit a
crime, though it may so place him that it requires great 
determination
on his part to avoid that crime. It is possible, therefore, for an 
astrologer to
warn a man of the circumstances under which at a given time be 
will find
himself, but any definite prophecy as to his action under those 
circumstances
can only be based upon probabilities-- though we may readily 
recognise how
nearly such prophecies become certainties in the case of the 
ordinary
will-less man. From the extraordinary mixture of success and failure 
which
characterise modern astrological predictions, it seems fairly certain that 
the practitioners,
of this art are not fully acquainted with all the necessary 
factors. In a
case into which only those factors enter which are already fairly 
well
understood, success is achieved; but in cases where unrecognised factors 
come into
play we have naturally more or less complete failure as the result. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER IV 
BY THE SUN 
THE HEAT OF
THE SUN 
THOSE who are
interested in astronomy will find the occult side of that science 
one of the
most fascinating studies within our reach. Obviously it would be at 
once too
recondite and too technical for inclusion in such a book as this, which 
is concerned
more immediately with such of the unseen phenomena as affect us 
practically
in our daily life; but the connection of the sun with that life is 
so intimate
that it is necessary that a few words should be said about him. 
The whole
solar system is truly the garment of its Deity, but the sun is His 
veritable
epiphany-- the nearest that we can come in the physical realm to a 
manifestation
of Him, the lens through which His power shines forth upon us. 
Regarded
purely from the physical point of view, the sun is a vast mass of 
glowing
matter at almost inconceivably high temperatures, and in a condition of 
electrification
so intense as to be altogether beyond our experience. 
Astronomers,
supposing his heat to be due merely to contraction, used to 
calculate how
long he must have existed in the past, and how long it would be 
possible for
him to maintain it in the future; and they found themselves unable 
to allow more
than a few hundred thousand years either way, while the geologists 
on the other
hand claim that on this earth alone we have evidence of processes 
extending
over millions of years. The discovery of radium has upset the older 
theories, but
even with its aid they have not yet risen to the simplicity of the 
real
explanation of the difficulty. 
One can
imagine some intelligent microbe living in or upon a human body and 
arguing about
its temperature in precisely the same way. He might say that it 
must of
course be a gradually cooling body, and he might calculate with 
exactitude
that in so many hours or minutes it must reach a temperature that 
would render
continued existence impossible for him. If he lived long enough, 
however, he
would find that the human body did not cool, as according to his 
theories it
should do, and no doubt this would seem to him very mysterious, 
unless and
until he discovered that he was dealing not with a dying fire but 
with a living
being, and that as long as the life remained the temperature would 
not sink. In
exactly the same way if we realise that the sun is the physical 
manifestation
of the Solar Deity, we shall see that the mighty life behind it 
will
assuredly keep up its temperature, as long as may be necessary for the full 
evolution of
the system. 
THE
WILLOW-LEAVES 
A similar explanation
offers us a solution of some of the other problems of 
solar
physics. For example, the phenomena called from their shape the ` 
willow-leaves'
or ` rice-grains,' of which the photosphere of the sun is 
practically
composed, have often puzzled exoteric students by the apparently 
irreconcilable
characteristics which they present. From their position they can 
be nothing
else than masses of glowing gas at an exceedingly high temperature, 
and therefore
of great tenuity; yet though they must be far lighter than any 
terrestrial
cloud, they never fail to maintain their peculiar shape, however 
wildly they
may be tossed about in the very midst of storms of power so 
tremendous
that they would instantly destroy the earth itself. 
When we
realise that behind each of these strange objects there is a splendid 
Life-- that
each may be considered as the physical body of a great Angel-- we 
comprehend
that it is that Life which holds them together and gives them their 
wonderful
stability. To apply to them the term physical body may perhaps mislead 
us, because
for us the life in the physical seems of so much importance and 
occupies so
prominent a position in the present stage of our evolution. Madame 
Blavatsky has
told us that we cannot truly describe them as solar inhabitants, 
since the
Solar Beings will hardly place themselves in telescopic focus, but 
that they are
the reservoirs of solar vital energy, themselves partaking of the 
life which
they pour forth. 
Let us say
rather that the willow-leaves are manifestations upon the physical 
level
maintained by the solar Angels for a special purpose, at the cost of a 
certain
sacrifice or limitation of their activities on the higher levels which 
are their
normal habitat. Remembering that it is through these willow-leaves 
that the
light, heat and vitality of the sun come to us, we may readily see that 
the object of
this sacrifice is to bring down to the physical level certain 
forces which
would otherwise remain unmanifested, and that these great Angels 
are acting as
channels, as reflectors, as specialisers of divine power-- that 
they are in
fact doing at cosmic levels and for a solar system what, if we are 
wise enough
to use our privileges, we ourselves may do on a microscopical scale 
in our own
little circle, as will be seen in a later chapter. 
VITALITY 
We all know
the feeling of cheerfulness and well-being which sunlight brings to 
us, but only
students of occultism are fully aware of the reasons for that 
sensation.
Just as the sun floods his system with light and heat, so does he 
perpetually
pour out into it another force as yet unsuspected by modern 
science-- a
force to which has been given the name ` vitality' . This is 
radiated on
all levels, and manifests itself in each realm-- physical, 
emotional,
mental and the rest-- but we are specially concerned for the moment 
with its
appearance in the lowest, where it enters some of the physical atoms, 
immensely
increases their activity, and makes them animated and glowing. 
We must not
confuse this force with electricity, though it in some ways 
resembles it.
The Deity sends forth from Himself three great forms of energy; 
there may be
hundreds more of which we know nothing; but at least there are 
three. Each
of them has its appropriate manifestation at every level which our 
students have
yet reached; but for the moment let us think of them as they show 
themselves in
the physical world. One of them exhibits itself as electricity, 
another as
vitality, and the third as the serpent-fire, of which I have already 
written in
The Inner Life. 
These three
remain distinct, and none of them can at this level be converted 
into either
of the others. They have no connection with any of the Three Great 
Outpourings;
all of those are definite efforts made by the Solar Deity, while 
these seem
rather to be results of His life-- His qualities in manifestation 
without any
visible effort. Electricity while it is rushing through the atoms, 
deflects them
and holds them in a certain way-- this effect being in addition to 
and quite
apart from the special rate of vibration which it also imparts to 
them. 
But the
action of vitality differs in many ways from that of electricity, light 
or heat. Any
of the variants of this latter force cause oscillation of the atom 
as a whole--
an oscillation the size of which is enormous as compared with that 
of the atom;
but this other force which we call vitality comes to the atom not 
from without,
but from within. 
THE VITALITY
GLOBULE 
The atom is
itself nothing but the manifestation of a force; the Solar Deity 
wills a
certain shape which we call an ultimate physical atom, and by that 
effort of His
will some fourteen thousand million bubbles are held in that 
particular form.
It is necessary to emphasise the fact that the cohesion of the 
bubbles in
that form is entirely dependent upon that effort of will, so that if 
that were for
a single instant withdrawn, the bubbles must fall apart again, and 
the whole
physical realm would simply cease to exist in far less than the period 
of a flash of
lightning. So true is it that the whole world is nothing but 
illusion,
even from this point of view, to say nothing of the fact that the 
bubbles of
which the atom is built are themselves only holes in koilon, the true 
aether of
space. 
So it is the
will-force of the Solar Deity continually exercised which holds the 
atom together
as such; and when we try to examine the action of that force we 
see that it
does not come into the atom from outside, but wells up within it-- 
which means
that it enters it from higher dimensions. The same is true with 
regard to
this other force which we call vitality; it enters the atom from 
within, along
with the force that holds that atom together, instead of acting 
upon it
entirely from without, as do those other varieties of force which we 
call light,
heat or electricity. 
When vitality
wells up thus within the atom it endows it with an additional 
life, and
gives it a power of attraction, so that it immediately draws round it 
six other
atoms, which it arranges in a definite form, this making what has been 
called in
Occult Chemistry a hyper-meta-proto-element. But this element differs 
from all
others which have so far been observed, in that the force which creates 
it and holds
it together comes from the second Aspect of the Solar Deity instead 
of from the
third This vitality-globule is drawn upon page 45 of Occult 
Chemistry,
where it stands first at the left hand of the top line in the 
diagram. It
is the little group which makes the exceedingly brilliant bead upon 
the male or
positive snake in the chemical element oxygen, and it is also the 
heart of the
central globe in radium. 
These
globules are conspicuous above all others which may be seen floating in 
the
atmosphere, on account of their brilliance and extreme activity-- the 
intensely
vivid life which they show. These are probably the fiery lives so 
often
mentioned by Madame Blavatsky, though she appears to employ that term in 
two senses.
In The Secret Doctrine, vol. ii, 709, it seems to mean the globule 
as a whole,
in vol. i, 283, it probably means the original 
additionally-vitalised
atoms, each of which draws round itself six others. 
While the
force that vivifies the globules is quite different from light, it 
nevertheless
appears to depend upon light for its power of manifestation. In 
brilliant
sunshine this vitality is constantly welling up afresh, and the 
globules are
generated with great rapidity and in incredible numbers; but in 
cloudy
weather there is a great diminution in the number of globules formed, and 
during the
night the operation appears to be entirely suspended. During the 
night, therefore,
we may be said to be living upon the stock manufactured during 
the previous
day, and though it appears practically impossible that it should 
ever be
entirely exhausted, that stock evidently does run low when there is a 
long
succession of cloudy days. The globule, once charged, remains as a 
sub-atomic
element, and does not appear to be subject to any change or loss of 
force unless
and until it is absorbed by some living creature. 
THE
ABSORPTION OF VITALITY 
This vitality
is absorbed by all living organisms, and a sufficient supply of it 
seems to be a
necessity of their existence. In the case of men and the higher 
animals it is
absorbed through the centre or vortex in the etheric double which 
corresponds
with the spleen. It will be remembered that that centre has six 
petals, made
by the undulatory movement of the forces which cause the vortex. 
But this
undulatory movement is itself caused by the radiation of other forces 
from the
centre of that vortex. Imaging the central point of the vortex as the 
hub of a
wheel, we may think of these last-mentioned forces as represented by 
spokes
radiating from it in straight lines. Then the vortical forces, sweeping 
round and
round, pass alternately under and over these spokes as though they 
were weaving
a kind of etheric basket-work, and in this way is obtained the 
appearance of
six petals separated by depressions. 
When the unit
of vitality is flashing about in the atmosphere, brilliant as it 
is, it is
almost colourless, and may be compared to white light. But as soon as 
it is drawn
into the vortex of the force-centre at the spleen it is decomposed 
and breaks up
into streams of different colours, though it does not follow 
exactly our
division of the spectrum. As its component atoms are whirled round 
the vortex,
each of the six spokes seizes upon one of them, so that all the 
atoms charged
with yellow rush along one, and all those charged with green along 
another, and
so on, while the seventh disappears through the centre of the 
vortex-- through
the hub of the wheel, as it were. Those rays then rush off in 
different
directions, each to do its special work in the vitalisation of the 
body. As I
have said, however, the divisions are not exactly those which we 
ordinarily
use in the solar spectrum, but rather resemble the arrangement of 
colours which
we see on higher levels in the causal, mental and astral bodies. 
For example,
what we call indigo is divided between the violet ray and the blue 
ray, so that
we find only two divisions there instead of three; but on the other 
hand what we
call red is divided into two-- rose red and dark red. The six 
radiants are
therefore violet, blue, green, yellow, orange, and dark red; while 
the seventh
or rose red atom (more properly the first, since this is the 
original atom
in which the force first appeared) passes down through the centre 
of the
vortex. Vitality is thus clearly sevenfold in its constitution, but it 
rushes
through the body in five main streams, as has been described in some of 
the Indian
books,¹ (¹ “To them spoke the principal life: Be not lost in delusion 
I even,
fivefold dividing myself, uphold this body by my support.” -- 
Prashnopanishad
. ii, 3. “From this proceed these seven flames.” -- Ibid ., iii, 
5.) for after
issuing from splenic centre the blue and the violet join into one 
ray, and so
do the orange and the dark red. 
(1) The
violet-blue ray flashes upwards to the throat, where it seems to divide 
itself, the
light blue remaining to course through and vivify the throat-centre, 
while the
dark blue and violet pass on into the brain. The dark blue expends 
itself in the
lower and central parts of the brain, while the violet floods the 
upper part
and appears to give special vigour to the force-centre at the top of 
the head, diffusing
itself chiefly through the nine hundred and sixty petals of 
the outer
part of that centre. 
(2) The
yellow ray is directed to the heart, but after doing its work there, 
part of it
also passes on to the brain and permeates it, directing itself 
principally
to the twelve-petalled flower in the midst of the highest 
force-centre.
(3) The green
ray floods the abdomen and, while centring especially in the solar 
plexus,
evidently vivifies the liver, kidneys and intestines, and the digestive 
apparatus
generally. 
(4) The
rose-coloured ray runs all over the body along the nerves, and is 
clearly the
life of the nervous system. This is what is commonly described as 
vitality--
the specialised vitality which one man may readily pour into another 
in whom it is
deficient. If the nerves are not fully supplied with this rosy 
light they
become sensitive and intensely irritable, so that the patient finds 
it almost
impossible to remain in one position, and yet gains but little ease 
when he moves
to another. The least noise or touch is agony to him, and he is in 
a condition
of acute misery. The flooding of his nerves with specialised 
vitality by
some healthy person brings instant relief, and a feeling of healing 
and peace
descends upon him. A man in robust health usually absorbs and 
specialises
so much more vitality than is actually needed by his own body that 
he is
constantly radiating a torrent of rose-coloured atoms, and so 
unconsciously
pours strength upon his weaker fellows without losing anything 
himself; or
by an effort of his will he can gather together this superfluous 
energy and
aim it intentionally at one whom he wishes to help. 
The physical
body has a certain blind, instinctive consciousness of its own, 
corresponding
in the physical world to the desire-elemental of the astral body; 
and this
consciousness seeks always to protect it from danger, or to procure for 
it whatever
may be necessary. This is entirely apart from the consciousness of 
the man
himself, and it works equally well during the absence of the ego from 
the physical
body during sleep. All our instinctive movements are due to it, and 
it is through
its activity that the working of the sympathetic system is carried 
on
ceaselessly without any thought or knowledge on our part. 
While we are
what we call awake, this physical elemental is perpetually occupied 
in
self-defence; he is in a condition of constant vigilance, and he keeps the 
nerves and
muscles always tense. During the night or at any time when we sleep 
he lets the
nerves and muscles relax, and devotes himself specially to the 
assimilation
of vitality, and the recuperation of the physical body. He works at 
this most
successfully during the early part of the night, because then there is 
plenty of
vitality, whereas immediately before the dawn the vitality which has 
been left
behind by the sunlight is almost completely exhausted. This is the 
reason for
the feeling of limpness and deadness associated with the small hours 
of the
morning; this is also the reason why sick men so frequently die at that 
particular
time. The same idea is embodied in the old proverb that: “An hour' s 
sleep before
midnight is worth two after it.” The work of this physical 
elemental
accounts for the strong recuperative influence of sleep, which is 
often
observable even when it is a mere momentary nap. 
This vitality
is indeed the food of the etheric double, and is just as necessary 
to it as is
sustenance to the grosser part of the physical body. Hence when the 
body is
unable for any reason (as through sickness, fatigue or extreme old age) 
to prepare
vitality for the nourishment of its cells, this physical elemental 
endeavours to
draw in for his own use vitality which has already been prepared 
in the bodies
of others; and thus it happens that we often find ourselves weak 
and exhausted
after sitting for a while with a person who is depleted of 
vitality,
because he has drawn away from us by suction the rose-coloured atoms 
before we
were able to extract their energy. 
The vegetable
kingdom also absorbs this vitality, but seems in most cases to use 
only a small
part of it. Many trees draw from it almost exactly the same 
constituents
as does the higher part of man' s etheric body, the result being 
that when
they have used what they require, the atoms which they reject are 
precisely
those charged with the rose-coloured light which is needed for the 
cells of man'
s physical body. This is specially the case with such trees as the 
pine and the
eucalyptus; and consequently the very neighbourhood of these trees 
gives health
and strength to those who are suffering from lack of this part of 
the vital
principle-- those whom we call nervous people. They are nervous 
because the
cells of their bodies are hungry, and the nervousness can only be 
allayed by
feeding them; and often the readiest way to do that is thus to supply 
them from
without with the special kind of vitality which they need. 
(5) The
orange-red ray flows to the base of the spine and thence to the 
generative
organs, with which one part of its functions is closely connected. 
This ray
appears to include not only the orange and the darker reds, but also a 
certain
amount of dark purple, as though the spectrum bent round in a circle and 
the colours
began over again at a lower octave. In the normal man this ray 
energises the
desires of the flesh, and also seems to enter the blood and keep 
up the heat
of the body; but if a man persistently refuses to yield to his lower 
nature, this
ray can by long and determined effort be deflected upwards to the 
brain, where
all three of its constituents undergo a remarkable modification. 
The orange is
raised into pure yellow, and produces a decided intensification of 
the powers of
the intellect; the dark red becomes crimson, and greatly increases 
the power of
unselfish affection; while the dark purple is transmuted into a 
lovely pale
violet, and quickens the spiritual part of man' s nature. The man 
who achieves
this transmutation will find that sensual desires no longer trouble 
him, and when
it becomes necessary for him to arouse the serpent-fire, he will 
be free from
the most serious of the dangers of that process. When a man has 
finally
completed this change, this orange-red ray passes straight into the 
centre at the
base of the spine, and from that runs upwards along the hollow of 
the vertebral
column, and so to the brain. 
VITALITY AND
HEALTH 
The flow of
vitality in these various currents regulates the health of the parts 
of the body
with which they are concerned. If, for example, a person is 
suffering
from a weak digestion, it manifests itself at once to any person 
possessing
etheric sight, because either the flow and action of the green stream 
is sluggish
or its amount is smaller in proportion than it should be. Where the 
yellow
current is full and strong, it indicates, or more properly produces, 
strength and
regularity in the action of the heart. Flowing round that centre, 
it also
interpenetrates the blood which is driven through it, and is sent along 
with it all
over the body. Yet there is enough of it left to extend into the 
brain also,
and the power of high philosophical and metaphysical thought appears 
to depend to
a great extent upon the volume and activity of this yellow stream, 
and the
corresponding awakening of the twelve-petalled flower in the middle of 
the
force-centre at the top of the head. 
Thought and
emotion of a high spiritual type seem to depend largely upon the 
violet ray,
whereas the power of ordinary thought is stimulated by the action of 
the blue
mingled with part of the yellow. It has been observed that in some 
forms of
idiocy the flow of vitality to the brain, both yellow and blue-violet, 
is almost
entirely inhibited. Unusual activity or volume in the light blue which 
is
apportioned to the throat-centre is accompanied by the health and strength of 
the physical
organs in that part of the body. It gives, for example, strength 
and
elasticity to the vocal chords, so that special brilliance and activity are 
noticeable in
the case of a public speaker or a great singer. Weakness or 
disease in
any part of the body is accompanied by a deficiency in the flow of 
vitality to
that part. 
As the
different streams of atoms do their work, the charge of vitality is 
withdrawn
from them, precisely as an electrical charge might be. The atoms 
bearing the
rose-coloured ray grow gradually paler as they are swept along the 
nerves, and
are eventually thrown out from the body through the pores-- making 
thus what was
called in Man Visible and Invisible the health-aura. By the time 
that they
leave the body most of them have lost the rose-coloured light, so that 
the general
appearance of the emanation is bluish-white. That part of the yellow 
ray which is
absorbed into the blood and carried round with it loses its 
distinctive
colour in just the same way. 
The atoms,
when thus emptied of their charge of vitality, either enter into some 
of the
combinations which are constantly being made in the body, or pass out of 
it through
the pores, or through the ordinary channels. The emptied atoms of the 
green ray,
which is connected chiefly with digestive processes, seem to form 
part of the
ordinary waste material of the body, and to pass out along with it, 
and that is
also the fate of the atoms of the red-orange ray in the case of the 
ordinary man.
The atoms belonging to the blue rays, which are used in connection 
with the
throat-centre, generally leave the body in the exhalations of the 
breath; and
those which compose the dark blue and violet rays usually pass out 
from the
centre at the top of the head. 
When the
student has learnt to deflect the orange-red rays so that they also 
move up
through the spine, the empty atoms of both these and the violet-blue 
rays pour out
from the top of the head in a fiery cascade, which is frequently 
imaged as a
flame in ancient statues of the BUDDHA and other great Saints. When 
empty of the
vital force the atoms are once more precisely like any other atoms; 
the body
absorbs such of them as it needs, so that they form part of the various 
combinations
which are constantly being made, while others which are not 
required for
such purposes are cast out through any channel that happens to be 
convenient. 
The flow of
vitality into or through any centre, or even its intensification, 
must not be
confused with the entirely different development of the centre which 
is brought
about by the awakening of the serpent-fire at a later stage in man' s 
evolution. We
all of us draw in vitality and specialise it, but many of us do 
not utilise
it to the full, because in various ways our lives are not as pure 
and healthy
and reasonable as they should be. One who coarsens his body by the 
use of meat,
alcohol or tobacco can never employ his vitality to the full in the 
same way as
can a man of purer living. A particular individual of impure life 
may be, and
often is stronger in the physical body than certain other men who 
are purer;
that is a matter of their respective karma; but other things being 
equal, the
man of pure life has an immense advantage. 
VITALITY NOT
MAGNETISM 
The vitality
coursing along the nerves must not be confused with what we usually 
call the
magnetism of the man-- his own nerve-fluid, generated within himself. 
It is this
fluid which keeps up the constant circulation of etheric matter along 
the nerves,
corresponding to the circulation of blood through the veins; and as 
oxygen is conveyed
by the blood to all parts of the body, so vitality is 
conveyed
along the nerves by this etheric current. The particles of the etheric 
part of man'
s body are constantly changing, just as are those of the denser 
part; along
with the food which we eat and the air which we breathe we take in 
etheric
matter, and this is assimilated by the etheric part of the body. Etheric 
matter is
constantly being thrown off from the pores, just as is gaseous matter, 
so that when
two persons are close together each necessarily absorbs much of the 
physical
emanations of the other. 
When one
person mesmerises another, the operator by an effort of will gathers 
together a
great deal of this magnetism and throws it into the subject, pushing 
back his
victim' s nerve-fluid, and filling its place with his own. As the brain 
is the centre
of this nervous circulation, this brings that part of the subject' 
s body which
is affected under the control of the manipulator' s brain instead 
of the
victim' s, and so the latter feels what the mesmerist wishes him to feel. 
If the
recipient' s brain be emptied of his own magnetism and filled with that 
of the
performer, the former can think and act only as the latter wills that he 
should think
and act; he is for the time entirely dominated. 
Even when the
magnetiser is trying to cure, and is pouring strength into the 
man, he
inevitably gives along with the vitality much of his own emanations. It 
is obvious
that any disease which the mesmeriser happens to have may readily he 
conveyed to
the subject in this way; and another even more important 
consideration
is that, though his health may be perfect from the medical point 
of view,
there are mental and moral diseases as well as physical, and that, as 
astral and
mental matter are thrown into the subject by the mesmerist along with 
the physical
current, these also are frequently transferred. 
Vitality,
like light and heat, is pouring forth from the sun continually, but 
obstacles frequently
arise to prevent the full supply from reaching the earth. 
In the wintry
and melancholy climes miscalled the temperate, it too often 
happens that
for days together the sky is covered by a funeral pall of heavy 
cloud, and
this affects vitality just as it does light; it does not altogether 
hinder its
passage, but sensibly diminishes its amount. Therefore in dull and 
dark weather
vitality runs low, and over all living creatures there comes an 
instinctive
yearning for sunlight. 
When
vitalised atoms are thus more sparsely scattered, the man in rude health 
increases his
power of absorption, depletes a larger area, and so keeps his 
strength at
the normal level; but invalids and men of small nerve-force, who 
cannot do
this, often suffer severely, and find themselves growing weaker and 
more
irritable without knowing why. For similar reasons vitality is at a lower 
ebb in the
winter than in the summer, for even if the short winter day be sunny, 
which is
rare, we have still to face the long and dreary winter night, during 
which we must
exist upon such vitality as the day has stored in our atmosphere. 
On the other
hand the long summer day, when bright and cloudless, charges the 
atmosphere so
thoroughly with vitality that its short night makes but little 
difference. 
From the
study of this question of vitality, the occultist cannot fail to 
recognise
that, quite apart from temperature, sunlight is one of the most 
important
factors in the attainment and preservation of perfect health-- a 
factor for
the absence of which nothing else can entirely compensate. Since this 
vitality is
poured forth not only upon the physical world but upon all others as 
well, it is
evident that, when in other respects satisfactory conditions are 
present,
emotion, intellect and spirituality will be at their best under clear 
skies and
with the inestimable aid of the sunlight. 
All the
colours of this order of vitality are etheric, yet it will be seen that 
their action
presents certain correspondences with the signification attached to 
similar hues
in the astral body. Clearly right thought and right feeling react 
upon the
physical body, and increase its power to assimilate the vitality which 
is necessary
for its well-being. It is reported that the Lord BUDDHA once said 
that the
first step on the road to Nirvana is perfect physical health; and 
assuredly the
way to attain that is to follow the Noble Eightfold Path which He 
has
indicated. “Seek ye first the Kingdom of God and His righteousness, and all 
these things
shall be added unto you”-- yes, even physical health as well. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER V 
BY NATURAL
SURROUNDINGS 
THE WEATHER 
THE vagaries
of the weather are proverbial, and though observation and study of 
its phenomena
enable us to venture upon certain limited predictions, the 
ultimate
cause of most of the changes still escapes us, and will continue to do 
so until we
realise that there are considerations to be taken into account 
besides the
action of heat and cold, of radiation and condensation. The earth 
itself is
living; this ball of matter is being used as a physical body by a vast 
entity-- not
an Adept or an angel, not a highly developed being at all, but 
rather
something which may be imagined as a kind of gigantic nature-spirit, for 
whom the
existence of our earth is one incarnation. His previous incarnation was 
naturally in
the moon since that was the fourth planet of the last chain, and 
equally
naturally his next incarnation will be in the fourth planet of the chain 
that will
succeed ours when the evolution of our terrestrial chain is completed. 
Of his nature
or the character of his evolution we can know but little, nor does 
it in any way
concern us, for we are to him but as tiny microbes or parasites 
upon his
body, and in all probability he is unaware even of our existence, for 
nothing that
we can do can be on a scale large enough to affect him. 
For him the
atmosphere surrounding the earth must be as a kind of aura, or 
perhaps
rather corresponding to the film of etheric matter which projects ever 
so slightly
beyond the outline of man' s dense physical body; and just as any 
alteration or
disturbance in the man affects this film of aether, so must any 
change of
condition in this spirit of the earth affect the atmosphere. Some such 
changes must
be periodic and regular, like the motions produced in us by 
breathing, by
the action of the heart or by an even movement, such as walking; 
others must
be irregular and occasional, as would be the changes produced in a 
man by a
sudden start, or by an outburst of emotion. 
We know that
violent emotion, astral in its origin though it be, produces 
chemical
changes and variations of temperature in the human physical body; 
whatever
corresponds to such emotion in the spirit of the earth may well cause 
chemical
changes in his physical body also, and variations of temperature in its 
immediate
surroundings. Now variations of temperature in the atmosphere mean 
wind; sudden
and violent variations mean storm; and chemical changes beneath the 
surface of
the earth not infrequently cause earthquakes and volcanic eruptions. 
No student of
occultism will fall into the common error of regarding as evil 
such
outbursts as storms or eruptions, because they sometimes destroy human 
life; for he
will recognise that, whatever the immediate cause may be, all that 
happens is
part of the working of the great immutable law of justice, and that 
He who doeth
all things most certainly doeth all things well. This aspect of 
natural
phenomena, however, will be considered in a later chapter. 
It cannot be
questioned that men are much and variously affected by the weather. 
There is a
general consensus of opinion that gloomy weather is depressing; but 
this is
mainly due to the fact that in the absence of sunlight there is, as has 
already been
explained, a lack of vitality. Some people, however, take an actual 
delight in
rain or snow or high wind. There is in these disturbances something 
which
produces a distinct pleasurable sensation which quickens their vibrations 
and
harmonises with the key-note of their nature. It is probable that this is 
not entirely
or even chiefly due to the physical disturbance; it is rather that 
the subtle
change in the aura of the spirit of the earth (which produces or 
coincides
with this phenomenon) is one with which their spirits are in sympathy. 
A still more
decided instance of this is the effect of a thunder-storm. There 
are many
people in whom it produces a curious sense of overwhelming fear 
entirely out
of proportion to any physical danger that it can be supposed to 
bring. In
others, on the contrary, the electrical storm produces wild 
exultation.
The influence of electricity on the physical nerves no doubt plays a 
part in
producing these unusual sensations, but their true cause lies deeper 
than that. 
The effect
produced upon people by these various manifestations depends upon the 
preponderance
in their temperament of certain types of elemental essence which, 
because of
this sympathetic vibration, used to be called by mediaeval enquirers 
earthy,
watery, airy or fiery. Exactly in the same way the effect of the various 
sections of
our surroundings will be greater or less upon men according as they 
have more or
less of one or other of these constituents in their composition. To 
the man who
responds most readily to earth influences, the nature of the soil 
upon which
his house is built is of primary importance, but it matters 
comparatively
little to him whether it is or is not in the neighbourhood of 
water;
whereas the man who responds most readily to the radiations of water 
would care
little about the soil so long as he had the ocean or a lake within 
sight and
within easy reach. 
ROCKS 
Influence is
perpetually radiated upon us by all objects of nature, even by the 
very earth
upon which we tread. Each type of rock or soil has its own special 
variety, and
the differences between them are great, so that their effect is by 
no means to
be neglected. In the production of this effect three factors bear 
their part--
the life of the rock itself, the kind of elemental essence 
appropriate
to its astral counterpart, and the kind of nature-spirits which it 
attracts. The
life of the rock is simply the life of the Second Great Outpouring 
which has
arrived at the stage of ensouling the mineral kingdom, and the 
elemental essence
is a later wave of that same divine Life which is one 
chain-period
behind the other, and has yet in its descent into matter reached 
only the
astral world. The nature-spirit belong to a different evolution 
altogether,
to which we shall refer in due course. 
The point for
us to bear in mind for the moment is that each kind of soil-- 
granite or
sandstone, chalk, clay or lava, has its definite influence upon those 
who live on
it-- an influence which never ceases. Night and day, summer and 
winter, year
in and year out, this steady pressure is being exercised, and it 
has its part
in the moulding of races and districts, types as well as 
individuals.
All these matters are as yet but little comprehended by ordinary 
science, but
there can be no doubt that in time to come these effects will be 
thoroughly
studied, and the doctors of the future will take them into account, 
and prescribe
a change of soil as well as of air for their patients. 
An entirely
new and distinct set of agencies is brought into play wherever water 
exists,
whether it be in the form of lake, river or sea-- powerful in different 
ways in all
of them truly, but most powerful and observable in the last. Here 
also the same
three factors have to be considered-- the life of the water 
itself, the
elemental essence pervading it, and the type of nature-spirits 
associated
with it. 
TREES 
Strong
influences are radiated by the vegetable kingdom also, and the different 
kinds of
plants and trees vary greatly in their effect. Those who have not 
specially
studied the subject invariably under-rate the strength, capacity and 
intelligence
shown in vegetable life. I have already written upon this in The 
Christian
Creed, p. 51 (2nd edition), so I will not repeat myself here, but will 
rather draw
attention to the fact that trees-- especially old trees-- have a 
strong and
definite individuality, well worthy the name of a soul. This soul, 
though
temporary, in the sense that it is not yet a reincarnating entity, is 
nevertheless
possessed of considerable power and intelligence along its own 
lines. 
It has
decided likes and dislikes, and to clairvoyant sight it shows quite 
clearly by a
vivid rosy flush an emphatic enjoyment of the sunlight and the 
rain, and
distinct pleasure also in the presence of those whom it has learnt to 
like, or with
whom it has sympathetic vibrations. Emerson appears to have 
realised
this, for he is quoted in Hutton' s Reminiscences as saying of his 
trees: “I am
sure they miss me; they seem to droop when I go away, and I know 
they brighten
and bloom when I go back to them and shake hands with their lower 
branches.” 
An old forest
tree is a high development of vegetable life, and when it is 
transferred
from that kingdom it does not pass into the lowest form of animal 
life. In some
cases its individuality is even sufficiently distinct to allow it 
to manifest
itself temporarily outside its physical form, and when that is so it 
often takes
the human shape. Matters may be otherwise arranged in other solar 
systems for
aught we know, but in ours the Deity has chosen the human form to 
enshrine the
highest intelligence, to be carried on to the utmost perfection as 
His scheme
develops: and because that is so, there is always a tendency among 
lower kinds
of life to reach upwards towards that form, and in their primitive 
way to
imagine themselves as possessing it. 
Thus it
happens that such creatures as gnomes or elves, whose bodies are of 
fluidic
nature, of astral or etheric matter which is plastic under the influence 
of the will,
habitually adopts some approximation to the appearance of humanity. 
Thus also
when it is possible for the soul of a tree to externalise itself and 
become
visible, it is almost always in human shape that it is seen. Doubtless 
these were
the dryads of classical times; and the occasional appearance of such 
figures may
account for the widely-spread custom of tree-worship. Omne ignotum 
pro
magnifico; and if primitive man saw a huge, grave human form come forth from 
a tree, he
was likely enough in his ignorance to set up an altar there and 
worship it,
not in the least understanding that he himself stood far higher in 
evolution
than it did, and that its very assumption of his image was an 
acknowledgment
of that fact. 
The occult
side of the instinct of a plant is also exceedingly interesting; its 
one great
object, like that of some human beings, is always to found a family 
and reproduce
its species; and it has certainly a feeling of active enjoyment in 
its success,
in the colour and beauty of its flowers and in their efficiency in 
attracting
bees and other insects. Unquestionably plants feel admiration 
lavished upon
them and delight in it; they are sensitive to human affection and 
they return
it in their own way. 
When all this
is borne in mind, it will readily be understood that trees 
exercise much
more influence over human beings than is commonly supposed, and 
that he who
sets himself to cultivate sympathetic and friendly relations with 
all his neighbours,
vegetable as well as animal and human, may both receive and 
give a great
deal of which the average man knows nothing, and may thus make his 
life fuller,
wider, more complete. 
THE SEVEN
TYPES 
The
classification of the vegetable kingdom adopted by the occultist follows the 
line of the
seven great types mentioned in our previous chapter on planetary 
influences,
and each of these is divided into seven sub-types. If we imagine 
ourselves
trying to tabulate the vegetable kingdom, these divisions would 
naturally be
perpendicular, nor horizontal. We should not have trees as one 
type, shrubs
as another, ferns as a third, grasses or mosses as a fourth; rather 
we should
find trees, shrubs, ferns, grasses, mosses of each of the seven types, 
so that along
each line all the steps of the ascending scale are represented. 
One might
phrase it that when the Second Outpouring is ready to descend, seven 
great
channels, each with its seven subdivisions, lie open for its choice; but 
the channel
through which it passes gives it a certain colouring-- a set of 
temperamental
characteristics-- which it never wholly loses, so that although in 
order to
express itself it needs matter belonging to all the different types, it 
has always a
preponderance of its own type, and always recognisably belongs to 
that type and
no other, until after its evolution is over it returns as a 
glorified
spiritual power to the Deity from whom it originally emerged as a mere 
undeveloped
potentiality. 
The vegetable
kingdom is only one stage in this stupendous course, yet these 
different
types are distinguishable in it, just as they are among animals or 
human beings,
and each has its own special influence, which may be soothing or 
helpful to
one man, distressing or irritating to another, and inert in the case 
of a third,
according to his type and to his condition at the time. Training and 
practice are
necessary to enable the student to assign the various plants and 
trees to
their proper classes, but the distinction between the magnetism 
radiated by
the oak and the pine, the palm tree and the banyan, the olive and 
the
eucalyptus, the rose and the lily, the violet and the sunflower, cannot fail 
to be obvious
to any sensitive person. Wide as the poles asunder is the 
dissimilarity
between the ` feeling' of an English forest and a tropical jungle, 
or the bush
of Australia or New Zealand. 
ANIMALS 
For thousand
of years man has lived so cruelly that all wild creatures fear and 
avoid him, so
the influence upon him of the animal kingdom is practically 
confined to
that of the domestic animals. In our relations with these our 
influence
over them is naturally far more potent than theirs over us, yet this 
latter is by
no means to be ignored. A man who has really made friends with an 
animal is
often much helped and strengthened by the affection lavished upon him. 
Being more
advanced, a man is naturally capable of greater love than an animal 
is; but the
animal' s affection is usually more concentrated, and he is far more 
likely to
throw the whole of his energy into it than a man is. 
The very fact
of the man' s higher development gives him a multiplicity of 
interests,
among which his attention is divided; the animal often pours the 
entire
strength of his nature into one channel, and so produces a most powerful 
effect. The
man has a hundred other matters to think about, and the current of 
his love
consequently cannot but be variable; when the dog or the cat develops a 
really great
affection it fills the whole of his life, and he therefore keeps a 
steady stream
of force always playing upon its object-- a factor whose value is 
by no means
to be ignored. 
Similarly the
man who is so wicked as to provoke by cruelty the hatred and fear 
of domestic
animals becomes by a righteous retribution the centre of converging 
forces of
antipathy; for such conduct arouses deep indignation among 
nature-spirits
and other astral and etheric entities, as well as among all 
right-minded
men, whether living or dead. 
HUMAN BEINGS 
Since it is
emphatically true that no man can afford to be disliked or feared by 
his cat or
dog, it is clear that the same consideration applies with still 
greater force
to the human beings who surround him. It is not easy to 
overestimate
the importance to a man of winning the kindly regard of those with 
whom he is in
constant association-- to overrate the value to a schoolmaster of 
the attitude
towards him of his pupils, to a merchant of the feeling of his 
clerks, to an
officer of the devotion of his men; and this entirely apart from 
the obvious
effects produced in the physical world. If a man holding any such 
position as
one of these is able to arouse the enthusiastic affection of his 
subordinates,
he becomes the focus upon which many streams of such forces are 
constantly
converging. Not only does this greatly uplift and strengthen him, but 
it also
enables him, if he understands something of the working of occult laws, 
to be of far
greater use to those who feel the affection, and to do much more 
with them
than would otherwise be possible. 
To obtain
this result it is not in the least necessary that they should agree 
with him in
opinion; with the particular effect with which we are at present 
concerned
their mental attitude has no connection whatever; it is a matter of 
strong,
kindly feeling. If the feeling should unfortunately be of an opposite 
kind-- if the
man is feared or despised-- currents of antipathy are perpetually 
flowing towards
him, which cause weakness and discord in the vibrations of his 
higher
vehicles, and also cut him off from the possibility of doing satisfactory 
and fruitful
work with those under his charge. 
It is not
only the force of the feeling sent out by the person; like attracts 
like in the
astral world as well as the physical. There are always masses of 
vague thought
floating about in the atmosphere, some of them good and some evil, 
but all alike
ready to reinforce any decided thought of their own type. Also 
there are
nature-spirits of low order, which enjoy the coarse vibrations of 
anger and
hatred, and are therefore very willing to throw themselves into any 
current of
such nature. By doing so they intensify the undulations, and add 
fresh life to
them. All this tends to strengthen the effect produced by the 
converging
streams of unfavourable thought and feeling. 
It has been
said that a man is known by the company he keeps. It is also to a 
large extent
true that he is made by it, for those with whom he constantly 
associates
are all the while unconsciously influencing him and bringing him by 
degrees more
and more into harmony with such undulations as they radiate. He who 
is much in
the presence of a large-minded and unworldly man has a fine 
opportunity
of himself becoming large-minded and unworldly, for a steady though 
imperceptible
pressure in that direction is perpetually being exerted upon him, 
so that it is
easier for him to grow in that way than in any other. For the same 
reason a man
who spends his time loafing in a public-house with the idle and 
various is
exceedingly likely to end by becoming idle and vicious himself. The 
study of the
hidden side of things emphatically endorses the old proverb that 
evil
communications corrupt good manners. 
This fact of
the enormous influence of close association with a more advanced 
personality
is well understood in the East, where it is recognised that the most 
important and
effective part of the training of a disciple is that he shall live 
constantly in
the presence of his teacher and bathe in his aura. The various 
vehicles of
the teacher are all vibrating with a steady and powerful swing at 
rates both
higher and more regular than any which the pupil can yet maintain, 
though he may
sometimes reach them for a few moments; but the constant pressure 
of the
stronger thought-waves of the teacher gradually raises those of the pupil 
into the same
key. A person who has as yet but little musical ear finds it 
difficult to
sing correct intervals alone, but if he joins with another stronger 
voice which
is already perfectly trained, his task becomes easier-- which may 
serve as a
kind of rough analogy. 
The great
point is that the dominant note of the teacher is always sounding, so 
that its
action is affecting the pupil night and day without need of any special 
thought on
the part of either of them. Growth and change must of course be 
ceaselessly
taking place in the vehicles of the pupil, as in those of all other 
men; but the
powerful undulations emanating from the teacher render it easy for 
this growth
to take place in the right direction, and exceedingly difficult for 
it to go any
other way, somewhat as the splints which surround a broken limb 
ensure that
its growth shall be only in the right line, so as to avoid 
distortion. 
No ordinary
man, acting automatically and without intention, will be able to 
exercise even
a hundredth part of the carefully-directed influence of a 
spiritual
teacher; but numbers may to some extent compensate for lack of 
individual
power, so that the ceaseless though unnoticed pressure exercised upon 
us by the
opinions and feelings of our associates leads us frequently to absorb 
without
knowing it many of their prejudices. It is distinctly undesirable that a 
man should
remain always among one set of people and hear only one set of views. 
It is
eminently necessary that he should know something of other sets, for only 
in that way
can he learn to see good in all; only thoroughly understanding both 
sides of any
case can he form an opinion that has any right to be called a real 
judgment. The
prejudiced person is always and necessarily an ignorant person; 
and the only
way in which his ignorance can be dispelled is by getting outside 
his own
narrow little circle, and learning to look at things for himself and see 
what they
really are-- not what those who know nothing about them suppose them 
to be. 
TRAVEL 
The extent to
which our human surroundings influence us is only realised when we 
change them
for awhile, and the most effective method of doing this is to travel 
in a foreign
country. But true travel is not to rush from one gigantic 
caravanserai
to another, consorting all the time with one' s own countrymen, and 
grumbling at
every custom which differs from those of our particular Little 
Pedlington.
It is rather to live for a time quietly in some foreign land, trying 
to get really
to know its people and to understand them; to study a custom and 
see why it
has arisen, and what good there is in it, instead of condemning it 
off-hand
because it is not our own. The man who does this will soon come to 
recognise the
characteristic traits of the various races -- to comprehend such 
fundamental
diversities as those between the English and the Irish, the Hindu 
and the
American, the Breton and the Sicilian, and yet to realise that they are 
to be looked
upon not as one better than another, but as the different colours 
that go to
make up the rainbow, the different movements that are all necessary, 
as parts of
the great oratorio of life. 
Each has its
part to play in affording opportunity for the evolution of egos who 
need just its
influence, who are lacking in just its characteristics. Each race 
has behind it
a mighty angel, the Spirit of the Race, who under the direction of 
the Manu
preserves its special qualities and guides it along the line destined 
for it. A new
race is born when in the scheme of evolution a new type a 
temperament
is needed; a race dies out when all the egos who can be benefited by 
it have
passed through it. The influence of the Spirit of a Race thoroughly 
permeates the
country or district over which his supervision extends, and is 
naturally a
factor of the greatest importance to any visitor who is in the least 
sensitive. 
The ordinary
tourist is too often imprisoned in the triple armour of aggressive 
race-prejudice;
he is so full of conceit over the supposed excellencies of his 
own nation
that he is incapable of seeing good in any other. The wiser 
traveller, who
is willing to open his heart to the action of higher forces, may 
receive from
this source much that is valuable, both of instruction and 
experience.
But in order to do that, he must begin by putting himself in the 
right
attitude; he must be ready to listen rather then to talk, to learn rather 
than to
boast, to appreciate rather than to criticise, to try to understand 
rather than
rashly to condemn. 
To achieve
such a result is the true object of travel, and we have a far better 
opportunity
for this than was afforded to our forefathers. Methods of 
communication
are so much improved that it is now possible for almost anyone to 
achieve
quickly and cheaply journeys that would have been entirely impossible a 
century ago,
except for the rich and leisured class. Along with these 
possibilities
of intercommunication has come the wide dissemination of foreign 
news by means
of the telegraph and the newspaper press, so that even those who 
do not
actually leave their own country still know much more about others than 
was ever
possible before. Without all these facilities there never could have 
been a
Theosophical Society, or at least it could not have had its present 
character,
nor could it have reached its present level of effectiveness. 
The first
object of the Theosophical Society is the promotion of universal 
brotherhood,
and nothing helps so much to induce brotherly feeling between 
nations as
full and constant intercourse with one another. When people know one 
another only
by hearsay, all sorts of absurd prejudices grow up, but when they 
come to know
one another intimately, each finds that the other is after all a 
human being
much like himself, with the same interests and objects, the same 
joys and
sorrows. 
In the old
days each nation lived to a large extent in a condition of selfish 
isolation,
and if trouble of some sort fell upon one, it had usually no 
resources but
its own upon which it could depend. Now the whole world is so 
closely drawn
together that if there is a famine in India help is sent from 
America; if
an earthquake devastates one of the countries of Europe, 
subscriptions
for the sufferers pour in at once from all the others. However far 
away as yet
may be the perfect realisation of universal brotherhood, it is clear 
that we are
at least drawing nearer to it; we have not yet learnt entirely to 
trust one
another, but at least we are ready to help one another, and that is 
already a
long step upon the roads towards becoming really one family. 
We know how
often travel is recommended as a cure for many physical ills, 
especially
for those which manifest themselves through the various forms of 
nervous
derangement. Most of us find it to be fatiguing, yet also undeniably 
exhilarating,
though we do not always realise that this is not only because of 
the change of
air and of the ordinary physical impressions, but also because of 
the change of
the etheric and astral influences which are connected with each 
place and
district. 
Ocean,
mountain, forest or waterfall-- each has its own special type of life, 
astral and
etheric as well as visible; and, therefore, its own special set of 
impressions
and influences. Many of these unseen entities are pouring out 
vitality, and
in any case, the vibrations which they radiate awaken unaccustomed 
portions of
our etheric double, and of our astral and mental bodies, and the 
effect is
like the exercise of muscles which are not ordinarily called into 
activity--
somewhat tiring at the time, yet distinctly healthy and desirable in 
the long run.
The
town-dweller is accustomed to his surroundings, and usually does not realise 
the horror of
them until he leaves them for a time. To dwell beside a busy main 
street is
from the astral point of view like living on the brink of an open 
sewer-- a
river of fetid mud which is always throwing up splashes and noisome 
odours as it
rolls along. No man, however unimpressionable, can endure this 
indefinitely without
deterioration, and an occasional change into the country is 
a necessity
on the ground of moral as well as physical health. In travelling 
from the town
into the country, too, we leave behind us to a great extent the 
stormy sea of
warring human passion and labour, and such human thoughts as still 
remain to act
upon us are usually of the less selfish and more elevated kind. 
In the
presence of one of nature' s great wonders, such as the Falls of Niagara, 
almost
everyone is for the time drawn out of himself, and out of the petty round 
of daily care
and selfish desire, so that his thought is nobler and broader, and 
the
thought-forms which he leaves behind him are correspondingly less disturbing 
and more
helpful. These considerations once more make it evident that in order 
to obtain the
full benefit of travel a man must pay attention to nature and 
allow it to
act upon him. If he is wrapped up all the while in selfish and 
gloomy
thoughts, crushed by financial trouble, or brooding over his own sickness 
and weakness,
little benefit can be derived from the healing influences. 
Another point
is that certain places are permeated by certain special types of 
thought. The
consideration of this matter belongs rather to another chapter, but 
we may
introduce it so far as to mention that the frame of mind in which people 
habitually
visit a certain place reacts strongly upon all the other visitors to 
it. Popular
seaside resorts in England have about them an air of buoyancy and 
irresponsibility,
a determined feeling of holiday life, of temporary freedom 
from business
and of the resolution to make the most of it, from the influence 
of which it
is difficult to escape. Thus the jaded and overworked man who spends 
his
well-earned holiday in such a place, obtains quite a different result from 
that which
would follow if he simply stayed quietly at home. To sit at home 
would
probably be less fatiguing, but also much less stimulating. 
To take a
country walk is to travel in miniature, and in order to appreciate its 
healthful
effect we must bear in mind what has been said of all the different 
vibrations
issuing from various kinds of trees or plants, and even from 
different
kinds of soil or rock. All these act as kind of massage upon the 
etheric, astral
and mental bodies, and tend to relieve the strain which the 
worries of
our common life persistently exert upon certain parts of these 
vehicles. 
Glimpses of
the truth on these points may sometimes be caught from the 
traditions of
the peasantry. For example, there is a widely-spread belief that 
strength may
be gained from sleeping under a pine-tree with the head to the 
north. For
some cases this is suitable, and the rationale of it is that there 
are magnetic
currents always flowing over the surface of the earth which are 
quite unknown
to ordinary men. These by steady, gentle pressure gradually comb 
out the
entanglements and strengthen the particles both of the astral body and 
of the
etheric part of the physical, and thus bring them more into harmony and 
introduce
rest and calm. The part played by the pine-tree is, first, that its 
radiations
make the man sensitive to those magnetic currents, and bring him into 
a state in
which it is possible for them to act upon him, and secondly, that (as 
has already
been explained) it is constantly throwing off vitality in that 
special
condition in which it is easiest for man to absorb it. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER VI 
BY
NATURE-SPIRITS 
AN EVOLUTION
APART 
ANOTHER
factor which exercises great influence under certain restrictions is the 
nature-spirit.
We may regard the nature-spirits of the land as in a sense the 
original
inhabitants of the country, driven away from some parts of it by the 
invasion of
man, much as the wild animals have been. Just like wild animals, the 
nature-spirits
avoid altogether the great cities and all places where men most 
do
congregate, so that in those their effect is a negligible quantity. But in 
all quiet
country places, among the woods and fields, upon the mountains or out 
at sea,
nature-spirits are constantly present, and though they rarely show 
themselves,
their influence is powerful and all-pervading, just as the scent of 
the violets
fills the air though they are hidden modestly among the leaves. 
The
nature-spirits constitute an evolution apart, quite distinct at this stage 
from that of
humanity. We are familiar with the course taken by the Second 
Outpouring
through the three elemental kingdoms, down to the mineral and upward 
through the
vegetable and animal, to the attainment of individuality at the 
human level.
We know that, after that individuality has been attained, the 
unfolding of
humanity carries us gradually to the steps of the Path, and then 
onward and
upward to Adeptship and to the glorious possibilities which lie 
beyond. 
This is our
line of development, but we must not make the mistake of thinking of 
it as the
only line. Even in this world of ours the divine life is pressing 
upwards
through several streams, of which ours is but one, and numerically by no 
means the
most important. It may help us to realise this if we remember that 
while
humanity in its physical manifestation occupies only quite a small part of 
the surface
of the earth, entities at a corresponding level on other lines of 
evolution not
only crowd the earth far more thickly than man, but at the same 
time populate
the enormous plains of the sea and the fields of the air. 
LINES OF
EVOLUTION 
At this
present stage we find these streams running parallel to one another, but 
for the time
quite distinct. The nature-spirits, for example, neither have been 
nor ever will
be members of a humanity such as ours, yet the indwelling life of 
the
nature-spirit comes from the same Solar Deity as our own, and will return to 
Him just as
ours will. The streams may be roughly considered as flowing side by 
side as far
as the mineral level, but as soon as they turn to commence the 
upward arc of
evolution, divergence begins to appear. This stage of 
immetalisation
is naturally that at which life is most deeply immersed in 
physical
matter but while some of the streams retain physical forms through 
several of
the further stages of their development, making them, as they 
proceed, more
and more an expression of the life within , there are other 
streams which
at once begin to cast off the grosser, and for the rest of their 
unfolding in
this world use only bodies composed of etheric matter. 
One of these
streams, for example, after finishing that stage of its evolvement 
in which it
is part of the mineral monad, instead of passing into the vegetable 
kingdom takes
for itself vehicles of etheric matter which inhabit the interior 
of the earth,
living actually within the solid rock. It is difficult for many 
students to
understand how it is possible for any kind of creature thus to 
inhabit the
solid substance of the rock or the crust of the earth. Creatures 
possessing
bodies of etheric matter find the substance of the rock no impediment 
to their
motion or their vision. Indeed, for them physical matter in its solid 
state is
their natural element and habitat-- the only one to which they are 
accustomed
and in which they feel at home. These vague lower lives in amorphous 
etheric
vehicles are not readily comprehensible to us; but somehow they 
gradually
evolve to a stage when, though still inhabiting the solid rock, they 
live close to
the surface of the earth instead of in its depths, and the more 
developed of
them are able occasionally to detach themselves from it for a short 
time. 
These
creatures have sometimes been seen, and perhaps more frequently heard, in 
caves or
mines, and they are often described in mediaeval literature as gnomes. 
The etheric
matter of their bodies is not, under ordinary conditions, visible to 
physical
eyes, so that when they are seen one of two things must take place; 
either they
must materialise themselves by drawing round them a veil of physical 
matter, or
else the spectator must experience an increase of sensitiveness which 
enables him
to respond to the wave-lengths of the higher aethers, and to see 
what is not
normally perceptible to him. 
The slight
temporary exaltation of faculty necessary for this is not very 
uncommon nor
difficult to achieve, and on the other hand materialisation is easy 
for creatures
which are only just beyond the bounds of visibility; so that they 
would be seen
far more frequently than they are, but for the rooted objection to 
the proximity
of human beings which they share with all but the lowest types of 
nature-spirits.
The next stage of their advancement brings them into the 
subdivision
commonly called fairies-- the type of nature-spirits which usually 
live upon the
surface of the earth as we do, though still using only an etheric 
body; and
after that they pass on through the air-spirits into the kingdom of 
the angels in
a way which will be explained later. 
The life-wave
which is at the mineral level is manifesting itself not only 
through the
rocks which form the solid crust of the earth, but also through the 
waters of the
ocean; and just as the former may pass through low etheric forms 
of life (at
present unknown to man) in the interior of the earth, so the latter 
may pass
through corresponding low etheric forms which have their dwelling in 
the depths of
the sea. In this case also the next stage or kingdom brings us 
into more
definite though still etheric forms inhabiting the middle depths, and 
very rarely
showing themselves at the surface. The third stage for them 
(corresponding
to that of the fairies for the rock-spirits) is to join the 
enormous host
of water-spirits which cover the vast plains of the ocean with 
their joyous
life. 
Taking as
they do bodies of etheric matter only, it will be seen that the 
entities
following these lines of development miss altogether the vegetable and 
animal
kingdoms as well the human. There are, however, other types of 
nature-spirits
which enter into both these kingdoms before they begin to 
diverge. In
the ocean, for example, there is a stream of life which, after 
leaving the
mineral level, touches the vegetable kingdom in the form of 
seaweeds, and
then passes on, through the corals and the sponges and the huge 
cephalopods
of the middle deeps, up into the great family of the fishes, and 
only after
that joins the ranks of water-spirits. 
It will be
seen that these retain the dense physical body as a vehicle up to a 
much higher
level; and in the same way we notice that the fairies of the land 
are recruited
not only from the ranks of the gnomes, but also from the less 
evolved
strata of the animal kingdom, for we find a line of development which 
just touches
the vegetable kingdom in the shape of minute fungoid growths, and 
then passes
onward through bacteria and animalculae of various kinds, through 
the insects
and reptiles up to the beautiful family of the birds, and only after 
many
incarnations among these joins the still more joyous tribe of the fairies. 
Yet another
stream diverges into etheric life at an intermediate point, for 
while it
comes up through the vegetable kingdom in the shape of grasses and 
cereals, it
turns aside thence into the animal kingdom and is conducted through 
the curious
communities of the ants and bees, and then through a set of etheric 
creatures
closely corresponding to the latter-- those tiny humming-bird-like 
nature-spirits
which are so continually seen hovering about flowers and plants, 
and play so
large a part in the production of their manifold variations-- their 
playfulness
being often utilised in specialisation and in the helping of growth. 
It is
necessary, however, to draw a careful distinction here, to avoid 
confusion.
The little creatures that look after flowers may be divided into two 
great
classes, though of course there are many varieties of each kind. The first 
class may
properly be called elementals, for beautiful though they are, they are 
in reality
only thought-forms, and therefore they are not really living 
creatures at
all. Perhaps I should rather say that they are only temporarily 
living
creatures, for though they are very active and busy during their little 
lives, they
have no real evolving, reincarnating life in them, and when they 
have done
their work, they just go to pieces and dissolve into the surrounding 
atmosphere,
precisely as our own thought-forms do. They are the thought-forms of 
the Great
Beings or angels who are in charge of the evolution of the vegetable 
kingdom. 
When one of
these Great Ones has a new idea connected with one of the kinds of 
plants or
flowers which are under his charge, he often creates a thought-form 
for the
special purpose of carrying out that idea. It usually takes the form 
either of an
etheric model of the flower itself or of a little creature which 
hangs round
the plant or the flower all through the time that the buds are 
forming, and
gradually builds them into the shape and colour of which the angel 
has thought.
But as soon as the plant has fully grown, or the flower has opened, 
its work is
over and its power is exhausted, and, as I have said, it just simply 
dissolves,
because the will to do that piece of work was the only soul that it 
had. 
But there is
quite another kind of little creature which is very frequently seen 
playing about
with flowers, and this time it is a real nature-spirit. There are 
many
varieties of these also. One of the commonest forms is, as I have said, 
something
very much like a tiny humming-bird, and it may often be seen buzzing 
round the
flowers much in the same way as a humming-bird or a bee does. These 
beautiful
little creatures will never become human, because they are not in the 
same line of
evolution as we are. The life which is now animating them has come 
up through
grasses and cereals, such as wheat and oats, when it was in the 
vegetable
kingdom, and afterwards through ants and bees when it was in the 
animal
kingdom. Now it has reached the level of these tiny nature-spirits, and 
its next
stage will be to ensoul some of the beautiful fairies with etheric 
bodies who
live upon the surface of the earth. Later on they will become 
salamanders
or fire-spirits, and later still they will become sylphs, or 
air-spirits,
having only astral bodies instead of etheric. Later still they will 
pass through
the different stages of the great kingdom of the angels. 
OVERLAPPING 
In all cases
of the transference of the life-wave from one kingdom to another 
great
latitude is allowed for variation; there is a good deal of overlapping 
between the
kingdoms. That is perhaps most clearly to be seen along our own line 
of evolution
for we find that the life which has attained to the highest levels 
in the
vegetable kingdom never passes into the lower part of the animal kingdom 
at all, but
on the contrary joins it at a fairly advanced stage. Let me recall 
the example
which I have already given; the life which has ensouled one of our 
great forest
trees could never descend to animate a swarm of mosquitoes, nor 
even a family
of rats or mice or such small deer; while these latter would be 
quite
appropriate forms for that part of the life-wave which had left the 
vegetable
kingdom at the level of the daisy or the dandelion. 
The ladder of
evolution has to be climbed in all cases, but it seems as though 
the higher
part of one kingdom lies to a large extent parallel with the lower 
part of that
above it, so that it is possible for a transfer from one to the 
other to take
place at different levels in different cases. That stream of life 
which enters
the human kingdom avoids altogether the lowest stages of the animal 
kingdom; that
is, the life which is presently to rise into humanity never 
manifests
itself through the insects or the reptiles; in the past it did 
sometimes
enter the animal kingdom at the level of the great antediluvian 
reptiles, but
now it passes directly from the highest forms of the vegetable 
life into the
mammalia. Similarly, when the most advanced domestic animal 
becomes
individualised, he does not need to descend into the form of the 
absolutely
primitive savage for his first human incarnation. 
The
accompanying diagram shows some of these lines of development in a 
convenient
tabular form, but it must not be considered as in any way exhaustive, 
as there are
no doubt other lines which have not yet been observed, and there 
are certainly
all kinds of variations and possibilities of crossing at different 
levels from
one line to another; so that all we can do is to give a broad 
outline of
the scheme. 
As will be
seen from the diagram, at a later stage all the lines of evolution 
converge once
more; at least to our dim sight there seems no distinction of 
glory among
those Lofty Ones, though probably if we knew more we could make our 
table more
complete. At any rate we know that, much as humanity lies above the 
animal kingdom,
so beyond and above humanity in its turn lies the great kingdom 
of the
angels, and that to enter among the angels is one of the seven 
possibilities
which the Adept finds opening before him. That same kingdom is 
also the next
stage for the nature-spirit, but we have here another instance of 
the
overlapping previously mentioned, for the Adept joins that kingdom at a high 
level,
omitting altogether three of its stages, while the next step of progress 
for the
highest type of nature-spirit is to become the lowest class of angel, 
thus
beginning at the bottom of that particular ladder instead of stepping on to 
it half-way
up. 
It is on
joining the angel kingdom that the nature-spirit receives the divine 
Spark of the
Third Outpouring, and thus attains individuality, just as the 
animal does
when he passes into the human kingdom; and a further point of 
similarity is
that just as the animal gains individualisation only through 
contact with
humanity, so the nature-spirit gains it through contact with the 
angel--
through becoming attached to him and working in order to please him, 
until at last
he learns how to do angel' s work himself. 
The more
advanced nature-spirit is therefore not exactly an etheric or astral 
human being,
for he is not yet an individual; yet he is much more than an 
etheric or
astral animal, for his intellectual level is far higher than anything 
which we find
in the animal kingdom, and is indeed quite equal along many lines 
to that of
average humanity. On the other hand, some of the earlier varieties 
possess but a
limited amount of intelligence, and seem to be about on an 
equality with
the humming-birds or bees or butterflies which they so closely 
resemble. As
we have seen from our diagram, this one name of nature-spirit 
covers a
large segment of the arc of evolution, including stages corresponding 
to the whole
of the vegetable and animal kingdoms, and to humanity up to almost 
the present
level of our own race. 
Some of the
lower types are not pleasing to the aesthetic sense; but that is 
true also of
the lower kinds of reptiles and insects. There are undeveloped 
tribes whose
tastes are coarse, and naturally their appearance corresponds to 
the stage of
their evolution. The shapeless masses with huge red gaping mouths, 
which live
upon the loathsome etheric emanations of blood and decaying flesh, 
are horrible
both to the sight and to the feeling of any pure-minded person; so 
also are the
rapacious red-brown crustacean creatures which hover over houses of 
ill-fame, and
the savage octopus-like monsters which gloat over the orgies of 
the drunkard
and revel in the fumes of alcohol. But even these harpies are not 
evil in
themselves, though repulsive to man; and man would never come into 
contact with
them unless he degraded himself to their level by becoming the 
slave of his
lower passions. 
It is only
nature-spirits of these and similar primitive and unpleasant kinds 
which
voluntarily approach the average man. Others of the same sort, but a shade 
less
material, enjoy the sensation of bathing in any specially coarse astral 
radiations,
such as those produced by anger, avarice, cruelty, jealousy and 
hatred.
People yielding themselves to such feelings can depend upon being 
constantly
surrounded by these carrion crows of the astral world, who quiver in 
their ghastly
glee as they jostle one another in eager anticipation of an 
outburst of
passion, and in their blind, blundering way do whatever they can to 
provoke or
intensify it. It is difficult to believe that such horrors as these 
can belong to
the same kingdom as the jocund spirits next to be described. 
FAIRIES 
The type best
known to man is that of the fairies, the spirits who live normally 
upon the
surface of the earth, though, since their bodies are of etheric matter, 
they can pass
into the ground at will. Their forms are many and various, but 
most
frequently human in shape and somewhat diminutive in size, usually with a 
grotesque
exaggeration of some particular feature or limb. Etheric matter being 
plastic and
readily moulded by the power of thought, they are able to assume 
almost any
appearance at will, but they nevertheless have definite forms of 
their own,
which they wear when they have no special object to serve by taking 
any other,
and are therefore not exerting their will to produce a change of 
shape. They
have also colours of their own, marking the difference between their 
tribes or
species, just as the birds have differences of plumage. 
There are an
immense number of subdivisions or races among them, and individuals 
of these
sub-divisions vary in intelligence and disposition precisely as human 
beings do.
Again like human beings, these divers races inhabit different 
countries, or
sometimes different districts of the same country, and the members 
of one race
have a general tendency to keep together, just as men of one nation 
do among
ourselves. They are on the whole distributed much as are the other 
kingdoms of
nature; like the birds, from whom some of them have been evolved, 
some
varieties are peculiar to one country, others are common in one country and 
rare
elsewhere, while others again are to be found almost anywhere. Again like 
the birds, it
is broadly true that the most brilliantly coloured orders are to 
be found in
tropical countries. 
NATIONAL
TYPES 
The
predominant types of the different parts of the world are usually clearly 
distinguishable
and in a sense characteristic; or is it perhaps that their 
influence in
the slow course of ages has moulded the men and animals and plants 
who lived
near them, so that it is the nature-spirit who has set the fashion and 
the other
kingdoms which have unconsciously followed it? For example, no 
contrast
could well be more marked than that between the vivacious, rollicking, 
orange-and-purple
or scarlet-and-gold mannikins who dance among the vineyards of 
Sicily and
the almost wistful grey-and-green creatures who move so much more 
sedately
amidst the oaks and the furze-covered heaths in Brittany, or the 
golden-brown
“good people” who haunt the hill-sides of Scotland. 
In England
the emerald-green variety is probably the commonest, and I have seen 
it also in
the woods of France and Belgium, in far-away Massachusetts and on the 
banks of the
Niagara River. The vast plains of the Dakotas are inhabited by a 
black-and-white
kind which I have not seen elsewhere, and California rejoices in 
a lovely
white-and-gold species which also appears to be unique. 
In Australia
the most frequent type is a very distinctive creature of a 
wonderful
luminous skyblue colour; but there is a wide diversity between the 
etheric
inhabitants of New South Wales or Victoria and those of tropical 
Northern
Queensland. These latter approximate closely to those of the Dutch 
Indies. Java
seems specially prolific in these graceful creatures, and the kinds 
most common
there are two distinct types, both monochromatic-- one indigo blue 
with faint
metallic gleamings, and the other a study in all known shades of 
yellow--
quaint, but wonderfully effective and attractive. 
A striking
local variety is gaudily ringed with alternate bars of green and 
yellow, like
a football jersey. This ringed type is possibly a race peculiar to 
that part of
the world, for I saw red and yellow similarly arranged in the Malay 
Peninsula,
and green and white on the other side of the Straits in Sumatra. That 
huge island
also rejoices in the possession of a lovely pale heliotrope tribe 
which I have
seen before only in the hills of Ceylon. Down in New Zealand their 
specialty is
a deep blue shot with silver, while in the South Sea Islands one 
meets with a
silvery-white variety which coruscates with all the colours of the 
rainbow, like
a figure of mother-of-pearl. 
In India we
find all sorts, from the delicate rose-and-pale-green, or 
paleblue-and-primrose
of the hill country to the rich medley of gorgeously 
gleaming
colours, almost barbaric in their intensity and profusion, which is 
characteristic
of the plains. In some parts of that marvellous country I have 
seen the
black-and-gold type which is more usually associated with the African 
desert, and
also a species which resembles a statuette made out of a gleaming 
crimson
metal, such as was the orichalcum of the Atlanteans. 
Somewhat akin
to this last is a curious variety which looks as though cast out 
of bronze and
burnished; it appears to make its home in the immediate 
neighbourhood
of volcanic disturbances, since the only places in which it has 
been seen so
far are the slopes of Vesuvius and Etna, the interior of Java, the 
Sandwich
Islands, the Yellowstone Park in North America, and a certain part of 
the North
Island of New Zealand. Several indications seem to point to the 
conclusion
that this is a survival of a primitive type, and represents a sort of 
intermediate
stage between the gnome and the fairy. 
In some
cases, districts close together are found to be inhabited by quite 
different
classes of nature-spirits; for example, as has already been mentioned, 
the
emerald-green elves are common in Belgium, yet a hundred miles away in 
Holland
hardly one of them is to be seen, and their place is taken by a 
sober-looking
dark-purple species. 
ON A SACRED
MOUNTAIN IN IRELAND 
A curious
fact is that altitude above the sea-level seems to affect their 
distribution,
those who belong to the mountains scarcely ever intermingling with 
those of the
plains. I well remember, when climbing Slieve-namon, one of the 
traditionally
sacred hills of Ireland, noticing the very definite lines of 
demarcation
between the different types. The lower slopes, like the surrounding 
plains, were
alive with the intensely active and mischievous little 
red-and-black
race which swarms all over the south and west of Ireland, being 
especially
attracted to the magnetic centres established nearly two thousand 
years ago by
the magic-working priests of the old Milesian race to ensure and 
perpetuate
their domination over the people by keeping them under the influence 
of the great
illusion. After half-an-hour' s climbing, however, not one of these 
red-and-black
gentry was to be seen, but instead the hillside was populous with 
the gentler blue-and-brown
type which long ago owed special allegiance to the 
Tuatha-de-Danaan.
These also
had their zone and their well-defined limits, and no nature-spirit of 
either type
ever ventured to trespass upon the space round the summit, sacred to 
the great
green angels who have watched there for more than two thousand years, 
guarding one
of the centres of living force that link the past to the future of 
that mystic
land of Erin. Taller far than the height of man, these giant forms, 
in colour
like the first new leaves of spring, soft, luminous, shimmering, 
indescribable,
look forth over the world with wondrous eyes that shine like 
stars, full
of the peace of those who live in the eternal, waiting with the calm 
certainty of
knowledge until the appointed time shall come. One realises very 
fully the
power and importance of the hidden side of things when one beholds 
such a
spectacle as that. 
But indeed it
is scarcely hidden, for the different influences are so strong and 
so distinct
that anyone in the least sensitive cannot but be aware of them, and 
there is good
reason for the local tradition that he who spends a night upon the 
summit of the
mountain shall awaken in the morning either a poet or a madman. A 
poet, if he
has proved capable of response to the exaltation of the whole being 
produced by
the tremendous magnetism which has played upon him while he slept; a 
madman, if he
was not strong enough to bear the strain. 
FAIRY LIFE
AND DEATH 
The
life-periods of the different subdivisions of nature-spirits vary greatly, 
some being
quite short, others much longer than our human lifetime. The 
universal
principle of reincarnation obtains in their existence also, though the 
conditions
naturally make its working slightly different. They have no phenomena 
corresponding
to what we mean by birth and growth; a fairy appears in his world 
full-sized,
as an insect does. He lives his life, short or long, without any 
appearance of
fatigue or need of rest, and without any perceptible signs of age 
as the years
pass. 
But at last
there comes a time when his energy seems to have exhausted itself, 
when he
becomes somewhat tired of life; and when that happens his body grows 
more and more
diaphanous until he is left as an astral entity, to live for a 
time in that
world among the air-spirits who represent the next stage of 
development
for him. Through that astral life he fades back into his group-soul, 
in which he
may have (if sufficiently advanced) a certain amount of conscious 
existence before
the cyclic law acts upon the group-soul once more by arousing 
in it the
desire for separation. When this happens, its pressure turns the 
stream of its
energy outward once more, and that desire, acting upon the plastic 
astral and
etheric matter, materialises a body of similar type, such as is 
suitable to
be an expression of the development attained in that last life. 
Birth and
death, therefore, are much simpler for the nature-spirit than for us, 
and death is
for him quite free from all thought of sorrow. Indeed, his whole 
life seems
simpler-- a joyous, irresponsible kind of existence, much such as a 
party of
happy children might lead among exceptionally favorable physical 
surroundings.
There is no sex among nature-spirits, there is no disease, and 
there is no
struggle for existence, so that they are exempt from the most 
fertile
causes of human suffering. They have keen affections and are capable of 
forming close
and lasting friendships, from which they derive profound and 
never-failing
joy. Jealousy and anger are possible to them, but seem quickly to 
fade before
the overwhelming delight in all the operations of nature which is 
their most
prominent characteristic. 
THEIR
PLEASURES 
They glory in
the light and glow of the sunshine, but they dance with equal 
pleasure in
the moonlight; they share and rejoice in the satisfaction of the 
thirsty earth
and the flowers and the trees when they feel the level lances of 
the rain, but
they play just as happily with the falling flakes of snow; they 
are content
to float idly in the calm of a summer afternoon, yet they revel in 
the rushing
of the wind. Not only do they admire, with an intensity that few of 
us can
understand, the beauty of a flower or a tree, the delicacy of its colour 
or the grace
of its form, but they take ardent interest and deep delight in all 
the processes
of nature, in the flowing of sap, in the opening of buds, in the 
formation and
falling of leaves. Naturally this characteristic is utilised by 
the Great
Ones in charge of evolution, and nature-spirits are employed to assist 
in the
blending of colours and the arrangement of variations. They pay much 
attention,
too, to bird and insect life, to the hatching of the egg and to the 
opening of
the chrysalis, and they watch with jocund eye the play of lambs and 
fawns, of
leverets and squirrels. 
Another
inestimable advantage that an etheric evolution possesses over one which 
touches the
denser physical is that the necessity of eating is avoided. The body 
of the fairy
absorbs such nourishment as it needs, without trouble and without 
stint, from
the aether which of necessity always surrounds it; or rather, it is 
not, strictly
speaking, that nourishment is absorbed, but rather that a change 
of particles
is constantly taking place, those which have been drained of their 
vitality
being cast out and others which are full of it being drawn in to 
replace them.
Though they
do not eat, nature-spirits obtain from the fragrance of flowers a 
pleasure
analogous to that which men derive from the taste of food. The aroma is 
more to them
than a mere question of smell or taste, for they bathe themselves 
in it so that
it interpenetrates their bodies and reaches every particle 
simultaneously.
What takes
for them the place of a nervous system is far more delicate than 
ours, and
sensitive to many vibrations which pass all unperceived by our grosser 
senses, and
so they find what corresponds to a scent in many plants and minerals 
that have no
scent for us. 
Their bodies
have no more internal structure than a wreath of mist, so that they 
cannot be
torn asunder or injured, and neither heat nor cold has any painful 
effect upon
them. Indeed, there is one type whose members seem to enjoy above 
all things to
bathe themselves in fire; they rush from all sides to any great 
conflagration
and fly upward with the flames again and again in wild delight, 
just as a boy
flies again and again down a toboggan-slide. These are the spirits 
of the fire,
the salamanders of mediaeval literature. Bodily pain can come to 
the
nature-spirit only from an unpleasant or inharmonious emanation or 
vibration,
but his power of rapid locomotion enables him easily to avoid these. 
So far as can
be observed he is entirely free from the curse of fear, which 
plays so
serious a part in the animal life which, along our line of evolution, 
corresponds
to the level of the fairies. 
THE ROMANCES
OF FAIRYLAND 
The fairy has
an enviably fertile imagination, and it is a great part of his 
daily play
with his fellows to construct for them by its means all kinds of 
impossible
surroundings and romantic situations. He is like a child telling 
stories to
his playmates, but with this advantage over the child that, since the 
playmates can
see both etheric and lower astral matter, the forms built by his 
vivid thought
are plainly visible to them as his tale proceeds. 
No doubt many
of his narrations would to us seem childish and oddly limited in 
scope,
because such intelligence as the elf possesses works in directions so 
different
from our own, but to him they are intensely real and a source of 
never-ending
delight. The fairy who develops unusual talent in fiction wins 
great
affection and honour from the rest, and gathers round him a permanent 
audience or
following. When some human being chances to catch a glimpse of such 
a group, he
usually imports into his account of it preconceptions derived from 
his own
conditions, and takes the leader for a fairy king or queen, according to 
the form
which that leader may for the moment happen to prefer. In reality the 
realm of
nature-spirits needs no kind of government except the general 
supervision
which is exercised over it, probably unconsciously to all but its 
higher
members, by the Devarajas and their subordinates. 
THEIR
ATTITUDE TOWARDS MAN 
Most
nature-spirits dislike and avoid mankind, and we cannot wonder at it. To 
them man
appears a ravaging demon, destroying and spoiling wherever he goes. He 
wantonly
kills, often with awful tortures, all the beautiful creatures that they 
love to
watch; he cuts down the trees, he tramples the grass, he plucks the 
flowers and
casts them carelessly aside to die; he replaces all the lovely wild 
life of
nature with his hideous bricks and mortar, and the fragrance of the 
flowers with
the mephitic vapours of his chemicals and the all-polluting smoke 
of his
factories. Can we think it strange that the fairies should regard us with 
horror, and
shrink away from us as we shrink from a poisonous reptile? 
Not only do
we thus bring devastation to all that they hold most dear, but most 
of our habits
and emanations are distasteful to them; we poison the sweet air 
for them
(some of us) with loathsome fumes of alcohol and tobacco; our restless, 
ill-regulated
desires and passions set up a constant rush of astral currents 
which
disturbs and annoys them, and gives them the same feeling of disgust which 
we should
have if a bucket of filthy water were emptied over us. For them to be 
near the
average man is to live in a perpetual hurricane-- a hurricane that has 
blown over a
cesspool. They are not great angels, with the perfect knowledge 
that brings
perfect patience; they are just happy and on the whole well-disposed 
children--
hardly even that, many of them, but more like exceptionally 
intelligent
kittens; again, I say, can we wonder, when we thus habitually 
outrage their
best and highest feelings, that they should dislike us, distrust 
us and avoid
us? 
There are
instances on record where, by some more than ordinarily unwarranted 
intrusion or
annoyance on the part of man, they have been provoked into direct 
retaliation
and have shown distinct malice. It speaks well for their kingdom as 
a whole that
even under such unendurable provocation such cases are rare, and 
their more
usual method of trying to repel an intruder is by playing tricks upon 
him, childish
and mischievous often, but not seriously harmful. They take an 
impish
delight in misleading or deceiving him, in causing him to lose his way 
across a
moor, in keeping him walking round and round in a circle all night when 
he believes
he is going straight on, or in making him think that he sees palaces 
and castles
where no such structures really exist. Many a story illustrative of 
this curious
characteristic of the fairies may be found among the village gossip 
of the
peasantry in almost any lonely mountainous district. 
GLAMOUR 
They are
greatly assisted in their tricks by the wonderful power which they 
possess of
casting a glamour over those who yield themselves to their influence, 
so that such
victims for the time see and hear only what these fairies impress 
upon them,
exactly as the mesmerised subject sees, hears, feels and believes 
whatever the
magnetiser wishes. The nature-spirits, however, have not the 
mesmerist' s
power of dominating the human will, except in the case of quite 
unusually
weak-minded people, or of those who allow themselves to fall into such 
a condition
of helpless terror that their will is temporarily in abeyance. 
The fairies
cannot go beyond deception of the senses, but of that they are 
undoubted
masters, and cases are not wanting in which they cast their glamour 
over a
considerable number of people at once. It is by invoking their aid in the 
exercise of
this peculiar power that some of the most marvellous feats of the 
Indian
jugglers are performed, such as the celebrated basket trick, or that 
other in
which a rope is thrown up towards the sky and remains rigid without 
support while
the juggler climbs up it and disappears. The entire audience is in 
fact
hallucinated, and the people are made to imagine that they see and hear a 
whole series
of events which have not really occurred at all. 
The power of
glamour is simply that of making a clear, strong mental image, and 
then
projecting that into the mind of another. To most men this would seem 
wellnigh
impossible, because they have never made any such attempt in their 
lives, and
have no notion how to set about it. The mind of the fairy has not the 
width or the
range of the man' s, but it is thoroughly well accustomed to this 
work of
making images and impressing them on others, since it is one of the 
principal
occupations of the creature' s daily life. 
It is not
remarkable that with such constant practice he should become expert at 
the business,
and it is still further simplified for him when, as in the case of 
the Indian
tricks, exactly the same image has to be produced over and over again 
hundreds of
times, until every detail shapes itself without effort as the result 
of
unconscious habit. In trying to understand exactly how this is done, we must 
bear in mind
that a mental image is a very real thing-- a definite construction 
in mental
matter, as has been explained in Thought-Forms (p. 37); and we must 
also remember
that the line of communication between the mind and the dense 
physical
brain passes through the astral and etheric counterparts of that brain, 
and that the
line may be tapped and an impression introduced at any of these 
points. 
Certain of
the nature-spirits not infrequently exercise their talent for mimicry 
and mischief
by appearing at spiritualistic séances held for physical phenomena. 
Anyone who
has been in the habit of attending on such occasions will recollect 
instances of
practical joking and silly though usually good-natured horse-play; 
these almost
always indicate the presence of some of these impish creatures, 
though they
are sometimes due to the arrival of dead men who were senseless 
enough during
earth-life to consider such inanities amusing, and have not learnt 
wisdom since
their death. 
INSTANCES OF
FRIENDSHIP 
On the other
hand there are instances in which some nature-spirits have made 
friends with
individual human beings and offered them such assistance as lay in 
their power,
as in the well known stories told of Scotch brownies or of the 
fire-lighting
fairies of spiritualistic literature; and it is on record that on 
rare
occasions certain favoured men have been admitted to witness elfin revels 
and share for
a time the elfin life. It is said that wild animals will approach 
with
confidence some Indian yogis, recognising them as friends to all living 
creatures;
similarly elves will gather round one who has entered upon the Path 
of Holiness,
finding his emanations less stormy and more agreeable than those of 
the man whose
mind is still fixed upon worldly matters. 
Occasionally
fairies have been known to attach themselves to little children, 
and develop a
strong attachment for them, especially for such as are dreamy and 
imaginative,
since they are able to see and delight in the thought-forms with 
which such a
child surrounds himself. There have even been cases in which such 
creatures
took a fancy to some unusually attractive baby, and made an attempt to 
carry it away
into their own haunts-- their intention being to save it from what 
seems to them
the horrible fate of growing up into the average human being! 
Vague
traditions of such attempts account for part of the folk-lore stories 
about
changelings, though there is also another reason for them to which we 
shall refer
later. 
There have been
times-- more often in the past than in the present-- when a 
certain class
of these entities, roughly corresponding to humanity in size and 
appearance,
made it a practice frequently to materialise, to make for themselves 
temporary but
definite physical bodies, and by that means to enter into 
undesirable
relations with such men and women as chose to put themselves in 
their way.
From this fact, perhaps, come some of the stories of fauns and satyrs 
in the
classical period; though those sometimes also refer to quite a different 
sub-human
evolution. 
WATER-SPIRITS
Abundant as
are the fairies of the earth' s surface almost anywhere away from 
the haunts of
man, they are far outnumbered by the water-spirits-- the fairies 
of the
surface of the sea. There is just as much variety here as on land. The 
nature-spirits
of the Pacific differ from those of the Atlantic, and those of 
the
Mediterranean are quite distinct from either; the types that revel in the 
indescribably
glorious blue of tropical oceans are far apart from those that 
dash through
the foam of our cold grey northern seas. Dissimilar again are the 
spirits of
the lake, the river and the waterfall, for they have many more points 
in common
with the land fairies than have the nereids of the open sea. 
These, like
their brothers of the land, are of all shapes, but perhaps most 
frequently
imitate the human. Broadly speaking, they tend to take larger forms 
than the
elves of the woods and the hills; the majority of the latter are 
diminutive,
while the sea-spirit who copies man usually adopts his size as well 
as his shape.
In order to avoid misunderstanding it is necessary constantly to 
insist upon
the protean character of all these forms; any of these creatures, 
whether of
land or sea or air, can make himself temporarily larger or smaller at 
will, or can
assume whatever shape he chooses. 
There is
theoretically no restriction upon this power, but in practice it has 
its limits,
though they are wide. A fairy who is naturally twelve inches in 
height can
expand himself to the proportions of a man of six feet, but the 
effort would
be a considerable strain, and could not be maintained for more than 
a few
minutes. In order to take a form other than his own he must be able to 
conceive it
clearly, and he can hold the shape only while his mind is fixed upon 
it; as soon
as his thought wanders he will at once begin to resume his natural 
appearance. 
Though
etheric matter can readily be moulded by the power of thought, it 
naturally
does not obey it as instantaneously as does astral matter; we might 
say that
mental matter changes actually with the thought, and astral matter so 
quickly after
it that the ordinary observer can scarcely note any difference; 
but with
etheric matter one' s vision can follow the growth or diminution 
without
difficulty. A sylph, whose body is of astral matter, flashes from one 
shape into
another; a fairy, who is etheric, swells or decreases quickly but not 
instantaneously.
Few of the
land-spirits are gigantic in size, while such stature seems quite 
common out at
sea. The creatures of the land frequently weave from their fancies 
scraps of
human clothing, and show themselves with quaint caps or baldrics or 
jerkins; but
I have never seen any such appearance among the inhabitants of the 
sea. Nearly
all these surface water-spirits seem to possess the power of raising 
themselves
out of their proper element and floating in or flying through the air 
for a short
distance; they delight in playing amidst the dashing foam or riding 
in upon the
breakers. They are less pronounced in their avoidance of man than 
their
brethren on land-- perhaps because man has so much less opportunity of 
interfering
with them. They do not descend to any great depth below the 
surface--
never, at any rate, beyond the reach of light; so that there is always 
a
considerable space between their realm and the domain of the far less evolved 
creatures of
the middle deeps. 
FRESH-WATER
FAIRIES 
Some very
beautiful species inhabit inland waters where man has not yet rendered 
the
conditions impossible for them. Naturally enough, the filth and the 
chemicals
with which water is polluted near any large town are disgusting to 
them; but
they have apparently no objection to the water-wheel in a quiet 
country nook,
for they may sometimes be seen disporting themselves in a 
mill-race.
They seem specially to delight in falling water, just as their 
brothers of
the sea revel in the breaking of foam; for the pleasure which it 
gives them
they will sometimes even dare a nearer approach than usual to the 
hated
presence of man. At Niagara, for example, there are almost always some 
still to be
seen in the summer, though they generally keep well out towards the 
centre of the
Falls and the Rapids. Like birds of passage, in winter they 
abandon those
northern waters, which are frozen over for many months, and seek a 
temporary
home in more genial climes. A short frost they do not seem to mind; 
the mere cold
has apparently little or no effect upon them, but they dislike the 
disturbance
of their ordinary conditions. Some of those who commonly inhabit 
rivers
transfer themselves to the sea when their streams freeze; to others salt 
water seems
distasteful, and they prefer to migrate considerable distances 
rather than
take refuge in the ocean. 
An
interesting variety of the fairies of the water are the cloud-spirits-- 
entities
whose life is spent almost entirely among those “waters which be above 
the
firmament”. They should perhaps be classified as intermediate between the 
spirits of
the water and those of the air; their bodies are of etheric matter, 
as are the
former, but they are capable of remaining away from the water for 
comparatively
long periods. Their forms are often huge and loosely knit; they 
seem near of
kin to some of the fresh-water types, yet they are quite willing to 
dip for a
time into the sea when the clouds which are their favourite habitat 
disappear. They
dwell in the luminous silence of cloudland, and their favourite 
pastime is to
mould their clouds into strange, fantastic shapes or to arrange 
them in the
serried ranks which we call a mackerel sky. 
SYLPHS 
We come now
to the consideration of the highest type in the kingdom of the 
nature-spirits--
the stage at which the lines of development both of the land 
and sea
creatures converge-- the sylphs, or spirits of the air. These entities 
are
definitely raised above all the other varieties of which we have been 
speaking by
the fact that they have shaken themselves free from the encumbrance 
of physical
matter, the astral body being now their lowest vehicle. Their 
intelligence
is much higher than that of the etheric species, and quite equal to 
that of the
average man; but they have not yet attained a permanent 
reincarnating
individuality. Just because they are so much more evolved, before 
breaking away
from the group-soul they can understand much more about life than 
an animal
can, and so it often happens that they know that they lack 
individuality
and are intensely eager to gain it. That is the truth that lies at 
the back of
all the widely-spread traditions of the yearning of the 
nature-spirit
to obtain an immortal soul. 
The normal
method for them to attain this is by association with and love for 
members of
the next stage above them-- the astral angels. A domestic animal, 
such as the
dog or the cat, advances through the development of his intelligence 
and his
affection which is the result of his close relationship with his master. 
Not only does
his love for that master cause him to make determined efforts to 
understand
him, but the vibrations of the master' s mind-body, constantly 
playing upon
his rudimentary mind, gradually awaken it into greater and greater 
activity; and
in the same way his affection for him arouses an ever-deepening 
feeling in
return. The man may or may not definitely set himself to teach the 
animal
something; in any case, even without any direct effort, the intimate 
connection
between them helps the evolvement of the lower. Eventually the 
development
of such an animal rises to the level which will allow him to receive 
the Third
Outpouring, and thus he becomes an individual, and breaks away from 
his
group-soul. 
Now all this
is also exactly what happens between the astral angel and the 
air-spirit,
except that by them the scheme is usually carried out in a much more 
intelligent
and effective manner. Not one man in a thousand thinks or knows 
anything
about the real evolution of his dog or cat; still less does the animal 
comprehend
the possibility that lies before him. But the angel clearly 
understands
the plan of nature, and in many cases the nature-spirit also knows 
what he
needs, and works intelligently towards its attainment. So each of these 
astral angels
usually has several sylphs attached to him, frequently definitely 
learning from
him and being trained by him, but at any rate basking in the play 
of his
intellect and returning his affection. Very many of these angels are 
employed as
agents by the Devarajas in their duty of the distributing of karma; 
and thus it
comes that the air-spirits are often sub-agents in that work, and no 
doubt acquire
much valuable knowledge while executing the tasks assigned to 
them. 
The Adept
knows how to make use of the services of the nature-spirits when he 
requires
them, and there are many pieces of business which he is able to entrust 
to them. In
the issue of Broad Views for February, 1907, there appeared an 
admirable
account of the ingenious manner in which a nature-spirit executed a 
commission
given to him in this way. 
He was
instructed to amuse an invalid who was suffering from an attack of 
influenza,
and for five days he kept up an almost continuous entertainment of 
strange and
interesting visions, his efforts being crowned with the most 
gratifying
success, for the sufferer wrote that his ministrations “had the happy 
effect of
turning what under ordinary circumstances would have been days of 
unutterable
weariness and discomfort into a most wonderfully interesting 
experience”. 
He showed a
bewildering variety of pictures, moving masses of rock, seen not 
from the
outside but from the inside, so that faces of creatures of various 
sorts appeared
in them. He also exhibited mountains, forests and avenues, and 
sometimes
great masses of architecture, portions of Corinthian columns, bits of 
statuary, and
great arched roofs, often also the most wonderful flowers and 
palms, waving
to and fro as if in a gentle breeze. Sometimes he seems to have 
taken the
physical objects in the bedroom and woven them into a kind of magic 
transformation
scene. One might indeed surmise, from the curious nature of the 
entertainment
offered, the particular type to which belonged the nature-spirit 
who was
employed in this charitable work. 
The Oriental
magician occasionally endeavours to obtain the assistance of the 
higher
nature-spirits in his performances, but the enterprise is not without its 
dangers. He
must adopt either invocation or evocation-- that is, he must either 
attract their
attention as a suppliant and make some kind of bargain with them, 
or he must
try to set in motion influences which will compel their obedience-- 
an attempt
which, if it fails, will arouse a determined hostility that is 
exceedingly
likely to result in his premature extinction, or at the least will 
put him in an
extremely ridiculous and unpleasant position. 
Of these
air-spirits, as of the lower fairies, there are many varieties, 
differing in
power, in intelligence and in habits as well as in appearance. They 
are naturally
less restricted to locality than the other kinds which we have 
described,
though like the others they seem to recognise the limits of certain 
zones of elevation,
some kinds always floating near the surface of the earth, 
while others
scarcely ever approach it. As a general rule they share the common 
dislike to
the neighbourhood of man and his restless desires, but there are 
occasions
when they are willing to endure this for the sake of amusement or 
flattery. 
THEIR
AMUSEMENT 
They extract
immense entertainment sometimes out of the sport of ensouling 
thought-forms
of various kinds. An author in writing a novel, for example, 
naturally makes
strong thought-forms of all his characters, and moves them about 
his miniature
stage like marionettes; but sometimes a party of jocund 
nature-spirits
will seize upon his forms, and play out the drama upon a scheme 
improvised on
the spur of the moment, so that the dismayed novelist feels that 
his puppets
have somehow got out of hand and developed a will of their own. 
The love of
mischief which is so marked a characteristic of some of the fairies 
persists to a
certain extent among at least the lower types of the air-spirits, 
so that their
impersonations are occasionally of a less innocent order. People 
whose evil
karma has brought them under the domination of Calvinistic theology, 
but who have
not yet the intelligence or the faith to cast aside its blasphemous 
doctrines,
sometimes in their fear make awful thought-forms of the imaginary 
devil to
which their superstition gives such a prominent role in the universe; 
and I regret
to say that certain impish nature-spirits are quite unable to 
resist the
temptation of masquerading in these terrible forms, and think it a 
great joke to
flourish horns, to lash a forked tail, and to breathe out flames 
as they rush
about. To anyone who understands the nature of these pantomime 
demons no
harm is done; but now and then nervous children happen to be 
impressionable
enough to catch a glimpse of such things, and if they have not 
been wisely
taught, great terror is the result. 
It is only
fair to the nature-spirit to remember that, as he himself is 
incapable of
fear, he does not in the least understand the gravity of this 
result, and
probably considers the child' s fright as simulated, and as part of 
the game. We
can hardly blame the nature-spirit for the fact that we permit our 
children to
be bound by the chains of a grovelling superstition, and neglect to 
impress upon
them the grand fundamental fact that God is love and that perfect 
love casteth
out all fear. If our air-spirit occasionally thus terrifies the 
ill-instructed
living child, it must on the other hand be set to his credit that 
he constantly
affords the keenest pleasure to thousands of children who are what 
we call `
dead,' for to play with them and to entertain them in a hundred 
different
ways is one of his happiest occupations. 
The
air-spirits have discovered the opportunity afforded to them by the 
spiritualistic
séance, and some of them become habitual attendants, usually 
under some
such name as Daisy or Sunflower. They are quite capable of giving a 
very interesting
séance, for they naturally know a good deal about astral life 
and its
possibilities. They will readily answer questions, truly enough as far 
as their
knowledge goes, and with, at any rate, an appearance of profundity when 
the subject
is somewhat beyond them. They can produce raps, tilts and lights 
without
difficulty, and are quite prepared to deliver whatever messages they may 
see to be
desired-- not in the least meaning in this way harm or deceit, but 
naively
rejoicing in their success in playing the part, and in the wealth of 
awe-stricken
devotion and affection lavished upon them as “dear spirits” and 
“angel
helpers”. They learn to share the delight of the sitters, and feel 
themselves to
be doing a good work in thus bringing comfort to the afflicted. 
Living
astrally as they do, the fourth dimension is a commonplace fact of their 
existence,
and this makes quite simple for them many little tricks which to us 
appear
wonderful, such as the removal of articles from a locked box or the 
apport of
flowers into a closed room. The desires and emotions of the sitters 
lie open
before them, they quickly acquire facility in reading any but abstract 
thoughts, and
the management of a materialisation is quite within their power 
when adequate
material is provided. It will therefore be seen that without any 
exterior
assistance they are competent to provide a varied and satisfactory 
evening' s
entertainment, and there is no doubt that they have often done so. I 
am not for a
moment suggesting that nature-spirits are the only entities which 
operate at
séances; the manifesting ` spirit' is often exactly what he claims to 
be, but it is
also true that he is often nothing of the kind, and the average 
sitter has
absolutely no means of distinguishing between the genuine article and 
the
imitation. 
AN ABNORMAL
DEVELOPMENT 
As has
already been said, the normal line of advancement for the nature-spirit 
is to attain
individuality by association with an angel, but there have been 
individuals
who have departed from that rule. The intensity of affection felt by 
the sylph for
the angel is the principal factor in the great change, and the 
abnormal
cases are those in which that affection has been fixed upon a human 
being
instead. This involves so complete a reversal of the common attitude of 
these beings
towards humanity that its occurrence is naturally rare; but when it 
happens, and
when the love is strong enough to lead to individualisation, it 
detaches the
nature-spirit from his own line of evolution and brings him over 
into ours, so
that the newly developed ego will incarnate not as an angel but as 
a man. 
Some
tradition of this possibility lies at the back of all the stories in which 
a non-human
spirit falls in love with a man, and yearns with a great longing to 
obtain an
immortal soul in order to be able to spend eternity with him. Upon 
attaining his
incarnation such a spirit usually makes a man of very curious 
type--
affectionate and emotional but wayward, strangely primitive in certain 
ways, and
utterly without any sense of responsibility. 
It has
sometimes happened that a sylph who was thus strongly attracted to a man 
or a woman,
but just fell short of the intensity of affection necessary to 
ensure
individualisation, has made an effort to obtain a forcible entrance into 
human
evolution by taking possession of the body of a dying baby just as its 
original
owner left it. The child would seem to recover, to be snatched back 
from the very
jaws of death, but would be likely to appear much changed in 
disposition,
and probably peevish and irritable in consequence of the 
unaccustomed
constraint of a dense physical body. 
If the sylph
were able to adapt himself to the body, there would be nothing to 
prevent him
from retaining it through a life of the ordinary length. If during 
that life he
succeeded in developing affection sufficiently ardent to sever his 
connection
with his group-soul he would thereafter reincarnate as a human being 
in the usual
way; if not, he would fall back at its conclusion into his own line 
of evolution.
It will be seen that in these facts we have the truth which 
underlies the
widely disseminated tradition of changelings, which is found in 
all the
countries of north-western Europe, in China, and also (it is said) among 
the natives
of the Pacific slope of North America. 
THE ADVANTAGE
OF STUDYING THEM 
The kingdom
of the nature-spirits is a most interesting field of study, to which 
but little
attention has been paid. Though they are often mentioned in occult 
literature, I
am not aware that any attempt has yet been made to classify them 
in scientific
fashion. This vast realm of nature still needs its Cuvier or its 
Linnaeus; but
perhaps when we have plenty of trained investigators we may hope 
that one of
them will take upon himself this role, and furnish us as his life' s 
work with a
complete and detailed natural history of these delightful creatures. 
It will be no
waste of labour, no unworthy study. It is useful for us to 
understand
these beings, not solely nor even chiefly because of the influence 
they exert
upon us, but because the comprehension of a line of evolution so 
different
from our own broadens our minds and helps us to recognise that the 
world does
not exist for us alone, and that our point of view is neither the 
only one nor
the most important. Foreign travel has the same effect in a minor 
degree, for
it demonstrates to every unprejudiced man that races in every 
respect as
good as his own may yet differ widely from it in a hundred ways. In 
the study of
the nature-spirits we find the same idea carried much further; here 
is a kingdom
radically dissimilar-- without sex, free from fear, ignorant of 
what is meant
by the struggle for existence-- yet the eventual result of its 
unfoldment is
in every respect equal to that attained by following our own line. 
To learn this
may help us to see a little more of the many-sidedness of the 
Solar Deity,
and so may teach us modesty and charity as well as liberality of 
thought. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER VII 
BY CENTRES OF
MAGNETISM 
WE all
recognise to some extent that unusual surroundings may produce special 
effects; we
speak of certain buildings or landscapes as gloomy and depressing; 
we understand
that there is something saddening and repellent about a prison, 
something
devotional about a church, and so on. Most people never trouble to 
think why
this should be so, or if they do for a moment turn their attention to 
the matter,
they dismiss it as an instance of the association of ideas. 
Probably it
is that, but it is also much more than that, and if we examine into 
its rationale
we shall find that it operates in many cases where we have never 
suspected its
influence, and that a knowledge of it may be of practical use in 
everyday
life. A study of the finer forces of nature will show us not only that 
every living
being is radiating a complex set of definite influences upon those 
about him,
but also that this is true to a lesser degree and in a simpler manner 
of inanimate
objects. 
OUR GREAT
CATHEDRALS 
We know that
wood and iron and stone have their own respective characteristic 
radiations,
but the point to be emphasised just now is that they are all capable 
of absorbing
human influence, and then pouring it out again. What is the origin 
of that
feeling of devotion, of reverential awe, which so permeates some of our 
great
cathedrals that even the most hardened Cook' s tourist cannot entirely 
escape it? It
is due not only to the historical associations, not only to the 
remembrance
of the fact that for centuries men have met here for praise and 
prayer, but
far more to that fact itself, and to the conditions which it has 
produced in
the substance of the fabric. 
To understand
this we must first of all remember the circumstances under which 
those
buildings were erected. A modern brick church, run up by contract in the 
shortest
possible time, has indeed but little sanctity about it; but in 
mediaeval
days faith was greater, and the influence of the outer world less 
prominent. In
very truth men prayed as they built our great cathedrals, and laid 
every stone
as though it had been an offering upon an altar. When this was the 
spirit of the
work, every such stone became a veritable talisman charged with 
the reverence
and devotion of the builder, and capable of radiating those same 
waves of
sensation upon others, so as to stir in them similar feelings. The 
crowds who
came afterwards to worship at the shrine not only felt these 
radiations,
but themselves strengthened them in turn by the reaction of their 
own feelings.
Still more is
this true of the interior decorations of the church. Every touch 
of the brush
in the colouring of a triptych, every stroke of the chisel in the 
sculpture of
a statue, was a direct offering to God. Thus the completed work of 
art is
surrounded by an atmosphere of reverence and love, and it distinctly 
sheds these
qualities upon the worshippers. All of them, rich and poor alike, 
feel something
of this effect, even though many of them may be too ignorant to 
receive the
added stimulus which its artistic excellence gives to those who are 
able to
appreciate it and to perceive all that it means. 
The sunlight
streaming through the splendid stained glass of those mediaeval 
windows
brings with it a glory that is not all of the physical world, for the 
clever
workmen who built up that marvellous mosaic did so for the love of God 
and the glory
of His saints, and so each fragment of glass is a talisman also. 
Remembering
always how the power conveyed into the statue or picture by the 
fervour of
the original artist has been perpetually reinforced through the ages 
by the
devotion of successive generations of worshippers, we come to understand 
the inner
meaning of the great influence which undoubtedly does radiate from 
such objects
as have been regarded as sacred for centuries. 
Such a
devotional effect as is described in connection with a picture or a 
statue may be
entirely apart from its value as a work of art. The bambino at the 
Ara Coeli at
Rome is a supremely inartistic object, yet it has unquestionably 
considerable
power in evoking devotional feeling among the masses that crowd to 
see it. If it
were really a work of art, that fact would add but little to its 
influence
over most of them, though of course it would in that case produce an 
additional
and totally different effect upon another class of persons to whom 
now it does
not in the least appeal. 
From these
considerations it is evident that these various ecclesiastical 
properties,
such as statues, pictures and other decorations, have a real value 
in the effect
which they produce upon the worshippers, and the fact that they 
thus have a
distinct power, which so many people can feel, probably accounts for 
the intense
hatred felt for them by the savage fanatics who miscalled themselves 
puritans.
They realised that the power which stood behind the Church worked to a 
great extent
through these objects as its channels, and though their loathing 
for all
higher influences was considerably tempered by fear, they yet felt that 
if they could
break up these centres of magnetism, that would to a certain 
extent cut
off the connection. And so in their revolt against all that was good 
and beautiful
they did all the harm that they could-- almost as much perhaps as 
those earlier
so-called Christians who, through sheer ignorance, ground up the 
most lovely
Grecian statues to furnish lime to build their wretched hovels. 
In all these
splendid mediaeval buildings the sentiment of devotion absolutely 
and literally
exudes from the walls, because for centuries devotional 
thought-forms
have been created in them by successive generations. In strong 
contrast to
this is the atmosphere of criticism and disputation which may be 
felt by any
sensitive person in the meeting-houses of some of the sects. In many 
a conventicle
in Scotland and in Holland this feeling stands out with startling 
prominence,
so as to give the impression that the great majority of the 
so-called
worshippers have had no thought of worship or devotion at all, but 
only of the
most sanctimonious self-righteousness, and of burning anxiety to 
discover some
doctrinal flaw in the wearisome sermon of their unfortunate 
minister. 
An absolutely
new church does not at first produce any of these effects; for in 
these days
workmen build a church with the same lack of enthusiasm as a factory. 
As soon as
the bishop consecrates it, a decided influence is set up as the 
effect of
that ceremony, but the consideration of that belongs to another 
chapter of
our work. A few years of use will charge the walls very effectively, 
and a much
shorter period than that will produce the result in a church where 
the sacrament
is reserved, or where perpetual adoration is offered. The Roman 
Catholic or
Ritualistic church soon becomes thoroughly affected, but the 
meeting-houses
of some of the dissenting sects which do not make a special point 
of devotion,
often produce for a long time an influence scarcely distinguishable 
from that
which is to be felt in an ordinary lecture hall. A fine type of 
devotional
influence is often to be found in the chapel of a convent or 
monastery,
though again the type differs greatly according to the objects which 
the monks or
the nuns set before themselves. 
TEMPLES 
I have been
taking Christian fanes as an example, because they are those which 
are most
familiar to me-- which will also be most familiar to the majority of my 
readers; also
perhaps because Christianity is the religion which has made a 
special point
of devotion, and has, more than any other, arranged for the 
simultaneous
expression of it in special buildings erected for that purpose. 
Among Hindus
the Vaishnavite has a devotion quite as profound as that of any 
Christian,
though unfortunately it is often tainted by expectation of favours to 
be given in
return. But the Hindu has no idea of anything like combined worship. 
Though on
great festivals enormous crowds attend the temples, each person makes 
his little
prayer or goes through his little ceremony for himself, and so he 
misses the
enormous additional effect which is produced by simultaneous action. 
Regarded solely
from the point of view of charging the walls of the temple with 
devotional
influence, this plan differs from the other in a way that we may 
perhaps
understand by taking a physical illustration of a number of sailors 
pulling at a
rope. We know that, when that is being done, a sort of chant is 
generally
used in order to ensure that the men shall apply their strength at 
exactly the
same moment; and in that way a much more effective pull is produced 
than would be
achieved if each man put out exactly the same strength, but 
applied it
just when he felt that he could, and without any relation to the work 
of the
others. 
Nevertheless
as the years roll by there comes to be a strong feeling in a 
Vaishnavite
temple-- as strong perhaps as that of the Christians, though quite 
different in
kind. Different again in quite another way is the impression 
produced in
the great temples dedicated to Shiva. In such a shrine as that at 
Madura, for
example, an exceedingly powerful influence radiates from the holy of 
holies. It is
surrounded by a strong feeling of reverential awe, almost of fear, 
and this so
deeply tinges the devotion of the crowds who come to worship that 
the very aura
of the place is changed by it. 
Completely
different again is the impression which surrounds a Buddhist temple. 
Of fear we
have there absolutely no trace whatever. We have perhaps less of 
direct
devotion, for to a large extent devotion is replaced by gratitude. The 
prominent
radiation is always one of joyfulness and love-- an utter absence of 
anything dark
or stern. 
Another
complete contrast is represented by the Muhammadan mosque; devotion of a 
sort is
present there also, but it is distinctly a militant devotion, and the 
particular
impression that it gives one is that of a fiery determination. One 
feels that
this population' s comprehension of their creed may be limited, but 
there is no
question whatever as to their dogged determination to hold by it. 
The Jewish
synagogue again is like none of the others, but has a feeling which 
is quite
distinct, and curiously dual-- exceptionally materialistic on one side, 
and on the
other full of a strong, pathetic longing for the return of vanished 
glories. 
SITES AND
RELICS 
A partial
recognition of another facet of the facts which we have been 
mentioning
accounts for the choice of the site of many religious edifices. A 
church or a
temple is frequently erected to commemorate the life and death of 
some saint,
and in the first instance such a fane is built upon a spot which has 
some special
connection with him. It may be the place where he died, the spot 
where he was
born, or where some important event of his life occurred. 
The Church of
the Nativity at Bethlehem and that of the Crucifixion at Jerusalem 
are instances
of this, as is also the great Stupa at Buddhagaya where the Lord 
Gautama
attained His Buddhahood, or the temple of the ` Bishanpad' where it is 
supposed that
Vishnu left His foot-mark. All such shrines are erected not so 
much from an
historical sense which wishes to indicate for the benefit of 
posterity the
exact spot where an important event happened, as with the idea 
that that
spot is especially blessed, especially charged with a magnetism which 
will remain
through the ages, and will radiate upon and benefit those who bring 
themselves
within the radius of its influence. Nor is this universal idea 
without
adequate foundation. 
The spot at
which the Lord BUDDHA gained the step which gives Him that august 
title is
charged with a magnetism which causes it to glow forth like a sun for 
anyone who
has clairvoyant vision. It is calculated to produce the strongest 
possible
magnetic effect on anyone who is naturally sensitive to such influence, 
or who
deliberately makes himself temporarily sensitive to such influence by 
putting
himself in an attitude of heartfelt devotion. 
In a recent
article on Buddhagaya in The Lotus Journal Alcyone wrote: 
When I sat
quietly under the tree for awhile with Mrs. Besant, I was able to see 
the Lord
BUDDHA, as He had looked when He sat there. Indeed, the record of His 
meditation is
still so strong that it needs only a little clairvoyance to see 
Him even now.
I had the advantage of having met Him in that life in 588 B.C., 
and become
one of His followers, so that it was easier for me to see Him again 
in this
present life. But I think almost anyone who is a little sensitive would 
see Him at
Buddhagaya by staying quite quiet for a little time because the air 
is full of
His influence, and even now there are always great Devas bathing in 
the
magnetism, and guarding the place. 
Other
churches, temples or dagobas are sanctified by the possession of relics of 
some Great
One, and here again the connection of ideas is obvious. It is 
customary for
those who are ignorant of these matters to ridicule the idea of 
paying
reverence to the fragment of bone which once belonged to a saint; but 
though
reverence paid to the bone may be out of place, the influence radiating 
from that
bone may nevertheless be quite a real thing, and well worthy of 
serious
attention. That the trade in relics has led, all the world over, to 
fraud on the
one hand and blind credulity on the other, is not a thing to be 
disputed; but
that by no means alters the fact that a genuine relic may be a 
valuable
thing. Whatever has been part of the physical body of a Great One, or 
even of the
garments which have clothed that physical body, is impregnated with 
his personal
magnetism. That means that it is charged with the powerful waves of 
thought and
feeling which used to issue from him, just as an electrical battery 
may be
charged. 
Such force as
it possesses is intensified and perpetuated by the thought-waves 
poured upon
it as the years roll by, by the faith and devotion of the crowds who 
visit the
shrine. This when the relic is genuine; but most relics are not 
genuine. Even
then, though they have no initial strength of their own, they 
acquire much
influence as time goes on, so that even a false relic is by no 
means without
effect. Therefore anyone putting himself into a receptive 
attitude, and
coming into the immediate neighbourhood of a relic, will receive 
into himself
its strong vibrations, and soon will be more or less attuned to 
them. Since
those vibrations are unquestionably better and stronger than any 
which he is
likely to generate on his own account, this is a good thing for him. 
For the time
being it lifts him on to a higher level, it opens a higher world to 
him; and
though the effect is only temporary, this cannot but be good for him-- 
an event
which will leave him, for the rest of his life, slightly better than if 
it had not
occurred. 
This is the
rationale of pilgrimages, and they are quite often really effective. 
In addition
to whatever may have been the original magnetism contributed by the 
holy man or
relic, as soon as the place of pilgrimage is established and numbers 
of people
begin to visit it, another factor comes into play, of which we have 
already
spoken in the case of churches and temples. The place begins to be 
charged with
the devotional feeling of all these hosts of visitors, and what 
they leave
behind reacts upon their successors. Thus the influence of one of 
these holy
places usually does not decrease as time passes, for if the original 
force tends
slightly to diminish, on the other hand it is constantly fed by new 
accessions of
devotion. Indeed, the only case in which the power ever fades is 
that of a
neglected shrine-- as, for example, when a country is conquered by 
people of
another religion, to whom the older shrines are as nothing. Even then 
the
influence, if it has been originally sufficiently strong, persists almost 
without
diminution for many centuries, and for this reason even ruins have often 
a powerful
force connected with them. 
The Egyptian
religion, for example, has been practised little since the 
Christian
era, yet no sensitive person can stand amidst the ruins of one of its 
temples
without being powerfully affected by the stream of its thought. In this 
particular
instance another force comes into play; the Egyptian architecture was 
of a definite
type, intentionally so erected for the purpose of producing a 
definite
impression upon its worshippers, and perhaps no architecture has ever 
fulfilled its
purpose more effectively. 
The shattered
fragments which remain still produce that effect to no 
inconsiderable
degree, even upon members of an alien race altogether out of 
touch with
the type of the old Egyptian civilisation. For the student of 
comparative
religion who happens to be sensitive, there can be no more 
interesting
experience than this-- to bathe in the magnetism of the older 
religions of
the world, to feel their influence as their devotees felt it 
thousands of
years ago, to compare the sensations of Thebes or Luxor with those 
of the
Parthenon or of the beautiful Greek temples of Girgenti, or those of 
Stonehenge
with the vast ruins of Yucatan. 
RUINS 
The religious
life of the old world can best be sensed in this way through the 
agency of its
temples; but it is equally possible in the same way to come into 
touch with
the daily life of those vanished nations, by standing among the ruins 
of their
palaces and their homes. This needs perhaps a keener clairvoyant sense 
than the
other. The force which permeates the temple is powerful because it is 
to a
considerable extent one-pointed-- because all through the centuries people 
have come to
it with one leading idea of prayer or devotion, and so the 
impression
made has been comparatively powerful. In their homes, on the other 
hand, they
have lived out their lives with all kinds of different ideas and 
warring
interests, so that the impressions often cancel one another. 
Nevertheless
there emerges, as years roll on, a sort of least common multiple of 
all their
feelings, which is characteristic of them as a race, and this can be 
sensed by one
who has the art of entirely suppressing those personal feelings of 
his own, which
are so far nearer and more vivid to him, and listening earnestly 
to catch the
faint echo of the life of those times so long ago. Such study often 
enables one
to take a juster view of history; manners and customs which startle 
and horrify
us, because they are so remote from our own, can in this way be 
contemplated
from the point of view of those to whom they were familiar; and in 
seeing them
thus, one often realises for the first time how entirely we have 
misconceived
those men of the past. 
Some of us
may remember how, in our childhood, ignorant though well-meaning 
relations
endeavoured to excite our sympathy by stories of Christian martyrs who 
were thrown
to the lions in the Colosseum at Rome, or reprobated with horror the 
callous
brutality which could assemble thousands to enjoy the combats between 
gladiators. I
am not prepared to defend the tastes and amusements of the ancient 
Roman
citizen, yet I think that any sensitive person who will go to the 
Colosseum at
Rome and (if he can for the moment escape from the tourist) sit 
down there
quietly, and let his consciousness drift backwards in time until he 
can sense the
real feeling of those enormous, wildly-excited audiences, will 
find that he
has done them a gross injustice. 
First, he
will realise that the throwing of Christians to the lions because of 
their
religious belief is a pious falsehood of the unprincipled early 
Christians.
He will find that the government of Rome was in religious matters 
distinctly
more tolerant than most European governments at the present day; that 
no person was
ever executed or persecuted on account of any religious opinion 
whatever, and
that those so-called Christians who were put to death suffered not 
in the least
because of their alleged religion, but because of conspiracy 
against the
State, or of crimes which we should all join in reprobating. 
He will find
that the government allowed and even encouraged gladiatorial 
combats, but
he will also find that only three classes of people took part in 
them. First,
condemned criminals-- men whose lives had been forfeited to the law 
of the time--
were utilised to provide a spectacle for the people, a degrading 
spectacle
certainly, but not in any way more so than many which receive popular 
approval at
the present day. The malefactor was killed in the arena, fighting 
either
against another malefactor or a wild beast; but he preferred to die 
fighting
rather than at the hands of the law, and there was always just a 
possibility
that if he fought well he might thereby contrive to earn the 
applause of
the fickle population; and so save his life. 
The second
class consisted of such prisoners of war as it was the fashion of the 
time to put
to death; but in this case also these were people whose death was 
already decided
upon, and this particular form of death utilised them for a 
certain form
of popular entertainment, and also gave them a chance of saving 
their lives,
at which they eagerly grasped. The third class were the 
professional
gladiators, men like the prize-fighters of the present day, men who 
took up this
horrible line of life for the sake of the popularity which it 
brought--
accepting it with their eyes fully open to its danger. 
I am not for
a moment suggesting that the gladiatorial show was a form of 
entertainment
which could possibly be tolerated by a really enlightened people; 
but if we are
to apply the same standard now, we shall have to admit that no 
enlightened
nations have yet come into existence, for it was no worse than the 
mediaeval tournaments,
than the cock-fighting and bear-baiting of a century ago, 
or than the
bull-fight or prize-fight of the present day. Nor is there anything 
to choose
between the brutality of its supporters and that of the people who go 
in vast
crowds to see how many rats a dog can kill in a minute, or that of the 
noble
sportsmen who (without the excuse of anything in the nature of a fair 
fight) go out
to slaughter hundreds of inoffensive partridges. 
We are
beginning to set a somewhat higher value on human life than they did in 
the days of
ancient Rome; but even so I would point out that that change does 
not mark a
difference between the ancient Roman race and its reincarnation in 
the English
people, for our own race was equally callous about wholesale 
slaughter up
to a century ago. The difference is not between us and the Romans, 
but between
us and our very recent ancestors; for the crowds which in the days 
of our
fathers went and jested at a public execution can hardly be said to have 
advanced much
since the time when they crowded the benches of the Colosseum. 
It is true
that the Roman Emperors attended those exhibitions, as the English 
Kings used to
encourage the tournament, and as the Kings of Spain even now 
patronise the
bull-fight; but in order to understand the varied motives which 
led them to
do this we must make a thorough study of the politics of the time-- 
a matter
which is quite outside the scope of this book. Here it must suffice to 
say that the
Roman citizens were a body of men in a very curious political 
position, and
that the authorities considered it necessary to provide them with 
constant
entertainments in order to keep them in a good humour. Therefore they 
hit upon this
method of utilising what they regarded as the necessary and 
customary
execution of criminals and rebels, in order to provide for the 
proletariat a
kind of entertainment which it enjoyed. A very brutal proletariat, 
you will say.
One must certainly admit that they were not highly advanced, but 
at least they
were far better than those much later specimens who took active 
part in the
unspeakable horrors of the French Revolution, for these last felt an 
active
delight in blood and cruelty, which were only unnoticed concomitants of 
the enjoyment
in the case of the Roman. 
Anyone who,
standing in the Colosseum, as I have said, will really allow himself 
to feel the
true spirit of those crowds of long ago, will understand that what 
appealed to
them was the excitement of the contest and the skill exhibited in 
it. Their
brutality consisted not in the fact that they enjoyed bloodshed and 
suffering,
but that in the excitement of watching the struggle they were able to 
ignore it--
which after all is very much what we do when we eagerly follow in 
the columns
of our newspapers the news from the seat of war in the present day. 
Level for
level, case for case, we of the fifth sub-race have made a slight 
advance from
the condition of the fourth sub-race of two thousand years ago; but 
that advance
is much slighter than our self-satisfaction has persuaded us. 
Every country
has its ruins, and in all alike the study of the older life is an 
interesting
study. A good idea of the wonderfully varied activities and 
interests of
the mediaeval monastic life in England may be obtained by visiting 
that queen of
ruins, Fountains Abbey, just as by visiting the stones of Carnac 
(not in Egypt
but in Morbihan) one may watch the midsummer rejoicings round the 
tantad or
sacred fire of the ancient Bretons. 
There is
perhaps less necessity to study the ruins of India, since daily life 
there has
remained so unchanged throughout the ages that no clairvoyant faculty 
is required
to picture it as it was thousands of years ago. None of the actual 
buildings of
India go back to any period of appreciable difference, and in most 
cases the
relics of the golden age of India under the great Atlantean monarchies 
are already
deeply buried. If we turn to mediaeval times, the effect of 
environment
and religion on practically the same people is curiously illustrated 
by the
difference in feeling between any ancient city of the north of India and 
the ruins of
Anuradhapura in Ceylon. 
MODERN CITIES
Just as our
ancestors of long ago lived their ordinary lives in what was to them 
the ordinary
commonplace way, and never dreamed that in doing so they were 
impregnating
the stones of their city walls with influences which would enable a 
psychometer
thousands of years afterwards to study the inmost secrets of their 
existence, so
we ourselves are impregnating our cities and leaving behind us a 
record which
will shock the sensibilities of the more developed men of the 
future. In
certain ways which will readily suggest themselves, all great towns 
are much
alike; but on the other hand there are differences of local atmosphere, 
depending to
some extent upon the average morality of the city, the type of 
religious
views most largely held in it, and its principal trades and 
manufactures.
For all these reasons each city has a certain amount of 
individuality--
and individuality which will attract some people and repel 
others,
according to their disposition. Even those who are not specially 
sensitive can
hardly fail to note the distinction between the feeling of Paris 
and that of
London, between Edinburgh and Glasgow, or between Philadelphia and 
Chicago. 
There are
some cities whose key-note is not of the present but of the past-- 
whose life in
earlier days was so much more forcible than it is now, that the 
present is
dwarfed by its comparison. The cities on the Zuyder Zee in Holland 
are an
instance of this; S. Albans in England is another. But the finest example 
which the
world has to offer is the immortal city of Rome. Rome stands alone 
among the
cities of the world in having three great and entirely separate 
interests for
the psychic investigator. First, and much the strongest, is the 
impression
left by the astonishing vitality and vigour of that Rome which was 
the centre of
the world, the Rome of the Republic and the Caesars; then comes 
another
strong and unique impression-- that of mediaeval Rome, the 
ecclesiastical
centre of the world: third and quite different from either, the 
modern Rome
of to-day, the political centre of the somewhat loosely integrated 
Italian
kingdom, and at the same time still an ecclesiastical centre of 
widespread
influence, though shorn of its glory and power. 
I first went
to Rome, I confess, with the expectation that the Rome of the 
mediaeval
Popes, with the assistance of all the world-thought that must for so 
long have
been centred upon it, and with the advantage also of being so much 
nearer to us
in time, would have to a considerable extent blotted out the life 
of the Rome
of the Caesars. I was startled to find that the actual facts are 
almost
exactly the reverse of that. The conditions of Rome in the Middle Ages 
were
sufficiently remarkable to have stamped an indelible character upon any 
other town in
the world; but so enormously stronger was the amazingly vivid life 
of that
earlier civilisation, that it still stands out, in spite of all the 
history that
has been made there since, as the one ineffaceable and dominating 
characteristic
of Rome. 
To the
clairvoyant investigator, Rome is (and ever will be) first of all the 
Rome of the
Caesars, and only secondarily the Rome of the Popes. The impression 
of
ecclesiastical history is all there, recoverable to the minutest detail; a 
bewildering
mass of devotion and intrigue, of insolent tyranny and real 
religious
feeling; a history of terrible corruption and of world-wide power, but 
rarely used
as well as it might have been. And yet, mighty as it is, it is 
dwarfed into
absolute insignificance by the grander power that went before it. 
There was a
robustness of faith in himself, a conviction of destiny, a resolute 
intention to
live his life to the utmost, and a certainty of being able to do 
it, about the
ancient Roman, which few nationalities of to-day can approach. 
PUBLIC
BUILDINGS 
Not only has
a city as a whole its general characteristics, but such of the 
buildings in
it as are devoted to special purposes have always an aura 
characteristic
of that purpose. The aura of a hospital, for example, is a 
curious
mixture; a preponderance of suffering, weariness and pain, but also a 
good deal of
pity for the suffering, and a feeling of gratitude on the part of 
the patients
for the kindly care which is taken of them. 
The
neighbourhood of a prison is decidedly to be avoided when a man is selecting 
a residence,
for from it radiate the most terrible gloom and despair and settled 
depression,
mingled with impotent rage, grief and hatred. Few places have on the 
whole a more
unpleasant aura around them; and even in the general darkness there 
are often
spots blacker than the rest, cells of unusual horror round which an 
evil
reputation hangs. For example, there are several cases on record in which 
the
successive occupants of a certain cell in a prison have all tried to commit 
suicide,
those who were unsuccessful explaining that the idea of suicide 
persistently
arose in their minds, and was steadily pressed upon them from 
without,
until they were gradually brought into a condition in which there 
seemed to be
no alternative. There have been instances in which such a feeling 
was due to
the direct persuasion of a dead man; but also and more frequently it 
is simply
that the first suicide has charged the cell so thoroughly with 
thoughts and
suggestions of this nature that the later occupants, being probably 
persons of no
great strength or development of will, have found themselves 
practically
unable to resist. 
More terrible
still are the thoughts which still hang round some of the dreadful 
dungeons of
mediaeval tyrannies, the oubliettes of Venice or the torture-dens of 
the
Inquisition. Just in the same way the very walls of a gambling-house radiate 
grief, envy,
despair and hatred, and those of the public-house, or house of 
ill-fame, absolutely
reek with the coarsest forms of sensual and brutal desire. 
CEMETERIES 
In such cases
as those mentioned above, it is easy enough for all decent people 
to escape the
pernicious influences simply by avoiding the place; but there are 
other instances
in which people are placed in undesirable situations through the 
indulgence of
natural good feeling. In countries which are not civilised enough 
to burn their
dead, survivors constantly haunt the graves in which decaying 
physical
bodies are laid; from a feeling of affectionate remembrance they gather 
often to pray
and meditate there, and to lay wreaths of flowers upon the tombs. 
They do not
understand that the radiations of sorrow, depression and 
helplessness
which so frequently permeate the churchyard or cemetery make it an 
eminently
undesirable place to visit. I have seen old people walking and sitting 
about in some
of our more beautiful cemeteries, and nursemaids wheeling along 
young
children in their perambulators to take their daily airing, neither of 
them probably
having the least idea that they are subjecting themselves and 
their charges
to influences which will most likely neutralise all the good of 
the exercise
and the fresh air; and this quite apart from the possibility of 
unhealthy
physical exhalations. 
UNIVERSITIES
AND SCHOOLS 
The ancient
buildings of our great universities are surrounded with magnetism of 
a special
type, which does much towards setting upon its graduates that peculiar 
seal which is
so readily distinguishable, even though it is not easy to say in 
so many words
exactly of what it consists. Men attending the university are of 
many and
various types-- reading men, hunting men, pious men, careless men; and 
sometimes one
college of a university attracts only one of these classes. In 
that case its
walls become permeated with those characteristics, and its 
atmosphere
operates to keep up its reputation. But on the whole the university 
is surrounded
with a pleasant feeling of work and comradeship, of association 
yet of
independence, a feeling of respect for the traditions of the Alma Mater 
and the
resolve to uphold them, which soon brings the new undergraduate into 
line with his
fellows and imposes upon him the unmistakable university tone. 
Not unlike
this is the influence exerted by the buildings of our great public 
schools. The
impressionable boy who comes to one of these soon feels about him a 
sense of
order and regularity and esprit de corps, which once gained can 
scarcely be
forgotten. Something of the same sort, but perhaps even more 
pronounced,
exists in the case of a battleship, especially if she is under a 
popular
captain and has been some little time in commission. There also the new 
recruit very
quickly finds his place, soon acquires the esprit de corps, soon 
learns to
feel himself one of a family whose honour he is bound to uphold. Much 
of this is
due to the example of his fellows and to the pressure of the 
officers; but
the feeling, the atmosphere of the ship herself undoubtedly bears 
a share in it
also. 
LIBRARIES,
MUSEUMS AND GALLERIES 
The studious
associations of a library are readily comprehensible, but those of 
museums and
picture-galleries are much more varied, as might be expected. In 
both these
latter cases the influence is principally from pictures or the 
objects
shown, and consequently our discussion of it is part of a later chapter. 
As far as the
influence of the actual buildings is concerned, apart from the 
objects
exhibited in them, the result is a little unexpected, for a prominent 
feature is a
quite overwhelming sense of fatigue and boredom. It is evident that 
the chief
constituent in the minds of the majority of the visitors is the 
feeling that
they know that they ought to admire or to be interested in this or 
that, whereas
as a matter of fact they are quite unable to achieve the least 
real
admiration or interest. 
THE
STOCK-YARDS OF CHICAGO 
The awful
emanations from the stock-yards in Chicago, and the effect they 
produce on
those who are so unfortunate as to live anywhere near them, have 
often been
mentioned in Theosophical literature. Mrs. Besant herself has 
described how
on her first visit she felt the terrible pall of depression which 
they cause
while she was yet in the train many miles from Chicago; and though 
other people,
less sensitive than she, might not be able to detect it so 
readily,
there can be no doubt that its influence lies heavily upon them 
whenever they
draw near to the theatre of that awful iniquity. On that spot 
millions of
creatures have been slaughtered and every one of them has added to 
its
radiations its own feelings of rage and pain and fear and the sense of 
injustice;
and out of it all has been formed one of the blackest clouds of 
horror at
present existing in the world. 
In this case
the results of the influence are commonly known, and it is 
impossible
for anyone to profess incredulity. The low level of morality and the 
exceeding
brutality of the slaughterman are matters of notoriety. In many of the 
murders
committed in that dreadful neighbourhood the doctors have been able to 
recognise a
peculiar twist of the knife which is used only by slaughtermen, and 
the very
children in the streets play no games but games of killing. When the 
world becomes
really civilised men will look back with incredulous horror upon 
such scenes
as these, and will ask how it could have been possible that people 
who in other
respects seem to have had some gleams of humanity and common sense, 
could permit
so appalling a blot upon their honour as is the very existence of 
this accursed
thing in their midst. 
SPECIAL
PLACES 
Any spot
where some ceremony has been frequently repeated, especially if in 
connection
with it a high ideal has been set up, is always charged with a 
decided
influence. For example, the hamlet of Oberammergau, where for many years 
at set
intervals the Passion Play has been reproduced, is full of thought-forms 
of the
previous performances, which react powerfully upon those who are 
preparing
themselves to take part in a modern representation. An extraordinary 
sense of
reality and of the deepest earnestness is felt by all those who assist, 
and it reacts
even upon the comparatively careless tourist, to whom the whole 
thing is
simply an exhibition. In the same way the magnificent ideals of Wagner 
are prominent
in the atmosphere of Bayreuth, and they make a performance there a 
totally
different thing from one by identically the same players anywhere else. 
SACRED MOUNTAINS
There are
instances in which the influence attached to a special place is 
non-human.
This is usually the case with the many sacred mountains of the world. 
I have
described in a previous chapter the great angels who inhabit the summit 
of the mountain
of Slieve-na-Mon in Ireland. It is their presence which makes 
the spot
sacred, and they perpetuate the influence of the holier magic of the 
leaders of
the Tuatha-de-Danaan, which they ordained to remain until the day of 
the future
greatness of Ireland shall come, and its part in the mighty drama of 
empire shall
be made clear. 
I have
several times visited a sacred mountain of a different type-- Adam' s 
Peak in
Ceylon. The remarkable thing about this peak is that it is held as a 
sacred spot
by people of all the various religions of the Island. The Buddhists 
give to the
temple on its summit the name of the shrine of the Sripada or holy 
footprint,
and their story is that when the Lord BUDDHA visited Ceylon in His 
astral body
(He was never there in the physical) He paid a visit to the tutelary 
genius of
that mountain, who is called by the people Saman Deviyo. Just as He 
was about to
depart, Saman Deviyo asked Him as a favour to leave on that spot 
some
permanent memory of His visit, and the BUDDHA in response is alleged to 
have pressed
His foot upon the solid rock, utilising some force which made upon 
it a definite
imprint or indentation. 
The story
goes on to say that Saman Deviyo, in order that this holy footprint 
should never
be defiled by the touch of man, and that the magnetism radiating 
from it
should be preserved, covered it with a huge cone of rock, which makes 
the present
summit of the mountain. On the top of this cone a hollow has been 
made which
roughly resembles a huge foot, and it seems probable that some of the 
more ignorant
worshippers believe that to be the actual mark made by the Lord 
BUDDHA; but
all the monks who know emphatically deny that, and point to the fact 
that this is
not only enormously too large to be a human footprint, but that it 
is also quite
obviously artificial. 
They explain
that it is made there simply to indicate the exact spot under which 
the true
footprint lies, and they point to the fact that there is unquestionably 
a crack
running all round the rock at some distance below the summit. The idea 
of a sacred
footprint on that summit seems to be common to the various 
religions,
but while the Buddhists hold it to be that of the Lord BUDDHA, the 
Tamil
inhabitants of the Island suppose it to be one of the numerous footprints 
of Vishnu,
and the Christians and the Muhammadans attribute it to Adam-- whence 
the name
Adam' s Peak. 
But it is
said that long before any of these religions had penetrated to the 
Island, long
before the time of the Lord BUDDHA Himself, this peak was already 
sacred to
Saman Deviyo, to whom the deepest reverence is still paid by the 
inhabitants--
as indeed it well may be, since He belongs to one of the great 
orders of the
angels who rank near to the highest among the Adepts. Although His 
work is of a
nature entirely different from ours, He also obeys the Head of the 
Great Occult
Hierarchy; He also is one of the Great White Brotherhood which 
exists only
for the purpose of forwarding the evolution of the world. 
The presence
of so great a being naturally sheds a powerful influence over the 
mountain and
its neighbourhood, and most of all over its summit, so that there 
is
emphatically a reality behind to account for the joyous enthusiasm so freely 
manifested by
the pilgrims. Here also, as at other shrines, we have in addition 
to this the
effect of the feeling of devotion with which successive generations 
of pilgrims
have impregnated the place, but though that cannot but be powerful, 
it is yet in
this case completely overshadowed by the original and ever-present 
influence of
the mighty entity who has done His work and kept His guard there 
for so many
thousands of years. 
SACRED RIVERS
There are
sacred rivers also-- the Ganges, for example. The idea is that some 
great person
of old has magnetised the source of the river with such power that 
all the water
that henceforth flows out from that source is in a true sense holy 
water,
bearing with it his influence and his blessing. This is not an 
impossibility,
though it would require either a great reserve of power in the 
beginning or
some arrangement for a frequent repetition. The process is simple 
and
comprehensible; the only difficulty is what may be called the size of the 
operation.
But what would be beyond the power of the ordinary man might possibly 
be quite easy
to some one at a much higher level. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER VIII 
BY CEREMONIES
IN
considering the influence exerted by our cathedrals and churches we have 
hitherto
concerned ourselves with that which radiates from their walls. That is, 
however, only
one small part of the effect that they are intended to produce 
upon the
community-- only incidental to the great plan of the Founder of the 
religion; and
even that plan in turn is only part of a still mightier scheme. 
Let me try to
explain. 
THE HIERARCHY
Theosophical
students are familiar with the fact that the direction of the 
evolution of
the world is vested in the Hierarchy of Adepts, working under one 
great Leader,
and that one of the departments of this government is devoted to 
the promotion
and management of religion. The official in charge of that 
department is
called in the East the Bodhisattva, and is known to us in the West 
as the
Christ, though that is really the title of only one of His incarnations. 
The plan of
the government is that during each world-period there shall be seven 
successive
Christs-- one for each root-race. Each of these in succession holds 
this office
of Bodhisattva, and during His term of office He is in charge of all 
the religious
thought of the world, not only of that of His own special 
root-race;
and He may incarnate many times. 
To illustrate
exactly what is meant, let us take the case of the previous holder 
of this
office, whom we know as the Lord Gautama. He was technically the 
Bodhisattva
of the Atlantean or fourth root-race, and in that He incarnated many 
times under
different names through a period spreading over several hundreds of 
thousands of
years; but though His special work thus lay with the fourth 
root-race, He
was in charge of the religions of the whole world, and 
consequently
He did not neglect the fifth root-race. In the earlier part of the 
history of
each of its sub-races He appeared and founded a special religion. In 
the first
sub-race He was the original Vyasa; the name which He bore in the 
second
sub-race has not been preserved in history. In the third sub-race He was 
the original
Zoroaster, the first of a long line who bore that name. For the 
great
religion of Egypt He was Thoth-- called by the Greeks Hermes Trismegistus, 
Hermes the
Thrice-Greatest, and among the early Greeks of the fourth sub-race He 
was Orpheus
the Bard, the founder of their mysteries. 
In each of
such births He drew round Him a number of earnest disciples, 
naturally in
many cases the same egos over again in new bodies, although He was 
steadily
adding to their number. The fourth root-race has by no means finished 
its
evolution, for the majority of the earth' s inhabitants still belong to it-- 
the vast
hosts of Chinese, Tartars, Japanese, Malays and all the undeveloped 
peoples of
the earth; but it has long passed its prime, the time when it was the 
dominant race
of the world, and when all the most advanced egos were incarnated 
in it. When
the glory had finally passed from it the Bodhisattva prepared for 
the
culminating act of His work, which involves for Him the attainment of that 
very high
level of Initiation which we call the Buddha-hood and also the 
resigning of
His office into the hands of His successor. 
The
preparation required was to bring together into one country, and even to a 
great extent
into part of that country, all the egos who had been His special 
followers in
the different lives which lay behind Him. Then He Himself 
incarnated
among them-- or perhaps more probably one of His highest disciples 
incarnated
among them and yielded up his body to the Bodhisattva when the 
appointed
time drew near; and as soon as in that body He had taken the great 
Initiation
and become the BUDDHA, He went forth to preach His Law. We must not 
attach to
that word Law the ordinary English meaning, for it goes very much 
further than
a mere set of commands. We must take it rather to signify His 
presentation
of the Truth about humanity and its evolution, and His 
instructions,
based upon that truth, as to how a man should act so as to 
co-operate in
the scheme of that evolution. 
Preaching
this Law He drew round Him all the hosts of His old disciples, and by 
the tremendous
power and magnetism which belonged to Him as the BUDDHA He 
enabled large
numbers of them to take that fourth step on the Path, to which is 
given the
name of the Arhat. He spent the rest of His life on earth in preaching 
and
consolidating this new faith, and when He passed away from physical life He 
definitely
handed over His office of director of religion to His successor, whom 
we call the
Lord Maitreya-- the Great One who is honoured all through India 
under the
name of Krishna and throughout the Christian world as Jesus the 
Christ. No
Theosophical student will be confused by this last expression, for he 
knows that
the Christ, who is the new Bodhisattva, took the body of the disciple 
Jesus, and
held it for the last three years of its life in order to found the 
Christian
religion. After its death He continued for some years to teach His 
more
immediate disciples from the astral world, and from that time to this He 
has employed
that disciple Jesus (now Himself a Master) to watch over and guide 
as far as may
be the destinies of His Church. 
Immediately
upon taking over the office, the Lord Maitreya availed Himself of 
the
extraordinarily good conditions left behind Him by the BUDDHA to make 
several
simultaneous attempts to promote the religious progress of the world. He 
not only
descended into an almost immediate incarnation Himself, but He at the 
same time
employed a number of those who had attained the Arhat level under the 
Lord BUDDHA,
and were now ready to take rebirth at once. From this band of 
disciples
came those whom we call Laotse and Confucius, who were sent to 
incarnate in
China. From them also came Plato, and from among their followers 
Phidias and
many another of the greatest of the Greeks. 
Within the
same area of time came the great philosopher Pythagoras, who is now 
our Master K.
H. He was not one of the immediate attendants of the Lord BUDDHA, 
as He had
already attained the Arhat level and was needed for work elsewhere, 
but He
travelled over to India to see Him and to receive His blessing. He also 
is upon the
line of the Bodhisattva; and may be regarded as one of His foremost 
lieutenants. 
Simultaneously
with all these efforts the Lord Maitreya Himself incarnated as 
Krishna, and
led in India a very wonderful life, upon which is founded the 
devotional
aspect of the religion of that country, which shows us perhaps the 
most fervent
examples of utter devotion to be seen anywhere in the world. This 
great
incarnation must not be confounded with that of the Krishna described in 
the
Mahabharata; the latter was a warrior and a statesman, and lived some two 
thousand five
hundred years before the time of which we are speaking. 
Along with
this came another great incarnation-- not this time from the 
department of
religion, but rather from one the departments of organisation-- 
the great
Shankaracharya, who travelled over India, founding the four chief 
monasteries
and the Sannyasi order. Some confusion has been created by the fact 
that each of
the long line of those who have since stood at the head of the 
monastic
organisations has also taken the title of Shankaracharya, so that to 
speak of
Shankaracharya is like speaking of the Pope without indicating which 
particular
holder of the Papal Chair is intended. The great Founder to whom we 
have referred
must not be confused with the better known holder of the office 
who some
seven hundred years after Christ wrote a voluminous series of 
commentaries
on the Bhagavad-Gita and some of the Upanishads. 
THE THREE
PATHS 
These three
great Teachers, who followed one another so quickly in India, 
furnished
between them a fresh impulse along each of the three paths. The BUDDHA 
founded a
religion giving minute directions for daily life, such as would be 
needed by
those who should follow the path of action, while Shankaracharya 
provided the
metaphysical teaching for those to whom the path is wisdom, and the 
Lord Maitreya
(manifesting as Krishna) provided a supreme object of devotion for 
those to whom
that is the most direct road to the truth. But Christianity must 
be considered
as the first effort of the new Bodhisattva to build a religion 
which should
go abroad into new countries, for His work as Krishna had been 
intended
especially for India. For those who penetrate behind the external 
manifestation
to the inner and mystical meaning, it will be significant that the 
ray or type
to which belong the Lord BUDDHA, the Bodhisattva and our Master K. 
H. is in a
special sense a manifestation of the second aspect of the Solar 
Deity-- the
second person of the Blessed Trinity. 
Religion has
an objective side to it; it acts not only from within by stirring 
up the hearts
and minds of its votaries, but also from without by arranging that 
uplifting and
refining influences shall play constantly upon their various 
vehicles. The
temple or the church is meant to be not merely a place of worship, 
but also a
centre of magnetism, through which spiritual forces can be poured out 
upon the
district surrounding it. People often forget that even the Great Ones 
must do their
work subject to the laws of nature, and that it is for them an 
actual duty
to economise their force as much as possible, and therefore to do 
whatever they
have to do in the easiest possible manner. 
In this case,
for example, if the object be to let spiritual force shine forth 
over a
certain district, it would not be economical to pour it down 
indiscriminately
everywhere, like rain, since that would require that the 
miracle of
its materialisation to a lower level should be performed in millions 
of places
simultaneously, once for every drop, as it were, and each representing 
a mighty
effort. Far simpler would it be to establish at certain points definite 
magnetic
centres, where the machinery of such materialisation should be 
permanently
set up, so that by pouring in only a little force from above it 
should
instantly be spread abroad over a considerable area. 
This had been
achieved in earlier religions by the establishment of strongly 
magnetised
centres, such as are offered by the image or by the lingam in a Hindu 
temple, by
the altar of the sacred fire among the Parsis, or by the statue of 
the Lord
BUDDHA among the Buddhists. As each worshipper comes before one of 
these symbols
and pours himself out in devotion or gratitude, he not only draws 
down the
answering force upon himself, but also causes a certain radiation upon 
those for
some distance round him. 
In founding
the religion of Christianity the Bodhisattva tried a new experiment 
with the view
of securing at least once daily a much more thorough and effective 
distribution
of spiritual force. The fact that new experiments of this sort may 
be tried--
that though the splendid system of the Hierarchy is unalterably 
founded upon
the Rock of Ages, it yet permits so much of freedom to its 
Officials--
is surely of deepest interest. It shows us that that organisation 
which is in
all the world the most utterly conservative is yet at the same time 
amazingly
liberal, and that the oldest form of government is also the most 
adaptable. It
is only in reference to the august Head of the Hierarchy that we 
can use to
the fullest extent those grand old words of a Collect of the Church 
of England:
“In His service is perfect freedom.” 
Perhaps the
most readily comprehensible way of explaining this new scheme will 
be to
describe the way in which I myself was first enabled to see something of 
the details
of its working. But first I must say a few words as to the present 
condition of
the Christian Church. 
As we see
that Church now, it is but a poor representation of what its Founder 
meant it to
be. Originally it had its higher mysteries, like all other faiths, 
and its three
stages of purification, illumination and perfection, through which 
its children
had to pass. With the expulsion as heretics of the great Gnostic 
doctors this
aspect of the truth was lost to the Church, and the only idea which 
it now places
before its members is the first of the three stages, and even that 
not understandingly.
Origen, one of the greatest men that it has ever produced, 
described
very clearly the two kinds of Christianity-- the somatic or physical, 
and the
spiritual-- saying that the former is meant only to attract the ignorant 
masses, but
that the latter is for those who know. In these days the Church has 
forgotten
that true spiritual and higher side of her teaching, and has busied 
herself with
pitiful attempts to explain that there is somehow or other a 
spiritual
side to the lower teaching which is practically all that she has left. 
CHRISTIAN
MAGIC 
Nevertheless,
and in spite of all this, the old magic which was instituted by 
her Founder
is still working and effective; so even in these days of her 
decadence she
is still definitely under guidance and control. There is still a 
real and a
vital power in the sacraments when truly performed-- the power of the 
Solar Deity
Himself-- and it comes through Him whom we call the Master Jesus, 
this being
His special department. 
It was not
He, but the Christ-- the Lord Maitreya-- who founded the religion, 
but
nevertheless the special charge of Christianity has been given into the 
hands of Him
who yielded His body for the work of the Founder. Belief in His 
personal
interest in the Christian Church has almost died out in many branches 
of it; the
members think of him as a Teacher who lived two thousand years ago 
rather than
as an active power in the Church to-day. They have forgotten that He 
is still a
living force, a real presence-- truly with us always, even to the end 
of the world,
as He has said. Not God in the idolatrous sense, yet the channel 
through which
the Divine power has reached many millions-- the official in 
charge of the
devotional department of the work of the Christ. 
The Church
has turned aside widely from the course originally marked out for it. 
It was meant
to meet all types; now it meets only one, and that very 
imperfectly.
The reconstruction of the links must come, and as intellectual 
activity is
the sign of our time and of the latest sub-race, the intellectual 
revival which
shows itself in the higher criticism has for its very purpose that 
of enabling
religion to meet another type of mind. If only the priests and the 
teachers had
the advantage of direct knowledge, they would be able to deal with 
and to help
their people in this crisis-- to guide their intellectual activity 
by means of
their own knowledge of the truth, and to keep alive in the hearts of 
their flock
the spirituality without which the intellectual effort can be but 
barren. 
Not only has
the Church almost entirely forgotten the original doctrine taught 
by her
Founder, but most of her priests have now little conception of the real 
meaning and
power of the ceremonies which they have to perform. It is probable 
that the
Christ foresaw that this would happen, for He has carefully arranged 
that the
ceremonies should work even though neither celebrants nor people have 
any
intelligent comprehension of their methods or their results. It would be 
difficult to
explain the outline of His plan to the average Christian; to the 
Theosophist
it ought to be more readily comprehensible, because he is already 
familiar with
some of the general ideas involved in it. 
We who are
students have often heard of the great reservoir of force which is 
constantly
being filled by the Nirmanakayas in order that its contents may be 
utilised by
members of the Adept Hierarchy and Their pupils for the helping of 
the evolution
of mankind. The arrangement made by the Christ with regard to His 
religion was
that a kind of special compartment of that reservoir should be 
reserved for
its use, and that a certain set of officials should be empowered by 
the use of
certain special ceremonies, certain words and signs of power, to draw 
upon it for
the spiritual benefit of their people. 
The scheme
adopted for passing on the power is what is called ordination, and 
thus we see
at once the real meaning of the doctrine of the apostolic 
succession,
about which there has been so much of argument. I myself held 
strongly to
that doctrine while officiating as a priest of the Church; but when 
through the
study of Theosophy I came to understand religion better and to take 
a far wider
view of life, I began to doubt whether in reality the succession 
meant so much
as we of the ritualistic party had supposed. With still further 
study
however, I was rejoiced to find that there was a real foundation for the 
doctrine, and
that it meant even much more than our highest schools had ever 
taught. 
THE MASS 
My attention
was first called to this by watching the effect produced by the 
celebration
of the Mass in a Roman Catholic Church in a little village in 
Sicily. Those
who know that most beautiful of islands will understand that one 
does not meet
with the Roman Catholic Church there in its most intellectual 
form, and
neither the priest nor the people could be described as especially 
highly
developed; yet the quite ordinary celebration of the Mass was a 
magnificent
display of the application of occult force. 
At the moment
of consecration the Host glowed with the most dazzling brightness; 
it became in
fact a veritable sun to the eye of the clairvoyant, and as the 
priest lifted
it above the heads of the people I noticed that two distinct 
varieties of
spiritual force poured forth from it, which might perhaps be taken 
as roughly
corresponding to the light of the sun and the streamers of his 
corona. The
first rayed out impartially in all directions upon all the people in 
the church;
indeed, it penetrated the walls of the church as though they were 
not there,
and influenced a considerable section of the surrounding country. 
This force
was of the nature of a strong stimulus and, its action was strongest 
of all in the
intuitional world, though it was also exceedingly powerful in the 
three higher
subdivisions of the mental world. Its activity was marked in the 
first, second
and third subdivisions of the astral also, but this was a 
reflection of
the mental, or perhaps an effect produced by sympathetic 
vibration.
Its effect upon the people who came within the range of its influence 
was
proportionate to their development. In a very few cases (where there was 
some slight
intuitional development) it acted as a powerful stimulant, doubling 
or trebling
for a time the amount of activity in those intuitional bodies and 
the radiance
which they were capable of emitting. But forasmuch as in most 
people the
intuitional matter was as yet almost entirely dormant, its chief 
effect was
produced upon the causal bodies of the inhabitants. 
Most of them,
again, were awake and partially responsive only as far as the 
matter of the
third subdivision of the mental world was concerned, and therefore 
they missed
much of the advantage that they might have gained if the higher 
parts of
their causal bodies had been in full activity. But at any rate every 
ego within
reach, without exception, received a distinct impetus and a distinct 
benefit from
that act of consecration, little though he knew or recked of what 
was being
done. 
The astral
vibrations also, though much fainter, produced a far-reaching effect, 
for at least
the astral bodies, of the Sicilians are usually thoroughly 
well-developed
so that it is not difficult to stir their emotions. Many people 
far away from
the church, walking along the village street or pursuing their 
various
avocations upon the lonely hill-sides, felt for a moment a thrill of 
affection or
devotion, as this great wave of spiritual peace and strength passed 
over the
country-side, though assuredly they never dreamt of connecting it with 
the Mass
which was being celebrated in their little cathedral. 
It at once
becomes evident that we are here in the presence of a grand and 
far-reaching
scheme. Clearly one of the great objects, perhaps the principal 
object, of
the daily celebration of the Mass is that every one within reach of 
it shall
receive at least once each day one of these electric shocks which are 
so well
calculated to promote any growth of which he is capable. Such an 
outpouring of
force brings to each person whatever he has made himself capable 
of receiving;
but even the quite undeveloped and ignorant cannot but be somewhat 
the better
for the passing touch of a noble emotion, while for the few more 
advanced it
means a spiritual uplifting the value of which it would be difficult 
to
exaggerate. 
I said that
there was a second effect, which I compared to the streamers of the 
sun' s
corona. The light which I have just described poured forth impartially 
upon all, the
just and the unjust, the believers and the scoffers. But this 
second force
was called into activity only in response to a strong feeling of 
devotion on
the part of an individual. At the elevation of the Host all members 
of the
congregation duly prostrated themselves-- some apparently as a mere 
matter of
habit, but some also with a strong upwelling of deep devotional 
feeling. 
The effect as
seen by clairvoyant sight was most striking and profoundly 
impressive,
for to each of these latter there darted from the uplifted Host a 
ray of fire,
which set the higher part of the astral body of the recipient 
glowing with
the most intense ecstasy. Through the astral body, by reason of its 
close
relation with it, the intuitional vehicle was also strongly affected; and 
although in
none of these peasants could it be said to be in any way awakened, 
its growth
within its shell was unquestionably distinctly stimulated, and its 
capability of
instinctively influencing the astral was enhanced. For while the 
awakened
intuition can consciously mould and direct the astral, there is a great 
storehouse of
force in even the most undeveloped intuitional vehicle, and this 
shines out
upon and through the astral body, even though it be unconsciously and 
automatically.
I was
naturally intensely interested in this phenomenon, and I made a point of 
attending
various functions at different churches in order to learn whether what 
I had seen on
this occasion was invariable, or, if it varied, when and under 
what
conditions. I found that at every celebration the same results were 
produced, and
the two forces which I have tried to describe were always in 
evidence--
the first apparently without any appreciable variation, but the 
display of
the second depending upon the number of really devotional people who 
formed part
of the congregation. 
The elevation
of the Host immediately after its consecration was not the only 
occasion upon
which this display of force took place. When the benediction was 
given with
the Blessed Sacrament exactly the same thing happened. On several 
occasions I
followed the procession of the Host through the streets, and every 
time that a
halt was made at some half-ruined church and the benediction was 
given from
its steps, precisely the same double phenomenon was produced. I 
observed that
the reserved Host upon the altar of the church was all day long 
steadily
pouring forth the former of the two influences, though not so strongly 
as at the
moment of elevation or benediction. One might say that the light 
glowed upon
the altar without ceasing, but shone forth as a sun at those moments 
of special
effort. The action of the second forces, the second ray of light, 
could also be
evoked from the reserved Sacrament upon the altar, apparently at 
any time,
though it seemed to me somewhat less vivid than the outpouring 
immediately
after the consecration. 
Everything
connected with the Host-- the tabernacle, the monstrance, the altar 
itself, the
priest' s vestments, the insulating humeral veil, the chalice and 
paten-- all
were strongly charged with this tremendous magnetism, and all were 
radiating it
forth, each in its degree. 
A third
effect is that which is produced upon the communicant. He who receives 
into his body
a part of that dazzling centre, from which flow the light and the 
fire, becomes
himself for the time a similar centre, and radiates power in his 
turn. The
tremendous waves of force which he has thus drawn into the closest 
possible
association with himself cannot but seriously influence his higher 
bodies. For
the time these waves raise his vibrations into harmony with 
themselves,
thus producing a feeling of intense exaltation. This, however, is a 
considerable
strain upon his various vehicles, which naturally tend gradually to 
fall back
again to their normal rates. For a long time the indescribably vivid 
higher
influence struggles against this tendency to slow down, but the dead 
weight of the
comparatively enormous mass of the man' s own ordinary undulations 
acts as a
drag upon even its tremendous energy, and gradually brings it and 
themselves
down to the common level. But undoubtedly every such experience draws 
the man just
an infinitesimal fraction higher than he was before. He has been 
for a few
moments or even for a few hours in direct contact with the forces of a 
world far
higher than any that he himself can otherwise touch. 
Naturally,
having watched all this, I then proceeded to make further 
investigations
as to how far this outflowing of force was affected by the 
character,
the knowledge or the intention of the priest. I may sum up briefly 
the results
of the examination of a large number of cases in the form of two or 
three axioms,
which will no doubt at first sight seem surprising to many of my 
readers. 
ORDINATION 
First, only
those priests who have been lawfully ordained, and have the 
apostolic
succession, can produce this effect at all. Other men, not being part 
of this
definite organisation, cannot perform this feat, no matter how devoted 
or good or
saintly they may be. Secondly, neither the character of the priest, 
nor his
knowledge, nor ignorance as to what he is really doing, affects the 
result in any
way whatever. 
If one thinks
of it, neither of these statements ought to seem to us in any way 
astonishing,
since it is obviously a question of being able to perform a certain 
action, and
only those who have passed through a certain ceremony have received 
the gift of
the ability to perform it. Just in the same way, in order to be able 
to speak to a
certain set of people one must know their language, and a man who 
does not know
that language cannot communicate with them, no matter how good and 
earnest and
devoted he may be. Also, his ability to communicate with them is not 
affected by
his private character, but only by the one fact that he has, or has 
not, the
power to speak to them which is conferred by a knowledge of their 
language. I
do not for a moment say that these other considerations are without 
their due
effect; I shall speak of that later, but what I do say is that no one 
can draw upon
this particular reservoir unless he has received the power to do 
so which
comes from a due appointment given according to the direction left by 
the Christ. 
I think that
we can see a very good reason why precisely this arrangement has 
been made.
Some plan was needed which should put a splendid outpouring of force 
within the
reach of every one simultaneously in thousands of churches all over 
the world. I
do not say that it might not be possible for a man of most 
exceptional
power and holiness to call down through the strength of his devotion 
an amount of
higher force commensurate with that obtained through the rites 
which I have
described. But men of such exceptional power are always excessively 
rare, and it
could never at any time of the world' s history have been possible 
to find
enough of them simultaneously to fill even one thousandth part of the 
places where
they are needed. But here is a plan whose arrangement is to a 
certain
extent mechanical; it is ordained that a certain act when duly performed 
shall be the
recognised method of bringing down the force; and this can be done 
with
comparatively little training by any one upon whom the power is conferred. 
A strong man
is needed to pump up water, but any child can turn on a tap. It 
needs a
strong man to make a door and to hang it in its place, but when it is 
once on its
hinges any child can open it. 
Having myself
been a priest of the Church of England, and knowing how keen are 
the disputes
as to whether that Church really has the apostolic succession or 
not, I was
naturally interested in discovering whether its priests possessed 
this power. I
was much pleased to find that they did, and I suppose we may take 
that as
definitely settling the much-disputed Parker question, and with it the 
whole
controversy as to the authenticity of the Orders of the Church of England. 
I soon found
by examination that ministers of what are commonly called 
dissenting
sects did not possess this power, no matter how good and earnest they 
might be.
Their goodness and earnestness produced plenty of other effects which 
I shall presently
describe, but their efforts did not draw upon the particular 
reservoir to
which I have referred. 
I was
especially interested in the case of one such minister whom I knew 
personally to
be a good and devout man, and also a well-read Theosophist. Here 
was a man who
knew much more about the real meaning of the act of consecration 
than nine
hundred and ninety-nine out of a thousand of the priests who 
constantly
perform it; and yet I am bound to admit that his best effort did not 
produce this
particular effect, while the others as unquestionably did. (Once 
more, of
course he produced other things which they did not-- of which more 
anon.) That
at first somewhat surprised me, but I soon saw that it could not 
have been
otherwise. Suppose, for example, that a certain sum of money is left 
by a rich
Freemason for distribution among his poorer brethren, the law would 
never
sanction the division of that money among any others than the Freemasons 
for whom it
was intended; and the fact that other poor people outside the 
Masonic body
might be more devout or more deserving would not weigh with it in 
the slightest
degree. 
Another point
which interested me greatly was the endeavour to discover to what 
extent, if at
all, the intention of the priest affected the result produced. In 
the Roman
Church I found many priests who went through the ceremony somewhat 
mechanically,
and as a matter of daily duty, without any decided thought on the 
subject; but
whether from ingrained reverence or from long habit, they always 
seemed to
recover themselves just before the moment of consecration and to 
perform that
act with a definite intention. 
THE ANGLICAN
CHURCH 
I turned then
to what is called the Low Church division of the Anglican 
community to
see what would happen with them, because I knew that many of them 
would reject
altogether the name of priest, and though they might follow the 
rubric in
performing the act of consecration, their intention in doing it would 
be exactly
the same as that of ministers of various denominations outside the 
Church. Yet I
found that the Low Churchman could and did produce the effect, and 
that the
others outside did not. Hence I infer that the ` intention' which is 
always said
to be required must be no more than the intention to do whatever the 
Church means,
without reference to the private opinion of the particular priest 
as to what
that meaning is. I have no doubt that many people will think that all 
this ought to
be quite differently arranged, but I can only report faithfully 
what my
investigations have shown me to be the fact. 
I must not
for a moment be understood as saying that the devotion and 
earnestness,
the knowledge and the good character of the officiant make no 
difference.
They make a great difference; but they do not affect the power to 
draw from
that particular reservoir. When the priest is earnest and devoted his 
whole feeling
radiates out upon his people and calls forth similar feelings in 
such of them
as are capable of expressing them. Also his devotion calls down its 
inevitable
response, as shown in the illustration in Thought-Forms, and the 
down-pouring
of force thus evoked benefits his congregation as well as himself; 
so that a
priest who throws his heart and soul into the work which he does may 
be said to
bring a double blessing upon his people, though the second class of 
influence can
scarcely be considered as being of the same order of magnitude as 
the first.
This second outpouring, which is drawn down by devotion itself, is of 
course to be
found just as often outside the Church as within it. 
Another
factor to be taken into account is the feeling of the congregation. If 
their feeling
is devout and reverent it is of immense help to their teacher, and 
it enormously
increases the amount of spiritual energy poured down as a response 
to devotion.
The average intellectual level of the congregation is also a matter 
to be
considered, for a man who is intelligent as well as pious has within him a 
devotion of a
higher order than his more ignorant brother, and is therefore able 
to evoke a
fuller response. On the other hand in many places of worship where 
much is made
of the exercise of the intellectual faculties-- where for example 
the sermon
and not the service is thought of as the principal feature-- there is 
scarcely any
real devotion, but instead of it a horrible spirit of criticism and 
of spiritual
pride which effectually prevents the unfortunate audience from 
obtaining any
good results at all from what they regard as their spiritual 
exercises. 
Devotional
feeling or carelessness, belief or scepticism on the part of the 
congregation
make no difference whatever to the downflow from on high when there 
is a priest
in charge who has the requisite qualifications to draw from the 
appointed
reservoir. But naturally these factors make a difference as to the 
number of
rays sent out from the consecrated Host, and so to the general 
atmosphere of
the Church. 
THE MUSIC 
Another very
important factor in the effect produced is the music which is used 
in the course
of the service. Those who have read Thought-Forms will remember 
the striking
drawings that are there given of the enormous and splendid mental, 
astral and
etheric erections which are built up by the influence of sound. The 
general
action of sound is a question which I shall take up in another chapter, 
touching here
only upon that side of it which belongs to the services of the 
Church. 
Here is
another direction, unsuspected by the majority of those who participate 
in them, in
which these services are capable of producing a wonderful and 
powerful
effect. The devotion of the Church has always centred principally round 
the offering
of the Mass as an act of the highest and purest adoration possible, 
and
consequently the most exalted efforts of its greatest composers have been in 
connection
with this service also. Here we may see one more example of the 
wisdom with
which the arrangements were originally made, and of the crass 
ineptitude of
those who have so blunderingly endeavoured to improve them. 
THE
THOUGHT-FORMS 
Each of the
great services of the Church (and more especially the celebration of 
the
Eucharist) was originally designed to build up a mighty ordered form, 
expressing
and surrounding a central idea-- a form which would facilitate and 
direct the
radiation of the influence upon the entire village which was grouped 
round the
church. The idea of the service may be said to be a double one: to 
receive and
distribute the great outpouring of spiritual force, and to gather up 
the devotion
of the people, and offer it before the throne of God. 
In the case
of the Mass as celebrated by the Roman or the Greek Church, the 
different
parts of the service are grouped round the central act of consecration 
distinctly
with a view to the symmetry of the great form produced, as well as to 
their direct
effect upon the worshippers. The alterations made in the English 
Prayer Book
in 1552 were evidently the work of people who were ignorant of this 
side of the
question, for they altogether disturbed that symmetry-- which is one 
reason why it
is an eminently desirable thing for the Church of England that it 
should as
speedily as possible so arrange its affairs as to obtain permission to 
use as an
alternative the Mass of King Edward VI according to the Prayer Book of 
1549. 
One of the
most important effects of the Church Service, both upon the immediate 
congregation
and upon the surrounding district, has always been the creation of 
these
beautiful and devotional thought-forms, through which the downpouring of 
life and
strength from higher worlds can more readily take effect. These are 
better made
and their efficiency enhanced when a considerable portion of those 
who take part
in the service do so with intelligent comprehension, yet even when 
the devotion
is ignorant the result is still beautiful and uplifting. 
Most of the
sects, which unhappily broke away from the Church, entirely lost 
sight of this
inner and more important side of public worship. The idea of the 
service
offered to God almost disappeared, and its place was largely taken by 
the fanatical
preaching of narrow theological dogmas which were always 
unimportant
and frequently ridiculous. Readers have sometimes expressed surprise 
that those
who write from the occult standpoint should seem so decidedly to 
favour the
practices of the Church, rather than those of the various sects whose 
thought is in
many ways more liberal. The reason is shown precisely in this 
consideration
of the inner side of things on which we are now engaged. 
The occult
student recognises most fully the value of the effort which made 
liberty of
conscience and of thought possible; yet he cannot but see that those 
who cast
aside the splendid old forms and services of the Church lost in that 
very act
almost the whole of the occult side of their religion, and made of it 
essentially a
selfish and limited thing-- a question chiefly of “personal 
salvation”
for the individual, instead of the grateful offering of worship to 
God, which is
in itself the never-failing channel through which the Divine Love 
is poured
forth upon all. 
The
attainment of mental freedom was a necessary step in the process of human 
evolution;
the clumsy and brutal manner in which it was obtained, and the 
foolishness
of the excesses into which gross ignorance led its champions, are 
responsible
for many of the deplorable results which we see at the present day. 
The same
savage, senseless lust for wanton destruction that moved Cromwell' s 
brutal
soldiers to break priceless statues and irreplaceable stained glass, has 
deprived us
also of the valuable effect produced in higher worlds by perpetual 
prayers for
the dead, and by the practically universal devotion of the common 
people to the
saints and angels. Then the great mass of the people was 
religious--
even though ignorantly religious; now it is frankly and even 
boastfully
irreligious. Perhaps this transitory stage is a necessary one, but it 
can hardly be
considered in itself either beautiful or satisfactory. 
THE EFFECT OF
DEVOTION 
No other
service has an effect at all comparable to that of the celebration of 
the Mass, but
the great musical forms may of course appear at any service where 
music is
used. In all the other services (except indeed the Catholic Benediction 
of the
Blessed Sacrament) the thought-forms developed and the general good which 
is done
depend to a great extent upon the devotion of the people. Now devotion, 
whether
individual or collective, varies much in quality. The devotion of the 
primitive
savage, for example, is usually greatly mingled with fear, and the 
chief idea in
his mind in connection with it is to appease a deity who might 
otherwise
prove vindictive. But little better than this is much of the devotion 
of men who
consider themselves civilised, for it is a kind of unholy bargain-- 
the offering
to the Deity of a certain amount of devotion if He on His side will 
extend a
certain amount of protection or assistance. 
Such
devotion, being entirely selfish and grasping in its nature, produces 
results only
in the lower types of astral matter, and exceedingly 
unpleasant-looking
results they are in many cases. The thought-forms which they 
create are
often shaped like grappling-hooks, and their forces move always in 
closed
curves, reacting only upon the man who sends them forth, and bringing 
back to him
whatever small result they may be able to achieve. The true, pure, 
unselfish
devotion is an outrush of feeling which never returns to the man who 
gave it
forth, but constitutes itself in very truth a cosmic force producing 
widespread
results in higher worlds. 
Though the
force itself never returns, the man who originates it becomes the 
centre of a
downpour of divine energy which comes in response, and so in his act 
of devotion
he has truly blessed himself, even though at the same time he has 
also blessed
many others as well, and in addition to that has had the unequalled 
honour of
contributing to the mighty reservoir of the Nirmanakaya. Anyone who 
possesses the
book Thought-Forms may see in it an attempt to represent the 
splendid blue
spire made by devotion of this type as it rushes upwards, and he 
will readily
understand how it opens a way for a definite outpouring of the 
divine force
of the Solar Deity. 
He is pouring
forth His wonderful vital energy on every level in every world, 
and naturally
the outpouring belonging to a higher world is stronger and fuller 
and less
restricted than that upon the world below. Normally, each wave of this 
great force
acts in its own world alone, and cannot or does not move 
transversely
from one world to another; but it is precisely by means of 
unselfish
thought and feeling, whether it be of devotion or of affection, that a 
temporary
channel is provided through which the force normally belonging to a 
higher world
may descend to a lower, and may produce there results which, 
without it,
could never have come to pass. 
Every man who
is truly unselfish frequently makes himself such a channel, though 
of course on
a comparatively small scale; but the mighty act of devotion of a 
whole vast
congregation, where it is really united, and utterly without thought 
of self,
produces the same result on an enormously greater scale. Sometimes 
though
rarely, this occult side of religious services may be seen in full 
activity, and
no one who has even once had the privilege of seeing such a 
splendid
manifestation as this can for a moment doubt the hidden side of a 
Church
service is of an importance infinitely greater than anything purely 
physical. 
Such an one
would see the dazzling blue spiral or dome of the highest type of 
astral matter
rushing upwards into the sky, far above the image of it in stone 
which
sometimes crowns the physical edifice in which the worshippers are 
gathered; he
would see the blinding glory which pours down through it and 
spreads out
like a great flood of living light over all the surrounding region. 
Naturally,
the diameter and the height of the spire of devotion determine the 
opening made
for the descent of the higher life, while the force which expresses 
itself in the
rate at which the devotional energy rushes upwards has its 
relation to
the rate at which the corresponding down-pouring can take place. The 
sight is
indeed a wonderful one, and he who sees it can never doubt again that 
the unseen
influences are more than the seen, nor can he fail to realise that 
the world
which goes on its way heedless of the devotional man, or perhaps even 
scornful of
him, owes to him all the time far more than it knows. 
The power of
the ordained priest is a reality in other ceremonies than the 
celebration
of the eucharist. The consecration of the water in the rite of 
baptism, or
of the holy water which is to be distributed to the faithful or kept 
at the
entrance of the church, pours into it a strong influence, which enables 
it in each
case to perform the part assigned to it. The same is true of other 
consecrations
and benedictions which come in the course of the regular work of 
the priest,
though in many of these it seems that a somewhat larger proportion 
of the effect
is produced by the direct magnetism of the priest himself, and the 
amount of
that of course depends upon the energy and earnestness with which he 
performs his
part of the ceremony. 
HOLY WATER 
We shall find
it interesting to study the hidden side of some of these minor 
services of
the Church, and the work done by her priests. Into the making of 
holy water,
for example, the mesmeric element enters very strongly. The priest 
first takes
clean water and clean salt, and then proceeds to demagnetise them, 
to remove
from them any casual exterior influences with which they may have been 
permeated.
Having done this very thoroughly, he then charges them with spiritual 
power, each
separately and with many earnest repetitions, and then finally with 
further
fervent adjurations he casts the salt into the water in the form of a 
cross, and
the operation is finished. 
If this
ceremony be properly and carefully performed the water becomes a highly 
effective
talisman for the special purposes for which it is charged-- that it 
shall drive
away from the man who uses it all worldly and warring thought, and 
shall turn
him in the direction of purity and devotion. The student of occultism 
will readily
comprehend how this must be so, and when he sees with astral sight 
the discharge
of the higher force which takes place when anyone uses or 
sprinkles
this holy water, he will have no difficulty in realising that it must 
be a powerful
factor in driving away undesirable thought and feeling, and 
quelling all
irregular vibrations of the astral and mental bodies. 
In every case
where the priest does his work the spiritual force flows through, 
but he may
add greatly to it by the fervour of his own devotion, and the 
vividness
with which he realises what he is doing. 
BAPTISM 
The sacrament
of baptism, as originally administered, had a real and beautiful 
hidden side.
In those older days the water was magnetised with a special view to 
the effect of
its vibrations upon the higher vehicles, so that all the germs of 
good
qualities in the unformed astral and mental bodies of the child might 
thereby
receive a strong stimulus, while at the same time the germs of evil 
might be
isolated and deadened. The central idea no doubt was to take this early 
opportunity
of fostering the growth of the good germs, in order that their 
development
might precede that of the evil-- in order that when at a later 
period the
latter germs begin to bear their fruit, the good might already be so 
far evolved
that the control of the evil would be a comparatively easy matter. 
This is one
side of the baptismal ceremony; it has also another aspect, as 
typical of
the Initiation towards which it is hoped that the young member of the 
Church will
direct his steps as he grows up. It is a consecration and a setting 
apart of the
new set of vehicles to the true expression of the soul within, and 
to the
service of the Great White Brotherhood; yet is also has its occult side 
with regard
to these new vehicles themselves, and when the ceremony is properly 
and
intelligently performed there can be no doubt that its effect is a powerful 
one. 
UNION IS
STRENGTH 
The economy
and efficiency of the whole scheme of the Lord Maitreya depend upon 
the fact that
much greater powers can easily be arranged for a small body of 
men, who are
spiritually prepared to receive them, than could possibly be 
universally
distributed without a waste of energy which could not be 
contemplated
for a moment. In the Hindu scheme, for example, every man is a 
priest for
his own household, and therefore we have to deal with millions of 
such priests
of all possible varieties of temperament, and not in any way 
specially
prepared. The scheme of the ordination of priests gives a certain 
greater power
to a limited number, who have by that very ordination been 
specially set
apart for the work. 
Carrying the
same principle a little further, a set of still higher powers are 
given to a
still smaller number-- the bishops. They are made channels for the 
force which
confers ordination, and for the much smaller manifestation of the 
same force
which accompanies the rite of confirmation. The hidden side of these 
ceremonies is
always one of great interest to the student of the realities of 
life. There
are many cases now, unfortunately, where all these things are mere 
matters of
form, and though that does not prevent their result, it does minimise 
it; but where
the old forms are used as they were meant to be used, the unseen 
effect is out
of all proportion to anything that is visible in the physical 
world. 
CONSECRATION 
To the bishop
also is restricted the power of consecrating a church or a 
churchyard,
and the occult side of this is a really pretty sight. It is 
interesting
to watch the growth of the sort of fortification which the officiant 
builds as he
marches round uttering the prescribed prayers and verses; to note 
the expulsion
of any ordinary thought-forms which may happen to have been there, 
and the
substitution for them of the orderly and devotional forms to which 
henceforth
this building is supposed to be dedicated. 
THE BELLS 
There are
many minor consecrations which are of great interest-- the blessing of 
bells, for example.
The ringing of bells has a distinct part in the scheme of 
the Church,,
which in these days seems but little understood. The modern theory 
appears to be
that they are meant to call people together at the time when the 
service is
about to be performed, and there is no doubt that in the Middle Ages, 
when there
were no clocks or watches, they were put to precisely this use. From 
this
restricted view of the intention of the bell has grown the idea that 
anything
which makes a noise will serve the purpose, and in most towns of 
England
Sunday morning is made into a purgatory by the simultaneous but 
discordant
clanging of a number of unmusical lumps of metal. 
At intervals
we recognise the true use of the bells, as when we employ them on 
great festivals
or on occasions of public rejoicing; for a peal of musical 
bells,
sounding harmonious notes, is the only thing which was contemplated by 
the original
plan, and these were intended to have a double influence. Some 
remnant of
this still remains, though but half understood, in the science of 
campanology,
and those who know the delights of the proper performance of a 
trip-bob-major
or a grandsire-bob-cator will perhaps be prepared to hear how 
singularly
perfect and magnificent are the forms which are made by them. 
This then was
one of the effects which the ordered ringing of the bells was 
intended to
produce. It was to throw out a stream of musical forms repeated over 
and over
again, in precisely the same way, and for precisely the same purpose, 
as the
Christian monk repeats hundreds of Ave Marias or the northern Buddhist 
spends much
of his life in reiterating the mystic syllables Om Mani Padme Hum, 
or many a
Hindu makes a background to his life by reciting the name Sita Ram. 
A particular
thought-form and its meaning were in this way impressed over and 
over again
upon all the astral bodies within hearing. The blessing of the bells 
was intended
to add an additional quality to these undulations, of whatever kind 
they may have
been. The ringing of the bells in different order would naturally 
produce
different forms; but whatever the forms may be, they are produced by the 
vibration of
the same bells, and if these bells are, to begin with, strongly 
charged with
a certain type of magnetism, every form made by them will bear with 
it something
of that influence. It is as though the wind which wafts to us 
snatches of
music should at the same time bear with it a subtle perfume. So the 
bishop who
blesses the bells charges them with much the same intent as he would 
bless holy
water-- with the intention that, wherever this sound shall go, all 
evil thought
and feeling shall be banished and harmony and devotion shall 
prevail-- a
real exercise of magic, and quite effective when the magician does 
his work
properly. 
The sacring
bell, which is rung inside the church, at the moment of the reciting 
of the
Tersanctus or the elevation of the Host, has a different intention. In 
the huge
cathedrals which mediaeval piety erected, it was impossible for all the 
worshippers
to hear what the priest was saying in the recitation of the Mass, 
even before
the present system of what is called “recitation in secret” was 
adopted. And
therefore the server, who is close to the altar and follows the 
movements of
the priest, has it among his duties to announce in this way to the 
congregation
when these critical points of the service are reached. 
The bell
which is often rung in Hindu or Buddhist temples has yet another 
intention.
The original thought here was a beautiful and altruistic one. When 
some one had
just uttered an act of devotion or made an offering, there came 
down in reply
to that a certain outpouring of spiritual force. This charged the 
bell among
other objects, and the idea of the man who struck it was that by so 
doing he
would spread abroad, as far as the sound of the bell could reach, the 
vibration of
this higher influence while it was still fresh and strong. Now it 
is to be
feared that the true signification has been so far forgotten that there 
are actually
some who believe it necessary in order to attract the attention of 
their deity! 
INCENSE 
The same idea
carried out in a different way shows itself to us in the blessing 
of the
incense before it is burned. For the incense has always a dual 
significance.
It ascends before God as a symbol of the prayers of the people; 
but also it
spreads through the church as a symbol of the sweet savour of the 
blessing of
God, and so once more the priest pours into it a holy influence with 
the idea that
wherever its scent may penetrate, wherever the smallest particle 
of that which
has been blessed may pass, it shall bear with it a feeling of 
peace and of
purity, and shall chase away all inharmonious thoughts and 
sensations. 
Even apart
from the blessing, its influence is good, for it is carefully 
compounded
from gums the undulation-rate of which harmonises perfectly with 
spiritual and
devotional vibrations, but is distinctly hostile to almost all 
others. The
magnetisation may merely intensify its natural characteristics, or 
may add to it
other special oscillations, but in any case its use in connection 
with
religious ceremonies is always good. The scent of sandalwood has many of 
the same
characteristics; and the scent of pure attar of roses, though utterly 
different in
character, has also a good effect. 
Another point
which is to a large extent new in the scheme prepared by its 
Founder for
the Christian Church is the utilisation of the enormous force which 
exists in
united synchronous action. In Hindu or Buddhist temples each man comes 
when he
chooses, makes his little offering or utters his few words of prayer and 
praise, and
then retires. Result follows each such effort in proportion to the 
energy of
real feeling put into it, and in this way a fairly constant stream of 
tiny
consequences is achieved; but we never get the massive effect produced by 
the
simultaneous efforts of a congregation of hundreds or thousands of people, 
or the
heart-stirring vibrations which accompany the singing of some well known 
processional
hymn. 
By thus
working together at a service we obtain four separate objects. (1) 
Whatever is
the aim of the invocatory part of the service, a large number of 
people join
in asking for it, and so send out a huge thought-form. (2) A 
correspondingly
large amount of force flows in and stimulates the spiritual 
faculties of
the people. (3) The simultaneous effort synchronises the 
undulations
of their bodies, and so makes them more receptive. (4) Their 
attention
being directed to the same object, they work together and thus 
stimulate one
another. 
SERVICES FOR
THE DEAD 
What I have
said in the earlier part of this chapter will explain a feature 
which is
often misunderstood by those who ridicule the Church-- the offering of 
a Mass with a
certain intention, or on behalf of a certain dead person. The idea 
is that that
person shall benefit by the downpouring of force which comes on 
that
particular occasion, and undoubtedly he does so benefit, for the strong 
thought about
him cannot but attract his attention, and when he is in that way 
drawn to the
church he takes part in the ceremony and enjoys a large share of 
its result.
Even if he is still in a condition of unconsciousness, as sometime 
happens to
the newly-dead, the exertion of the priest' s will (or his earnest 
prayer, which
is the same thing) directs the stream of force towards the person 
for whom it
is intended. Such an effort is a perfectly legitimate act of 
invocatory
magic; unfortunately an entirely illegitimate and evil element is 
often
imported into the transaction by the exaction of a fee for the exercise of 
this occult
power-- a thing which is always inadmissible. 
OTHER
RELIGIONS 
I have been
trying to expound something of the inner meaning of the ceremonies 
of the
Christian Church-- taking that, in the first place because it is with 
that that I
am most familiar, and in the second place because it presents some 
interesting
features which in their present form may be said to be new ideas 
imported into
the scheme of things by our present Bodhisattva. I do not wish it 
to be
supposed that I have expounded the Christian ceremonies because I regard 
that religion
as in any way the best expression of universal truth; the fact 
that I, who
am one of its priests, have publicly proclaimed myself a Buddhist, 
shows clearly
that that is not my opinion. 
So far as its
teaching goes, Christianity is probably more defective than any 
other of the
great religions, with perhaps the doubtful exception of 
Muhammadanism;
but that is not because of any neglect on the part of the 
original
Founder to make His system a perfectly arranged exposition of the 
truth, but
because most unfortunately the ignorant majority of the early 
Christians
cast out from among themselves the great Gnostic Doctors, and thereby 
left
themselves with a sadly mutilated doctrine. The Founder may perhaps have 
foreseen this
failure, for He supplied His Church with a system of magic which 
would continue
to work mechanically, even though His people should forget much 
of the early
meaning of what He had taught them; and it is precisely the force 
which has
lain behind this mechanical working which explains the remarkable hold 
so long
maintained by a Church which intellectually has nothing to give to its 
followers. 
Those who
profess other religions must not then suppose that I mean any 
disrespect to
their faiths because I have chosen for exposition that with which 
I am most
familiar. The general principles of the action of ceremonial magic 
which I have
laid down are equally true for all religions, and each must apply 
them for
himself. 
THE ORDERS OF
CLERGY 
Perhaps I
ought to explain, for the benefit of our Indian readers, that there 
are three
orders among the Christian clergy-- bishops, priests and deacons. When 
a man is
first ordained he is admitted as a deacon, which means, practically, a 
kind of
apprentice or assistant priest. He has not yet the power to consecrate 
the
sacrament, to bless the people or to forgive their sins; he can, however, 
baptise
children, but even a layman is permitted to do that in case of 
emergency.
After a year in the diaconate he is eligible for ordination as a 
priest, and
it is this second ordination which confers upon him the power to 
draw forth
the force from the reservoir of which I have spoken. To him is then 
given the
power to consecrate the Host and also various other objects, to bless 
the people in
the name of the Christ, and to pronounce the forgiveness of their 
sins. In
addition to all these powers, the bishop has that of ordaining other 
priests, and
so carrying on the apostolic succession. He alone has the right to 
administer
the rite of confirmation, and to consecrate a church, that is to say, 
to set it
apart for the service of God. These three are the only orders which 
mean definite
grades, separated from one another by ordinations which confer 
different
powers . You may hear many titles applied to the Christian clergy, 
such as those
of archbishop, archdeacon, dean or canon, but these are only the 
titles of
offices, and involve differences of duty, but not of grade in the 
sense of
spiritual power. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER IX 
BY SOUNDS 
SOUND, COLOUR
AND FORM 
WE have
considered the influences radiating from the walls of our churches, and 
the effect of
the ceremonies performed within them; it still remains for us to 
mention the
hidden side of the music of their services. 
There are
many people who realise that sound always generates colour-- that 
every note
which is played or sung has overtones which produce the effect of 
light when
seen by an eye even slightly clairvoyant. Not every one, however, 
knows that
sounds also build form just as thoughts do. Yet this is nevertheless 
the case. It
was long ago shown that sound gives rise to form in the physical 
world by singing
a certain note into a tube across the end of which was 
stretched a
membrane upon which fine sand or lycopodium powder had been cast. 
In this way
it was proved that each sound threw the sand into a certain definite 
shape, and
that the same note always produced the same shape. It is not, 
however, with
forms caused in this way that we are dealing just now, but with 
those built
up in etheric, astral and mental matter, which persist and continue 
in vigorous
action long after the sound itself has died away, so far as physical 
ears are
concerned. 
RELIGIOUS
MUSIC 
Let us take,
for example, the hidden side of the performance of a piece of 
music-- say
the playing of a voluntary upon a church organ. This has its effect 
in the
physical world upon those of the worshippers who have an ear for music-- 
who have
educated themselves to understand and to appreciate it. But many people 
who do not
understand it and have no technical knowledge of the subject are yet 
conscious of
a very decided effect which it produces upon them. 
The
clairvoyant student is in no way surprised at this, for he sees that each 
piece of
music as it is performed upon the organ builds up gradually an enormous 
edifice in
etheric, astral and mental matter, extending away above the organ and 
far through
the roof of the church like a kind of castellated mountain-range, 
all composed
of glorious flashing colours coruscating and blazing in a most 
marvellous
manner, like the aurora borealis in the arctic regions. The nature of 
this differs
very much in the case of different composers. An overture by Wagner 
makes always
a magnificent whole with splendid splashes of vivid colour, as 
though he
built with mountains of flame for stones; one of Bach' s fugues builds 
up a mighty
ordered form, bold yet precise, rugged but symmetrical, with 
parallel
rivulets of silver or gold or ruby running through it, marking the 
successive
appearances of motif ; one of Mendelssohn' s Lieder ohne Worte makes 
a lovely airy
erection-- a sort of castle of filigree work in frosted silver. 
In the book
called Thought-Forms will be found three illustrations in colour, in 
which we have
endeavoured to depict the forms built by pieces of music by 
Mendelssohn,
Gounod and Wagner respectively, and I would refer the reader to 
these, for
this is one of the cases in which it is quite impossible to imagine 
the
appearance of the form without actually seeing it or some representation of 
it. It may
some day be possible to issue a book containing studies of a number 
of such
forms, for the purpose of careful examination and comparison. It is 
evident that
the study of such sound forms would be a science in itself, and one 
of surpassing
interest. 
These forms,
created by the performers of the music, must not be confounded with 
the
magnificent thought-form which the composer himself made as the expression 
of his own
music in the higher worlds. This is a production worthy of the great 
mind from
which it emanated, and often persists for many years-- some times even 
over
centuries, if the composer is so far understood and appreciated that his 
original
conception is strengthened by the thoughts of his admirers. In the same 
manner,
though with wide difference of type, magnificent erections are 
constructed
in higher worlds by a great poet' s idea of his epic, or a great 
writer' s
idea of the subject which he means to put before his readers-- such, 
for example,
as Wagner' s immortal trilogy of The Ring, Dante' s grand 
representation
of purgatory and paradise, and Ruskin' s conception of what art 
ought to be
and of what he desired to make it. 
The forms
made by the performance of the music persist for a considerable space 
of time,
varying from one hour to three or four, and all the time they are 
sending out
radiations which assuredly influence for good every soul within a 
radius of
half a mile or more. Not that the soul necessarily knows it, nor that 
the influence
is at all equal in all cases. The sensitive person is greatly 
uplifted,
while the dull and preoccupied man is but little affected. Still, 
however
unconsciously, each person must be a little the better for coming under 
such an
influence. Naturally the undulations extend much farther than the 
distance
named, but beyond that they grow rapidly weaker, and in a great city 
they are soon
drowned in the rush of swirling currents which fill the astral 
world in such
places. In the quiet country amidst the fields and the trees the 
edifice lasts
proportionately much longer, and its influence has a wider area. 
Sometimes in
such a case those who can, may see crowds of beautiful 
nature-spirits
admiring the splendid forms built by the music, and bathing with 
delight in
the waves of influence which they send forth. It is surely a 
beautiful
thought that every organist who does his work well, and throws his 
whole soul
into what he plays, is thus doing far more good than he knows, and 
helping many
whom perhaps he never saw and never will know in this life. 
Another point
which is interesting in this connection is the difference between 
the edifices
built by the same music when rendered upon different instruments-- 
as, for
example, the difference in appearance of the form built by a certain 
piece when
played upon a church organ and the same piece executed by an 
orchestra or
by a violin quartet, or played on a piano. In these cases the form 
is identical
if the music be equally well rendered, but the whole texture is 
different;
and naturally, in the case of the violin quartet, the size of the 
form is far
less, because the volume of sound is so much less. The form built by 
the piano is
often somewhat larger than that of the violins, but is not so 
accurate in
detail, and its proportions are less perfect. Again, a decided 
difference in
texture is visible between the effect of a violin solo and the 
same solo
played upon the flute. 
Surrounding
and blending with these forms, although perfectly distinct from 
them, are the
forms of thought and feeling produced by human beings under the 
influence of
the music. The size and vividness of these depend upon the 
appreciativeness
of the audience and the extent to which they are affected. 
Sometimes the
form built by the sublime conception of a master of harmony stands 
alone in its
beauty, unattended and unnoticed, because such mental faculties as 
the
congregation may possess are entirely absorbed in millinery or the 
calculations
of the money-market; while on the other hand the chain of simple 
forms built
by the force of some well-known hymn may in some cases be almost 
hidden by
great blue clouds of devotional feeling evoked from the hearts of the 
singers. 
Another
factor which determines the appearance of the edifice constructed by a 
piece of
music is the quality of the performance. The thought-form left hanging 
over a church
after the performance of the Hallelujah Chorus infallibly and 
distinctly
shows, for example, if the bass solo has been flat, or if any of the 
parts have
been noticeably weaker than the others, as in either case there is an 
obvious
failure in the symmetry and clearness of the form. Naturally there are 
types of
music whose forms are anything but lovely, though even these have their 
interest as
objects of study. The curious broken shapes which surround an 
academy for
young ladies at the pupils' practising hour are at least remarkable 
and
instructive, if not beautiful; and the chains thrown out in lasso-like loops 
and curves by
the child who is industriously playing scales or arpeggios are by 
no means
without their charm, when there are no broken or missing links. 
SINGING 
A song with a
chorus constructs a form in which a number of beads are strung at 
equal distances
upon a silver thread of melody, the size of the beads of course 
depending
upon the strength of the chorus, just as the luminosity and beauty of 
the
connecting thread depend upon the voice and expression of the solo singer, 
while the
form into which the thread is plaited depends upon the character of 
the melody.
Of great interest also are the variations in metallic texture 
produced by
different qualities of voice-- the contrast between the soprano and 
the tenor,
the alto and the bass, and again the difference between a boy' s 
voice and a
woman' s. Very beautiful also is the intertwining of these four 
threads
(quite unlike in colour and in texture) in the singing of a glee or a 
part-song, or
their ordered and yet constantly varied march side by side in the 
singing of a
hymn. 
A
processional hymn builds a series of rectangular forms drawn with mathematical 
precision,
following one another in definite order like the links of some mighty 
chain-- or
still more (unpoetical though it sounds) like the carriages of some 
huge train
belonging to the astral world. Very striking also is the difference 
in
ecclesiastical music, between the broken though glittering fragments of the 
Anglican
chant, and the splendid glowing uniformity of the Gregorian tone. Not 
unlike the
latter is the effect produced by the monotonous chanting of Sanskrit 
verses by
pandits in India. 
It may be
asked here how far the feeling of the musician himself affects the 
form which is
built by his efforts. His feelings do not, strictly speaking, 
affect the
musical structure at all. If the delicacy and brilliancy of his 
execution
remain the same, it makes no difference to that musical form whether 
he himself
feels happy or miserable, whether his musings are grave or gay. His 
emotions
naturally produce vibrant forms in astral matter, just as do those of 
his audience,
but these merely surround the great shape built by the music, and 
in no way
interfere with it. His comprehension of the music, and the skill of 
his rendering
of it, show themselves in the edifice which he constructs. A poor 
and merely
mechanical performance erects a structure which, though it may be 
accurate in
form, is deficient in colour and luminosity-- a form which, as 
compared with
the work of a real musician, gives a curios impression of being 
constructed
of cheap materials. To obtain really grand results the performer 
must forget
all about himself, must lose himself utterly in the music as only a 
genius may
dare to do. 
MILITARY
MUSIC 
The powerful
and inspiring effect produced by military music is readily 
comprehensible
to the clairvoyant who is able to see the long stream of 
rhythmically
vibrating forms which is left behind by the band as it marches 
along at the
head of the column. Not only does the regular beat of these 
undulations
tend to strengthen those of the astral bodies of the soldiers, thus 
training them
to move more strongly and in unison, but the very forms which are 
created
themselves radiate strength and courage and material ardour, so that a 
body of men
which before seemed to be hopelessly disorganised by fatigue, may in 
this way be
pulled together again and endowed with a considerable accession of 
strength. 
It is
instructive to watch the mechanism of this change. A man who is utterly 
exhausted has
to a great extent lost the power of co-ordination; the central 
will can no
longer hold together and govern as it should the different parts of 
the body;
every physical cell is complaining-- raising its own separate cry of 
pain and
remonstrance; and the effect upon all the vehicles-- etheric, astral 
and mental--
is that a vast number of small separate vortices are set up, each 
quivering at
its own rate, so that all the bodies are losing their cohesion and 
their power to
do their work, to bear their part in the life of the man. Carried 
to its
ultimate extreme this would mean death, but short of that it means utter 
disorganisation
and the loss of the power to make the muscles obey the will. 
When upon the
astral body in this condition there comes the impact of a 
succession of
steady and powerful oscillations, that impact supplies for the 
time the
place of the will-force which has so sorely slackened. The bodies are 
once more
brought into synchronous vibration and are held so by the sweep of the 
music, thus
giving the will-power an opportunity to recover itself and take 
again the
command which it had so nearly abandoned. 
So marked and
powerful are the waves sent forth by good military music that a 
sensation of
positive pleasure is produced in those who move in obedience to 
them, just as
effective dance-music arouses the desire for synchronous movement 
in all who
hear it. The type of the instruments employed in military bands is 
also of a
nature which adds greatly to this effect, the strength and sharpness 
of the
vibration being obviously of far greater importance for those purposes 
than its
delicacy or its power to express the finer emotions. 
SOUNDS IN
NATURE 
It is not
only the ordered arrangement of sound which we call music which 
produces
definite form. Every sound in nature has its effect, and in some cases 
these effects
are of the most remarkable character. The majestic roll of a 
thunderstorm
creates usually a vast flowing band of colour, while the deafening 
crash often
calls into temporary existence an arrangement of irregular 
radiations
from a centre suggestive of an exploded bomb; or sometimes a huge 
irregular
sphere with great spikes projecting from it in all directions. The 
never-ceasing
beating of the sea upon the land fringes all earth' s coasts with 
an eternal
canopy of wavy yet parallel lines of lovely changing colour, rising 
into
tremendous mountain ranges when the sea is lashed by a storm. The rustling 
of the wind
among the leaves of the forest covers it with a beautiful iridescent 
network, ever
rising and falling with gentle wave-like movement, like the 
passing of
the wind across a field of wheat. 
Sometimes
this hovering cloud is pierced by curving lines and loops of light, 
representing
the song of the birds, like fragments of a silver chain cast forth 
and ringing
melodiously in the air. Of these there is an almost infinite 
variety, from
the beautiful golden globes produced by the notes of the 
campanero, to
the amorphous and coarsely-coloured mass which is the result of 
the scream of
a parrot or of a macaw. The roar of the lion may be seen as well 
as heard by
those whose eyes are opened; indeed, it is by no means impossible 
that some of
the wild creatures possess this much of clairvoyance, and that the 
terrifying
effect which is alleged to be produced by this sound may be largely 
owing to the
radiations poured forth from the form to which it gives birth. 
IN DOMESTIC
LIFE 
In more
domestic life similar effects are observed; the purring cat surrounds 
himself with
concentric rosy cloud-films which expand constantly outward until 
they
dissipate, shedding an influence of drowsy contentment and well-being which 
tends to
reproduce itself in the human beings about him. The barking dog, on the 
other hand,
shoots forth well defined sharp-pointed projectiles which strike 
with a severe
shock upon the astral bodies of those in his neighbourhood; and 
this is the
reason of the extreme nervous irritation which this constantly 
repeated
sound often produces in sensitive persons. The sharp, spiteful yap of 
the terrier
discharges a series of forms not unlike the modern rifle bullet, 
which pierce
the astral body in various directions, and seriously disturb its 
economy;
while the deep bay of a bloodhound throws off beads like ostrich-eggs 
or footballs
which are slower in motion and far less calculated to injure. Some 
of these
canine missiles pierce like sword-thrusts, while some are duller and 
heavier, like
the blows of a club, and they vary greatly in strength, but all 
alike are
evil in their action upon the mental and astral bodies. 
The colour of
these projectiles is usually some shade of red or brown, varying 
with the
emotion of the animal and the key in which his voice is pitched. It is 
instructive
to contrast with these the blunt-ended, clumsy shapes produced by 
the lowing of
a cow-- forms which have often somewhat the appearance of logs of 
wood or
fragments of a tree-trunk. A flock of sheep frequently surrounds itself 
with a
many-pointed yet amorphous cloud of sound which is by no means unlike the 
physical
dust-cloud which it raises as it moves along. The cooing of a pair of 
doves throws
off a constant succession of graceful curved forms like the letter 
S reversed. 
The tones of
the human voice also produce their results-- results which often 
endure long
after the sounds which made them have died away. An angry 
ejaculation throws
itself forth like a scarlet spear, and many a woman surrounds 
herself with
an intricate network of hard, brown-grey metallic lines by the 
stream of
silly meaningless chatter which she ceaselessly babbles forth. Such a 
network
permits the passage of vibration only at its own low level; it is an 
almost
perfect barrier against the impact of any of the higher and more 
beautiful
thoughts and feelings. A glimpse of the astral body of a garrulous 
person is
thus a striking object-lesson to the student of occultism, and it 
teaches him
the virtue of speaking only when it is necessary, or when he has 
something
pleasant and useful to say. 
Another
instructive comparison is that between the forms produced by different 
kinds of
laughter. The happy laughter of a child bubbles forth in rosy curves, 
making a kind
of scalloped balloon shape-- an epicycloid of mirth. The ceaseless 
guffaw of the
empty-minded causes an explosive effect in an irregular mass, 
usually brown
or dirty green in colour-- according to the pre-dominant tint of 
the aura from
which it emanates. The sneering laugh throws out a shapeless 
projectile of
a dull red colour, usually flecked with brownish green and 
bristling
with thorny-looking points. The constantly repeated cachinnations of 
the
self-conscious create a very unpleasant result, surrounding them with what 
in appearance
and colour resembles the surface of a pool of boiling mud. The 
nervous
giggles of a school-girl often involve her in an unpleasant seaweed-like 
tangle of
lines of brown and dull yellow, while the jolly-hearted, kindly laugh 
of genuine
amusement usually billows out in rounded forms of gold and green. The 
consequences
flowing from the bad habit of whistling are usually decidedly 
unpleasant.
If it be soft and really musical it produces an effect not unlike 
that of a
small flute, but sharper and more metallic: but the ordinary tuneless 
horror of the
London street-boy sends out a series of small and piercing 
projectiles
of dirty brown. 
NOISES 
An enormous
number of artificial noises (most of them transcendently hideous) 
are
constantly being produced all about us, for our so-called civilisation is 
surely the
noisiest with which earth has ever yet been cursed. These also have 
their unseen
side, though it is rarely one which is pleasant to contemplate. The 
strident
screech of a railway engine makes a far more penetrating and powerful 
projectile
than even the barking of a dog; indeed, it is surpassed in horror 
only by the
scream of the steam siren which is sometimes employed to call 
together the
hands at a factory, or by the report of heavy artillery at close 
quarters. The
railway whistle blows forth a veritable sword, with the added 
disintegrating
power of a serious electrical shock, and its effect upon the 
astral body
which is unfortunate enough to be within its reach is quite 
comparable to
that of a sword-thrust upon the physical body. Fortunately for us, 
astral matter
possesses many of the properties of a fluid, so that the wound 
heals after a
few minutes have passed; but the effect of the shock upon the 
astral
organism disappears by no means so readily. 
The flight
through the landscape of a train which is not screaming is not wholly 
unbeautiful,
for the heavy parallel lines which are drawn by the sound of its 
onward rush
are as it were embroidered by the intermittent spheres or ovals 
caused by the
puffing of the engine: so that a train seen in the distance 
crossing the
landscape leaves behind it a temporary appearance of a strip of 
Brobdingnagian
ribbon with a scalloped edging. 
The discharge
of one of the great modern cannons is an explosion of sound just 
as surely as
of gun-powder, and the tremendous radiation of impacts which it 
throws out to
the radius of a mile or so is calculated to have a very serious 
effect upon
astral currents and astral bodies. The rattle of rifle or pistol 
fire throws
out a sheaf of small needles, which are also eminently undesirable 
in their
effect. 
It is
abundantly clear that all loud, sharp or sudden sounds should, as far as 
possible, be
avoided by anyone who wishes to keep his astral and mental vehicles 
in good
order. This is one among the many reasons which make the life of the 
busy city one
to be avoided by the occult student, for its perpetual roar means 
the ceaseless
beating of disintegrating vibrations upon each of his vehicles, 
and this is,
of course, quite apart from the even more serious play of sordid 
passions and
emotions which make dwelling in a main street like living beside an 
open sewer. 
No one who
watches the effect of these repeated sound-forms upon the sensitive 
astral body
can doubt that there must follow from them a serious permanent 
result which
cannot fail to be to some extent communicated to the physical 
nerves. So
serious and so certain is this, that I believe that if it were 
possible to
obtain accurate statistics on such a point, we should find the 
length of
life much shorter and the percentage of nervous breakdown and insanity 
appreciably higher
among the inhabitants of a street paved with granite, than 
among those
who have advantage of asphalt. The value and even the necessity of 
quiet is by
no means sufficiently appreciated in our modern life. Specially do 
we ignore the
disastrous effect upon the plastic astral and mental bodies of 
children of
all this ceaseless, unnecessary noise; yet that is largely 
responsible
for evils of many kinds and for weaknesses which show themselves 
with fatal
effect in later life. 
There is a
yet higher point of view from which all the sounds of nature blend 
themselves
into one mighty tone-- that which the Chinese authors have called the 
KUNG; and
this also has its form-- an inexpressible compound or synthesis of all 
forms, vast
and changeful as the sea, and yet through it all upholding an 
average
level, just as the sea does, all-penetrating yet all embracing, the note 
which
represents our earth in the music of the spheres-- the form which is our 
petal when
the solar system is regarded from that plane where it is seen all 
spread out
like a lotus. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER X 
BY PUBLIC
OPINION 
RACE
PREJUDICE 
WHEN anything
occurs to prevent us from doing or saying exactly what we should 
like to do,
we are in the habit of congratulating ourselves that thought at 
least is
free. But this is only another of the many popular delusions. For the 
average man
thought is by no means free; on the contrary it is conditioned by a 
large number
of powerful limitations. It is bound by the prejudices of the 
nation, the
religion, the class to which he happens to belong, and it is only by 
a determined
and long-continued effort that he can shake himself free from all 
these
influences, and really think for himself. 
These
restrictions operate on him in two ways; they modify his opinion about 
facts and
about actions. Taking the former first, he sees nothing as it really 
is, but only
as his fellow-countrymen, his co-religionists, or the members of 
his caste
think it to be. When we come to know more of other races we shake off 
our
preconceptions concerning them. But we have only to look back a century to 
the time of
Napoleon, and we shall at once perceive that no Englishman then 
could
possibly have formed an impartial opinion as to the character of that 
remarkable
man. Public opinion in England had erected him into a kind of bogey; 
nothing was
too terrible or too wicked to be believed of him, and indeed it is 
doubtful
whether the common people really considered him as a human being at 
all. 
The
prepossession against everything French was then so strong that to say that 
a man was a
Frenchman was to believe him capable of any villainy; and one cannot 
but admit
that those who had fresh in their minds the unspeakable crimes of the 
French
Revolution had some justification for such an attitude. They were too 
near to the
events to be able to see them in proportion; and because the 
offscourings
of the streets of Paris had contrived to seize upon the government 
and to steep
themselves in orgies of blood and crime, they thought that these 
represented the
people of France. It is easy to see how far from the truth must 
have been the
conception of the Frenchman in the mind of the average English 
peasant of
that period. 
Among our
higher classes the century which has passed since then has produced an 
entire
revolution of feeling, and now we cordially admire our neighbours across 
the Channel,
because now we know so much more of them. Yet even now it is not 
impossible
that there may be remote country places in which something of that 
old and
strongly established prejudice still survives. For the leading countries 
of the world
are in reality as yet only partially civilised, and while 
everywhere
the more cultured classes are prepared to receive foreigners 
politely, the
same can hardly be said of the mill-hands or the colliers. And 
there are
still parts of Europe where the Jew is hardly regarded as a human 
being. 
POPULAR
PREJUDICE 
It needs
little argument to show that everywhere among the less cultured people 
prejudgments
are still strong and utterly unreasonable; but we who think 
ourselves
above them-- even we need to be careful, lest unconsciously we allow 
them to
influence us. To stand against a strong popular bias is no easy matter, 
and the
student of occultism will at once see why this is so. The whole 
atmosphere is
full of thought-forms and currents of thought, and these are 
ceaselessly
acting and reacting upon every one of us. The tendency of any 
thought-form
is to reproduce itself. It is charged with a certain rate of 
vibration,
and its nature is to influence every mental and astral body with 
which it
comes into contact in the direction of the same vibration. 
There are
many matters about which opinion is reasonably equally divided, as 
(for example)
the angle at which one should wear one' s hat, or whether one 
should be a
Liberal or a Conservative. Consequently the general average of 
thought on
these matters is no stronger in one direction than in another; and 
about them
and other such matters it may be said that thought is comparatively 
free. But
there are other subjects upon which there is an overwhelming consensus 
of public
opinion in one direction, and that amounts to so strong a pressure of 
a certain set
of undulations connected with that subject upon the mental body, 
that unless a
man is unusually strong and determined he will be swept into the 
general
current. Even if he is strong enough to resist it, and is upon his guard 
against it,
the pressure is still there, and its action is still continued, and 
if at any
time he relaxes his vigilance for a moment, he may find himself 
unconsciously
warped by it. 
I have
explained in the second volume of The Inner Life that a man who allows 
himself to
contract a prejudice of this kind on any subject causes a hardening 
of the matter
of the mental body in the part of it through which the 
oscillations
relating to that subject would naturally pass. This acts upon him 
in two ways;
first, he is unable to see that subject as it really is, for the 
vibrations
which would otherwise convey an impression of it come against this 
callosity of
the mental body, and either they cannot penetrate it at all, or 
they are so
distorted in their passage through it that they convey no real 
information.
Secondly, the man cannot think truly with regard to that subject, 
because the
very part of this mental body which he would use in such an effort 
is already so
hardened as to be entirely inefficient, so that the only way to 
overcome the
unfairness is to perform a surgical operation upon that wart in the 
mental body,
and excise it altogether, and to keep for a long time a close watch 
upon it to
see that it is not growing again. If that watch be not kept, the 
steady
pressure of the thought-waves of thousands of other people will reproduce 
it, and it
will be necessary to perform the operation all over again. 
POLITICAL
PREJUDICE 
In many parts
of the country there is a vast amount of bitter political bias. 
The majority
of the people in a district hold one view or the other (it matters 
little
which), and they find it difficult to imagine that the members of the 
opposite
party are ordinary human beings at all. They are so sure of their own 
point of view
that they appear to think that every one else must really hold it 
also, and
that it is only out of malice prepense that their opponents are 
pretending to
hold an entirely different view. Yet their own ideas are usually 
not arrived
at by any process of thought or of weighing two lines of policy, but 
are
hereditary, precisely as are most men' s religious opinions. There is so 
much
excitement and unpleasant feeling connected with politics in almost every 
country that
the wisest course for the student of occultism is to have as little 
as possible
to do with the whole matter. Not that, if he happens to reside in a 
country where
he has a vote, he should refuse to use it, as many good people 
have done,
because of the mass of corruption which sometimes surrounds political 
activity of
the lower kind. If there is much that is evil in connection with 
such affairs,
that is all the more reason why every good citizen should use the 
power that
the system has vested in him (however foolish in itself that system 
may be) in
favour of what seems to him the right and noble course. 
GOVERNMENT 
The occult
theory of government, of the politics of the State, is preeminently 
the
common-sense view. The management of a country is as much a matter of 
business as
the management of a factory or a school. The country has many points 
of similarity
to a great public school. It exists primarily for the benefit of 
its people,
and the people are put there in order to learn. The head of the 
country makes
whatever regulations he considers necessary to secure its 
efficiency,
and there must be discipline and order and prompt obedience to those 
regulations,
or there can be no progress. The king is the headmaster. His work 
is to
exercise sleepless vigilance over the welfare of the school, to employ all 
methods in
his power to make it the best of schools. Our business is not to 
criticise
him, but to obey him, and loyally to give our heartiest co-operation 
in carrying
out whatever he thinks best for the good of the country as a whole. 
The business
of a government is to govern; the business of its people is to be 
good, loyal,
law-abiding citizens so as to make that task of government easy. 
A king who
thinks of or works for fancied private interests of his own, instead 
of acting
only for his country, is obviously failing to do his work; but 
remember that
any subject who in politics thinks of or works for supposed 
private
interests of his own, and not for the good of the country as a whole, is 
also equally
failing to do his duty as a good citizen. As to the outer form of a 
government,
almost any form can be made to work satisfactorily if the people 
co-operate
loyally and unselfishly, forgetting themselves as units and regarding 
the country
as their unit; but no form of government, however excellent, can be 
successful
and satisfactory if its people are selfish and refractory. 
RELIGIOUS
PREJUDICE 
All that I
have said of race prejudice is also true of religious prejudice, 
which is
indeed in many ways even worse than the other. Few men choose their 
religion;
most people are born into a religion, exactly as they are born into a 
race, and
they have no valid reason for preferring it to any other form of 
faith; but
because it happens to be theirs, they arrogantly assume that it must 
be better
than any other, and despise other people whose karma has led them into 
a slightly
different environment. Precisely because this partiality is thus in 
the air, and
because the ordinary man cannot see the pressure of public opinion, 
the unfairness
steals in upon him unobserved and seems to him quite natural, and 
indistinguishable
from an opinion which he has formed for himself on some 
reasonable
grounds. 
It is
necessary that we should constantly pull ourselves up, and examine our 
reasons for the
opinions we hold. It is so fatally easy to go with the current 
and to accept
other men' s ready-made thoughts, instead of thinking for 
ourselves.
“Almost every one does this, so why should not I?” That is the 
feeling of
the average man, and yet if we would be just to all, as a student of 
occultism
must be-- if we seek to know the truth on all subjects, as a student 
of occultism
should know it-- then we must at all costs root out these 
prejudices, and
keep a lynx-like watch against their return. We shall find 
ourselves in
many ways differing from the majority, because the opinions of the 
majority are
often unjust, ill-conceived, unreliable; but that after all we must 
expect, for
we are setting before us a high ideal, which as yet does not appeal 
to that
majority. If we think on all points as it thinks, and act in all ways as 
it acts, in
what way have we raised ourselves above it, and how can we be 
drawing
nearer to our goal? 
CLASS
PREJUDICE 
More
insidious still perhaps is the class or caste bias. It is so comforting to 
feel that we
are somehow inherently and generically superior to everybody else-- 
that no good
feeling or good action can be expected from the other man, because 
he is a bloated
aristocrat or a member of the proletariat, as the case may be. 
Here again,
as with all the other misconceptions, the study of the hidden side 
of the matter
shows us that what is needed is more knowledge and more charity. 
The occultist
sees a prejudice to be a congestion of thought; what is necessary 
therefore is
to stir up the thought, to get to know the people and try to 
comprehend
them, and we shall soon find that fundamentally there is little 
difference
between us and them. 
That there
are classes of egos, that some are older and some are younger, and 
that some are
consequently more ignorant than others, it is impossible to deny, 
for that is a
fact in nature, as has been shown by our study of the order in 
which
different divisions of mankind arrived from the moon-chain upon the 
earth-chain.
But there is a common humanity which underlies all the classes, and 
to this we
may always appeal with the certainty of obtaining some response. 
Those who
feel sure that they belong to the higher class of egos must prove 
their
nobility by great tolerance and charity towards the less fortunate younger 
members of
the human race; noblesse oblige, and if they are the nobility they 
must act
accordingly. A prejudice is usually so transparently foolish that when 
a man has
freed himself from it he cannot believe that he ever really felt it, 
cannot
understand how any of his fellow-creatures who have any pretence to 
reasoning
powers can be subject to it. So there is a certain danger that he 
himself may
become intolerant in turn-- intolerant of intolerance. The 
occultist,
however, who sees the mighty combined thought-form and understands 
the almost
irresistible power, and yet the curious insidiousness of its action, 
understands
very well the difficulty of resisting it-- the difficulty even of 
escaping
sufficiently from its thraldom to realise that there is anything to 
resist. 
PUBLIC
STANDARDS 
Fortunately
this almost irresistible pressure of public opinion is not always 
wrong. In
certain directions it is founded not upon the cumulative ignorance of 
the race but
on its cumulative knowledge-- on the experience of generations that 
have gone
before us. Public opinion is undoubtedly in the right when it condemns 
murder or
robbery; and countries in which public opinion has not yet advanced so 
far as to
express itself clearly on these points are universally admitted to be 
in the
rearguard of civilisation. There are still in the world communities in 
which law and
order are only beginning to exist, and violence is still the 
deciding
factor in all disputes; but those countries are universally recognised 
as
undesirable places of habitation and as lagging behind the progress of the 
world. 
There are
other crimes besides robbery and murder which are universally 
condemned in
all civilised countries, and in all these directions the pressure 
exerted by
public opinion is a pressure in the right direction, tending to 
restrain
those erratic spirits who might otherwise think only of their own 
desires and
not at all of the welfare of the community. 
The
occultist, seeing so much more of what is really happening, establishes for 
himself a far
more exacting code of morals than does the ordinary man. Many 
things which
the ordinary man would do, and constantly does do, without thinking 
twice about
them, the occultist would not permit himself to do under any 
consideration,
because he sees their effects in other worlds, which are hidden 
from the less
developed man. This is a general rule, though here and there we 
meet with
exceptions in which the occultist, who understands the case, will take 
steps which
the ordinary man would fear to take. This is because his action is 
based upon
knowledge, because he sees what he is doing, while the other man is 
acting only
according to custom. 
The great
laws of morality are universal, but temporary and local customs are 
often only
ridiculous. There are still many people to whom it is a heinous crime 
to go for a
walk on a Sunday or to play a game of cards. At such restrictions 
the occultist
smiles, though he is careful not to hurt the feelings of those to 
whom such
quaint and unnatural regulations seem matters of primary importance. 
In many
cases, too, the superior knowledge gained by occult study enables him to 
see the real
meaning of regulations which are misunderstood by others. 
CASTE
PREJUDICE 
A good
example of this is to be seen in regard to the caste regulations of 
India. These
were established some ten thousand years ago by the Manu in charge 
of the fifth
root-race, when He had moved down the main stock of that race from 
Central Asia
to the plains of India. This was after the sub-races had been sent 
out to do
their colonising work, and the remnant of the main stock of His race 
was but small
as compared to the teeming millions of Hindustan. Wave after wave 
of
immigration had swept into the country, and mingled freely with the ruling 
race among
its previous inhabitants, and He saw that, unless some definite 
command was
given, the Aryan type, which had been established with so much 
trouble,
would run great risk of being entirely lost. He therefore issued 
instructions
that a certain division of His people should be made, and that the 
members of
the three great types which He thus set apart should remain as they 
were, that
they should not intermarry with one another or with the subject 
races. 
This was the
only restriction that was laid upon them. Yet this very simple and 
harmless regulation
has been expanded into a system of iron rigidity which at 
the present
time interferes at every step and in every direction with the 
progress of
India as a nation. The command not to intermarry has been distorted 
into an order
to hold no fellowship with the members of another caste, not to 
eat with
them, not to accept food from them. Not only that, but the great race 
divisions
made by the Manu have been again divided and subdivided until we are 
now in the
presence of not three castes but a great multitude of sub-castes, all 
looking down
upon one another, all foreign to one another, all restricted from 
intermarrying
or from eating together. And all this in spite of the fact, 
well-known to
all, that within the written laws of Manu (though they contain 
much which
the Manu himself certainly did not say) it is stated quite definitely 
that the man
of higher caste may eat with one of the lowest caste whom he knows 
to be living
in a rational and cleanly manner, and that in the Mahabharata caste 
is declared
to depend not upon birth but upon character. For example, 
One' s own
ploughman, an old friend of the family, one' s own cowherd, one' s 
own servant,
one' s own barber, and whosoever else may come for refuge and offer 
service--
from the hands of all such shudras may food be taken. 
(Manusmriti,
iv, 253.) 
After doubt
and debate, the Gods decided that the food-gift of the money-lending 
shudra who
was generous of heart was equal in quality to the food-gift of the 
Shrotriya
brahmana who knew all the Vedas, but was small of heart. But the Lord 
of all
creatures came to them and said: Make ye not that equal which is unequal. 
The food-gift
of that shudra is purified by the generous heart, while that of 
the Shrotriya
brahmana is befoulded wholly by the lack of goodwill. 
(Manusmriti,
iv, 224, 225) 
Not birth,
nor sacraments, nor study, nor ancestry, can decide whether a person 
is twice-born
(and to which of the three types of the twice-born he belongs). 
Character and
conduct only can decide. 
(Mahabharata,
Vanaparvan, cccxiii, 108). 
Yet obvious
as all this is, and well known as are the texts to which I have 
referred,
there are yet thousands of otherwise intelligent people to whom the 
regulations
made (not by religion but by custom only) are rules as strict as 
that of any
savage with his taboo. All readily agree as to the absurdity of the 
taboo imposed
in a savage tribe, whose members believe that to touch a certain 
body or to
mention a certain name will bring down upon them the wrath of their 
deity. Yet
all do not realise that the extraordinary taboo which many otherwise 
sensible
Christians erect round one of the days of the week is in every respect 
as utterly
irrational. Nor do our Indian friends realise that they have erected 
a taboo,
exactly similar and quite as unreasonable, about a whole race of their 
fellow men,
whom they actually label as untouchable, and treat as though they 
were scarcely
human beings at all. Each race or religion is ready enough to 
ridicule the
superstitions of others, and yet fails to comprehend the fact that 
it has
equally foolish superstitions itself. 
These very
superstitions have done irreparable harm to the cause of religion, 
for naturally
enough those who oppose the religious idea fasten upon these weak 
points and
emphasise and exaggerate them out of all proportion, averring that 
religion is
synonymous with superstition; whereas the truth is that there is a 
great body of
truth which is common to all the religions, which is entirely 
unmarred by
superstition, and of the greatest value to the world, as is clearly 
proved by
Mrs. Besant' s Universal Text Book of Religion and Morals. This body 
of teaching
is the important part of every religion, and if the professors of 
all these
faiths could be induced to recognise that and,-- we will not say to 
abandon their
private superstitions, but at least to recognise them as not 
binding upon
any but themselves, there would be no difficulty whatever in 
arriving at a
perfect agreement. Each person has an inalienable right to believe 
what he
chooses, however foolish it may appear to others; but he can under no 
circumstances
have any possible right to endeavour to force his particular 
delusion upon
those others, or to persecute them in any way for declining to 
accept it. 
THE DUTY OF
FREEDOM 
It therefore
becomes the duty of every student of occultism to examine carefully 
the religious
belief of his country and his period, in order that he may decide 
for himself
what of it is based upon reason and what is merely a superstitious 
accretion.
Most men never make any such effort at discrimination, for they 
cannot shake
themselves free from the influence of the great crowd of 
thought-forms
which constitute public opinion; and because of those they never 
really see
the truth at all, nor even know of its existence, being satisfied to 
accept
instead of it this gigantic thought-form. For the occultist the first 
necessity is
to attain a clear and unprejudiced view of everything-- to see it 
as it is, and
not as a number of other people suppose it to be. 
In order to
secure this clearness of vision, unceasing vigilance is necessary. 
For the
pressure of the great hovering thought-cloud upon us is by no means 
relaxed
because we have once detected and defied its influence. Its pressure is 
ever present,
and quite unconsciously we shall find ourselves yielding to it in 
all sorts of
minor matters, even though we keep ourselves clear from it with 
regard to the
greater points. We were born under its pressure, just as we were 
born under
the pressure of the atmosphere, and we are just as unconscious of one 
as of the
other. As we have never seen anything except through its distorted 
medium, we
find a great difficulty in learning to see clearly, and even in 
recognising
the truth when we finally come face to face with it; but at least it 
will
gradually help us in our search for truth to know of this hidden side of 
public
opinion, so that we may be on our guard against its constant and 
insidious
pressure. 
BUSINESS
METHODS 
For example,
this public opinion is at a very low level with regard to what are 
called
business methods. 
In these days
of keen competition, things are done and methods are adopted in 
business that
would have astonished our forefathers. Many of these actions and 
methods are
perfectly legitimate, and mean nothing more than the application of 
shrewder
thought and greater cleverness to the work which has to be done; but 
unquestionably
the boundary of what is legitimate and honourable is not 
infrequently
overstepped, and means are employed to which the honest merchant of 
an earlier
age would never have descended. 
Indeed, there
has come to be a sort of tacit understanding that business has a 
morality of
its own, and that ordinary standards of integrity are not to be 
applied to
it. A man at the head of a large mercantile house once said to me: 
“If I tried
to do business according to the Golden Rule-- ` Do unto others as ye 
would that
they should do unto you' -- I should simply starve; I should be 
bankrupt in a
month. The form in which it runs in business matters is much 
nearer to
that immortalised by David Harum: ` Do unto the other man as he would 
like to do
unto you, and do it first. ' ” And many others to whom this remark 
was quoted
frankly agreed with him. Men who in all other respects are good and 
honest and
honourable feel themselves bound in such matters to do as others do. 
“Business is
business,” they say, “and the moralist who objects does not know 
its
conditions,” and under this excuse they treat one another in business as 
they would
never dream of treating a friend in private life, and make statements 
which they
know to be false, even though outside of their trade they may be 
truthful men.
All our
virtues need widening out so that they will cover a greater area. At 
first man is
frankly selfish, and takes care only of himself. Then he widens his 
circle of
affection, and loves his family in addition to himself. Later on he 
extends a
modified form of affection to his neighbours and his tribe, so that he 
will no
longer rob them, though he is quite willing to join with them in robbing 
some other
tribe or nation. Even thousands of years ago, if a dispute arose 
within a
family the head of the family would act as arbitrator and settle it. We 
have now
extended this as far as our neighbours or our fellow-citizens in the 
same State.
If we have a dispute with any of them, a magistrate acts as an 
arbitrator,
in the name of the law of the land. But we have not yet reached a 
sufficient
state of civilisation to apply the same idea to national quarrels, 
though we are
just beginning to talk about doing so, and one or two of the most 
advanced
nations have already settled some difficulties in this way. 
In the same
way the brothers of a family stand together; in dealing with one 
another they
will not take advantage, or state what is untrue; but we have not 
yet reached
the level on which they will be equally honest and open with those 
outside of
the family, in what they call business. Perhaps if a man meets 
another in
private life or at a friend' s house, and enters into conversation 
with him, he
would scorn to tell him a falsehood; yet let the same man enter his 
shop or place
of business, and his ideas of what is honourable or lawful for him 
at once
undergo a sad deterioration. 
Undoubtedly,
people who manage their affairs along the lines of sharp practice 
sometimes
acquire large fortunes thereby; and those who regard life 
superficially,
envy them for what they consider their success. But those who 
have
accustomed themselves to look a little deeper into the underlying 
realities,
recognise that it is not success at all-- that in truth there has 
been no
profit in such a transaction, but a very serious loss. 
If man is a
soul in process of evolution towards perfection, temporarily 
stationed
here on earth in order to learn certain lessons and to achieve a 
certain stage
of his progress, it is obvious that the only thing that matters is 
to learn
those lessons and to make that progress. If man be in truth, as many of 
us know he
is, a soul that lives for ever, the true interest of the man is the 
interest of
that soul, not of the body, which is nothing but its temporary 
vesture; and
anything that hinders the progress of that soul is emphatically a 
bad thing for
the man, no matter how advantageous it may appear for his body. 
The soul is
acting through and advancing by means of his vehicles, and the 
physical body
is only one of these, and that the lowest. Manifestly, therefore, 
before we are
able to pronounce whether any course of action is really good or 
bad for us,
we must know how it affects all of these vehicles, and not only one 
of them. 
Suppose that one
man overreaches another in some transaction, and boasts 
blatantly of
his success and the profit which it has brought him. The student of 
the inner
side of nature will tell him that there has been in reality no gain, 
but a heavy
loss instead. The trickster chinks his money in his hand, and in his 
shortsightedness
triumphantly cries: “See, here is the best of proof; here are 
the golden
sovereigns that I have won; how can you say that I have not gained?” 
The occultist
will reply that the gold may do him a little good or a little 
harm,
according to the way in which he uses it; but that a consideration of far 
greater
importance is the effect of the transaction upon higher levels. Let us 
put aside
altogether, for the moment, the injury done to the victim of the 
fraud--
though, since humanity is truly a vast brotherhood, that is a factor by 
no means to
be ignored; but let us restrict ourselves now exclusively to the 
selfish
aspect of the action, and see what harm the dishonest merchant has done 
to himself. 
THE RESULTS
OF DECEIT 
Two facts
stand out prominently to clairvoyant sight. First, the deceiver has 
had to think
out his scheme of imposture; he has made a mental effort, and the 
result of
that effort is a thought-form. Because the thought which gave it birth 
was guileful
and ill-intentioned, that thought-form is one which cramps and 
sears the
mental body, hindering its growth and intensifying its lower 
vibrations--
a disaster in itself far more than counter-balancing anything 
whatever that
could possibly happen in the physical world. But that is not all. 
Secondly,
this duplicity has set up a habit in the mental body. It is 
represented
therein by a certain type of vibration, and since this vibration has 
been set
strongly in motion it has created a tendency towards its own 
repetition.
Next time the man' s thoughts turn towards any commercial 
transaction,
it will be a little easier than before for him to adopt some 
knavish plan,
a little more difficult than before for him to be manly, open and 
honest. So
that this one act of double-dealing may have produced results in the 
mental body
which it will take years of patient striving to eliminate. 
Clearly,
therefore, even from the most selfish point of view, the speculation 
has been a
bad one; the loss enormously outweighs the gain. This is a 
certainty-- a
matter not of sentiment or imagination, but of fact; and it is 
only because
so many are still blind to the wider life, that all men do not at 
once see
this. But even those of us whose sight is not yet open to higher 
worlds,
should be capable of bringing logic and common sense to bear upon what 
our seers
tell us-- sufficiently at least to comprehend that these things must 
be so, and to
take timely warning, to realise that a transaction may appear to 
be profitable
in one direction and yet be a ruinous loss in another, and that 
all the
factors must be taken into account before the question of profit or loss 
is decided. 
It is clear
that a student of the occult who has to engage in business must 
needs watch
closely what are called business methods, lest the pressure of 
public
opinion on this matter should lead him to perform or to condone actions 
not perfectly
straightforward or consistent with true brotherhood. 
PREJUDICE
AGAINST PERSONS 
This applies
also in the case of public opinion about a particular person. There 
is an old
proverb which says: “Give a dog a bad name and you may as well hang 
him at once.”
The truth which it expresses in so homely a manner is a real one, 
for if the
community has a bad opinion of any given person, however utterly 
unfounded
that opinion may be, the thought-form of it exists in the atmosphere 
of the place,
and any stranger who comes will be likely to be influenced by it. 
The newcomer,
knowing nothing of the victim of evil report, is unlikely to begin 
his
acquaintance with him by charging him with specific crimes; but he may find 
himself
predisposed to think ill of him, without being able to account for it, 
and may have
a tendency to place a sinister interpretation upon the simplest of 
his actions.
If we are trying to follow the truth we must be on our guard 
against these
influences also; we must learn to judge for ourselves in such 
cases and not
to accept a ready-made public judgment, which is just as truly a 
superstition
as though it were connected with religious subjects. 
THE INFLUENCE
OF FRIENDS 
An influence
which often bears a very large part in a man' s life is that of his 
friends. This
is recognised in a popular proverb which says that a man may be 
known by his
friends. I take that to mean that the man usually chooses his 
friends from
men of a certain type or a certain class, and that that in turn 
means that he
finds himself in sympathy with the ideas of that type or that 
class, and so
is likely to reproduce them himself; but it also means much more 
than this.
When a man is with a friend whom he loves, he is in the most 
receptive
attitude. He throws himself open to the influence of his friend, and 
whatever
characteristics are strongly developed in that friend will tend to 
produce
themselves in him also. 
Even in the
physical world the belief of a friend commends itself to us merely 
because it is
belief. It comes to us with a recommendation which assures for it 
our most
favourable consideration. The hidden side of this is in truth merely an 
extension of
the idea to a higher level. We open ourselves out towards our 
friends, and
in doing so put ourselves in a condition of sympathetic vibration 
with them. We
receive and enfold their thought-waves; whatever is definite in 
them cannot
but impress itself upon our higher bodies, and these undulations 
come to us
enwrapped in those of affection; an appeal is made to our feelings, 
and therefore
to a certain extent our judgment is for the time less alert. On 
the one side,
this may imply a certain danger that an influence may be accepted 
without
sufficient consideration; on the other hand, it has its advantage in 
securing for
that opinion a thoroughly sympathetic reception and examination. 
The path of
wisdom will be to receive every new opinion as sympathetically as 
though it
came from our best friend, and yet to scrutinise it as carefully as 
though it had
reached us from a hostile source. 
POPULAR
SUPERSTITIONS 
It must be
remembered that superstition is by no means confined to religious 
matters. Most
travelled Englishmen are aware that in certain parts of the 
Continent
there exists a very decided superstition against the admission of 
fresh air
into a room or a railway carriage, even though science teaches us that 
fresh air is
a necessity of life. We know without a shadow of doubt, from 
scientific
teaching, that sunlight destroys many disease germs, and vitalises 
the
atmosphere; so it is impossible to question that it ought to be admitted to 
our houses as
freely as possible, more especially in those unfortunate countries 
where we see
so little of it. Yet instead of accepting this blessing and 
exulting in
it, many a housewife makes determined efforts to shut it out when it 
appears,
because of a superstition connected with the colours of curtains and 
carpets. It
is not to be denied that sunlight causes certain colours to fade, 
but the
curious lack of proportion of the ignorant mind is shown in the fact 
that faded
colours are regarded as of greater importance than the physical 
health and
cleanliness which the admission of the sunlight brings. Civilisation 
is gradually
spreading, but there are still many towns and villages in which the 
superstitious
following of the customs of our unscientific forefathers prevents 
the adoption
of modern methods of sanitation. 
Even among
people who think themselves advanced, curious little fragments of 
primeval
superstition still survive. There are still many among us who will not 
commence a
new undertaking on a Friday, nor form one of a party of thirteen. 
There are
many who regard certain days of the week or of the month as fortunate 
for them and
others as unfortunate, and allow their lives to be governed 
accordingly.
I am not prepared to deny that a larger number of instances than 
could
reasonably be accounted for by coincidence can be adduced to show that 
certain numbers
are always connected in some way with the destiny of certain 
persons or
families. I do not yet fully understand all that is involved in this, 
but it would
be silly to deny the fact because we have not immediately at hand 
an adequate
explanation of it. Those who are interested in pursuing this 
question
further will find some of the instances to which I am referring in the 
appendix to
Baring Gould' s Curious Myths of the Middle Ages. 
I do not
doubt the existence of what are commonly called planetary influences, 
for I have
already explained the hidden side of them; but I say that, while 
these
influences may make it easier or more difficult to do a certain thing on a 
certain day,
there is nothing whatever in any of them, or all of them combined, 
that can
prevent a man of determined will from ordering his life precisely as he 
thinks best.
As has been said, the wise man rules his stars, the fool obeys 
them. To let
oneself become a slave to such influences is to make a superstition 
of them. 
THE FEAR OF
GOSSIP 
Perhaps the
greatest and most disastrous of all the taboos that we erect for 
ourselves is
the fear of what our neighbours will say. There are many men and 
women who
appear to live only in order that they may be talked about; at least 
that is what
one must infer from the way in which they bring everything to this 
as to a
touchstone. The one and only criterion which they apply with regard to 
any course of
action is the impression which it will make upon their neighbours. 
They never
ask themselves: “Is it right or wrong for me to do this?” but: “What 
will Mrs.
Jones say if I do this?” 
This is
perhaps the most terrible form of slavery under which a human being can 
suffer, and
yet to obtain freedom from it, it is only necessary to assert it. 
What other
people say can make to us only such difference as we ourselves choose 
to allow it
to make. We have but to realise within ourselves that it does not in 
the least
matter what anybody says, and at once we are perfectly free. This is a 
lesson which
the occultist must learn at an early stage of his progress. He 
lives upon a
higher level, and he can allow himself to be influenced only by 
higher
considerations. He takes into account the hidden side of things of which 
most people
know nothing; and, basing his judgment upon that, he decides for 
himself what
is right and what is wrong, and (having decided) he troubles 
himself no
more as to what other people say of him than we trouble ourselves as 
to the flies
that circle round our heads. It never matters in the least to us 
what anyone
else says, but it matters much to us what we ourselves say. 
A BETTER
ASPECT 
Happily this
mighty power of thought can be used for good as well as for evil, 
and, in some
ways, the pressure of public opinion is occasionally on the side of 
truth and
righteousness. Public opinion, after all, represents the opinion of 
the majority,
and therefore the pressure which it exercises is all to the good 
when it is
applied to those who are below the level of the majority. It is 
indeed only
the existence of this mass of opinion which renders social and 
civilised
life possible; otherwise we should be at the mercy of the strongest 
and the most
unscrupulous among us. But the student of occultism is trying to 
raise himself
to a level much above the majority, and for that purpose it is 
necessary
that he should learn to think for himself, and not to accept 
ready-made
opinions without examining them. This much at least may be said-- 
that, if
public opinion does not yet exact a very high level of conduct, at 
least the
public ideal is a high one, and it never fails to respond to the noble 
and the
heroic when that is put before it. Class feeling and esprit de corps do 
harm when
they lead men to despise others; but they do good when they establish 
a standard
below which the man feels that he cannot fall. 
In England we
have a way of attributing our morals to our religion, whereas the 
truth seems
to be that there is little real connection between them. It must be 
admitted that
large numbers of the cultured classes in almost any European 
country have
no real effective belief in religion at all. Perhaps to a certain 
extent they
take a few general dogmas for granted, because they have never 
really thought
about them or weighed them in their minds, but it would be an 
error to
suppose that religious considerations direct their actions or bear any 
large part in
their life. 
They are,
however, greatly influenced, and influenced always for good, by 
another body
of ideas which is equally intangible-- the sense of honour. The 
gentleman in
every race has a code of honour of his own; there are certain 
things which
he must not do, which he cannot do because he is a gentleman. To do 
any of those
things would lower him in his own estimation, would destroy his 
feeling of
self-respect; but in fact he has never even the temptation to do 
them, because
he regards them as impossible for him. To tell an untruth, to do a 
mean or
dishonourable action, to be disrespectful to a lady; these and such as 
these, he
will tell you, are things which are not done in his rank of life. The 
pressure of
such class feeling as this is all to the good, and is by all means 
to be
encouraged. The same thing is to be found in a minor degree in the 
tradition of
our great schools or colleges, and many a boy who has been strongly 
tempted to
escape from some difficulty by an act of dishonour has said to 
himself: “I
cannot do that, for the sake of the old school; it shall never be 
said that one
of its members descended to such an action.” So there is a good 
side as well
as a bad one to this matter of public opinion, and our business is 
to use always
the great virtue of discrimination, so that we may separate the 
desirable
from the undesirable. 
Another point
worth remembering is that this great, clumsy, stupid force of 
public
opinion can itself be slowly and gradually moulded and influenced. We 
ourselves are
members of the public, and under the universal law our views must 
to some
extent affect others. The wonderful change, which during the last thirty 
years has
come over modern thought in connection with the subjects which we 
study, is
largely due to the persistent work of our Society. Through all those 
years we have
steadily continued to speak, to write, and above all to think 
sanely and
rationally about these questions. In doing so we have been pouring 
out
vibrations, and their effect is plainly visible in a great modification of 
the thought
of our day. Only those men who are fully ready can be brought as far 
as Theosophy,
but thousands more may be brought half-way-- into New Thought, 
into
Spiritualism, into liberal Christianity. In this case, as in every other, 
to know the
law is to be able to wield its forces. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XI 
BY OCCASIONAL
EVENTS 
A FUNERAL 
SO far we
have been considering chiefly the influences which, whether emanating 
from nature
or from humanity around us, are steadily exercising upon us a fairly 
constant
pressure, of which we are usually ignorant precisely because it is 
constant. It
will now be well to mention the hidden side of such occurrences as 
come only
occasionally into our lives, as, for example, when we attend a 
funeral, when
we undergo a surgical operation, when we attend a lecture, a 
political
meeting, or a spiritualistic séance, when there is a religious revival 
in our
neighbourhood, when a great national festival is celebrated, or when 
there is a
war, an earthquake, an eruption or some great calamity in the world. 
First, then,
how is a man affected by the hidden side of a funeral? I do not 
mean how is a
man affected by his own funeral, though that also is a question of 
interest, for
it affects some people to an extraordinary extent. No person of 
philosophical
temperament would trouble himself as to what was done with his 
body, which
is after all only a wornout garment; but there are many people in 
the world who
are not philosophical, and to them it is sometimes a matter of 
great moment.
All classical
history assures us that the ancient Greek, when he died, was 
exceedingly
anxious that his body should receive what he considered decent 
sepulture--
mainly because he laboured under the illusion that unless this was 
done he would
not be free to pursue the even tenor of his way after death. Most 
of the ghost
stories of ancient Greece related to people who came back to 
arrange for
the due disposal of their bodies. 
The poorer
classes among the modern Irish seem to share this extraordinary 
anxiety about
the disposal of their bodies, for on several occasions I have come 
across Irish
women whose one thought after death was not in the least for the 
welfare or
progress of their souls, but that the number of carriages following 
their funeral
procession should not fall below a certain number, or that the 
coffin
provided for the body should not be in any respect inferior to that which 
Mrs.
So-and-So had had a few weeks before. 
This,
however, is a mere digression, and what we have to consider is the effect 
of a funeral
upon the survivors, and not upon the dead man (who , nevertheless, 
is usually
present, and regards the proceedings from various points of view, 
according to
his temperament). 
A funeral is
distinctly a function to be avoided by the occultist; but sometimes 
he may find
himself in circumstances where his refusal to attend might be 
misconstrued
by ignorant and uncomprehending relations. In such a case he should 
exert his
will, and put himself into a determined and positive attitude, so that 
he may on no
account be affected by the influences around him, and at the same 
time be in a
position powerfully to affect others. 
He should
think first of the dead man (who will most likely be present) with 
strong,
friendly interest and affection, and with a determined will for his 
peace and
advancement. He should adopt also a positive attitude of mind in his 
thought
towards the mourners, endeavouring strongly to impress upon them that 
they must not
grieve, because the man whom they mourn as dead is in reality, 
still living,
and their grief will hinder him in his new condition. He must try 
mentally to
hold them firmly in hand, and to prevent them from relaxing into 
hysterics and
helplessness. 
The modern
funeral is far from ideal. It seems to be an established convention 
that there
must be some kind of ceremony connected with the disposal of the 
discarded
clothing of the liberated ego; but surely something better might be 
devised than
what is usually done at present. The funeral in the village church 
is not
without a certain amount of appropriateness-- even a certain consolation; 
the mourners
are in a building which has for them holy and elevating 
associations
of all sorts, and the service appointed by the Church of England is 
beautiful,
though here and there one would like to infuse into it a note of more 
enthusiastic
certainty. 
But for the
service performed in a cemetery chapel there is nothing whatever to 
be said. The
place is never used for any other purpose than a funeral, and its 
whole
atmosphere is pervaded with hopeless grief. Everything is usually as bare 
and as gloomy
as possible; the very walls reek of the charnel-house. We must 
remember
that, for one person who understands the truth about death and takes an 
intelligently
hopeful view of it, there are hundreds who have nothing but the 
most
irrational and gruesome ideas. Such a place as that, therefore, is filled 
with the
blackest despair and the most poignant mental suffering; and it is 
consequently
of all places the most undesirable into which to take those who 
have
experienced what seems to them to be a bereavement. 
THE DISPOSAL
OF THE DEAD BODY 
No one who
has the faintest glimpse of the hidden side of things can approve of 
our present
barbarous method of disposing of the bodies of the dead. Even on the 
physical
earth there is no single point in its favour, and there are many 
weighty
considerations against it. From the sentimental point of view alone, it 
is impossible
to understand how any person can reconcile himself to the idea 
that the
cast-off garment of one whom he loves should be left to a slow and 
loathsome
decay under conditions from which imagination shrinks with horror; and 
when to this
we add the dreadful danger of disease to the living from the 
unspeakable
pollution of air and of water, we begin to understand that our 
funeral
customs are one of the many indications that our boasted civilisation 
is, after all
only a veneer. 
Still more
decidedly is this impression confirmed when we gain an insight into 
that side of
these matters which is as yet unknown to the majority. We become 
aware then
what kind of entity it is that is attracted by the process of slow 
putrefaction,
and we see that in this way also terrible, unnecessary harm is 
being done to
the survivors. 
For the dead
man, if he is wise, it matters little what becomes of the worn-out 
garment; but
it should be remembered that all dead men are not necessarily wise, 
and that for
some of them (who know no better) this abominable custom of ours 
makes possible
a serious mistake, which under proper conditions could not be 
committed. 
The average
man in his ordinary thinking is not in the habit of separating 
himself into
body and soul as definitely as does the student of occultism. True, 
the dead man
has finally left his physical vehicle, and it is practically 
impossible
for him again to take possession of it; but he is intimately 
acquainted
with it, and its rates of vibration are familiar and sympathetic to 
him. Under
all normal and clean and proper conditions he has done with it 
entirely; but
there are those who, having had no ideas, no conceptions of any 
sort beyond
the physical during life, become crazy with fear when they find 
themselves
altogether cut adrift from it. Such men sometimes make frantic 
efforts to
return into some sort of touch with physical life. Most do not 
succeed; but
when any of them do succeed to some limited extent, it can be only 
by means of
their own physical bodies. 
Such Rapport
as they still retain with the decaying vestures sometimes enables 
them to draw
from them the basis of an imperfect and unnatural 
half-materialisation--
not nearly enough to bring them back into touch with the 
physical
world, but yet sufficient to tear them for the time from healthy astral 
life. Such
people make for themselves for awhile-- fortunately only for awhile-- 
a dim, grey
world of horror in which they see physical happenings as in a glass 
darkly-- as
through a world of mist in which they wander, lost and helpless. 
They cannot
get back entirely into the dense bodies; a man who did would become 
a vampire.
But they do get hold of the etheric matter of their discarded 
vehicles, and
drag it about with them, and this is the cause of all their 
suffering;
and until they can get rid of this entanglement, until they can 
plunge
through the grayness and get into the light, there can be no rest for 
them. There
are unpleasant forms of black magic, too, known in oriental 
countries and
to those who have studied the methods of the Voodoo or the Obeah, 
which depend
for their success upon the decaying physical body; though this is 
happily not a
consideration of practical importance to those who live among 
communities
unversed in such evil lore. 
But at least
this is clear-- that all possibilities of evil, both for the dead 
and for the
living, are avoided by the rational disposal of the discarded 
vesture of
flesh. When we return to the custom of cremation, practised by the 
Hindus, the
Greeks and the Romans, we reduce the physical vehicle as rapidly as 
possible to
its constituent elements in a manner which is at once clean, decent, 
and wholly
satisfactory to the aesthetic sentiment as well as to the rational 
view of the
man of sense. 
Some people
have feared the possibility that, especially in the cases of sudden 
death, the
dead man might feel the flame-- might be in some way not yet fully 
separated
from his body, and so might suffer when that body was burned. Even if 
the death be
sudden, so long as it is death, the astral and etheric matter have 
been
completely separated from the denser physical, and it would be quite 
impossible
that the dead man could under any circumstances feel what was done to 
the physical
body. I mean that he could not really feel it, because the 
connection
through which he feels is definitely broken; what is perhaps possible 
is that,
seeing the cremation, he might have a certain fear lest he should feel 
it-- the idea
that he ought to be feeling it, as it were; and so imagination 
might come
into play to some extent. 
I have never
seen such a case in connection with cremation; but I remember 
hearing on
good authority of a young man whose teeth were all drawn after his 
death by a
dishonest undertaker, in order that they might be sold as artificial 
teeth. The
young man appeared to his father with blood flowing from his mouth, 
exclaiming in
great indignation that they had tortured him by drawing his teeth. 
The body was
exhumed, and it was found that his story was correct. In this case, 
if the man was
really dead, it is quite impossible that he could have felt any 
pain; but he
became aware of what was being done, and was very angry about it; 
and no doubt
he may have thought of himself as really injured, because during 
life the idea
of tooth-drawing had been associated with great pain. 
The
difference which the knowledge of the hidden side of things makes in the 
consideration
of the whole subject of death is very aptly shown by two of the 
figures
reproduced in the book on Thought-Forms -- those which illustrate the 
thought-images
created by two men standing side by side at a funeral. There it 
is seen that
the man who had lived in the ordinary blank ignorance with regard 
to death, had
no thought in connection with it but selfish fear and depression; 
whereas the
man who understood the facts was entirely free from any suggestion 
of those
feelings, for the only sentiments evoked in him were those of sympathy 
and affection
for the mourners, and of devotion and high aspiration. 
Indeed,
knowledge of the hidden side of life entirely changes a man' s attitude 
towards
death, for it shows him instantly that instead of being the end of all 
things, as is
often ignorantly supposed, it is simply the passage from this 
stage of life
to another which is freer and pleasanter than the physical, and 
that
consequently it is to be desired rather than to be feared. He sees at once 
how utterly a
delusion is the theory that those who cast aside their physical 
bodies are
lost to us, for he knows that they remain near us just as before, and 
that all that
we have lost is the power to see them. To the consciousness of the 
man who
possesses even astral sight, the so-called dead are just as definitely 
present as
the so-called living, and since he sees how readily they are affected 
by the
vibrations which we send out to them, he understands how harmful is the 
attitude of
mourning and grief so often unfortunately adopted by the friends who 
still retain
their physical bodies. 
A knowledge
of the hidden side of life by no means teaches us to forget our 
dead, but it
makes us exceedingly careful as to how we think of them; it warns 
us that we
must adopt a resolutely unselfish attitude, that we must forget all 
about
ourselves, and the pain of the apparent separation, and think of them 
neither with
grief nor with longing, but always with strong affectionate wishes 
for their
happiness and their progress. 
The
clairvoyant sees exactly in what manner such wishes affect them, and at once 
perceives the
truth which underlies the teaching of the Catholic Church with 
regard to the
advisability of prayers for the dead. By these both the living and 
the dead are
helped; for the former, instead of being thrown back upon his grief 
with a hopeless
feeling that now he can do nothing, since there is a great gulf 
between
himself and his loved one, is encouraged to turn his affectionate 
thought into
definite action which promotes the happiness and advancement of him 
who has
passed from his sight in the physical world. Of all this and much more I 
have written
fully in the book called The Other Side Of Death, so here I will 
only thus far
touch upon the subject, and refer to that volume any who wish for 
more detailed
information. 
A SURGICAL
OPERATION 
In these days
of the triumph of surgery it not infrequently happens that a man 
has to submit
himself to an operation. There is less of a hidden side to this 
than to many
other events, because the use of anaesthetics drives the man away 
from his physical
body altogether. But in that very absence much that is of 
interest to
him takes place, and it is well to endeavour to note and remember as 
far as may be
what occurs. This is a difficult thing to do; more difficult than 
the bringing
through of the memory from the astral world, because what is driven 
out by the
anaesthetic is the etheric part of the physical man, and as the 
etheric
double is only a portion of the physical body, and in no sense a perfect 
vehicle in
itself, a man cannot usually bring through a clear memory. 
I remember a
case of this nature which I was asked by the victim to attend. He 
was much
interested in the occult side of the affair, and anxious to remember 
all that he
could. He was placed upon the operating table, and the anaesthetic 
was
administered. Almost immediately the man sprang out in his astral body, 
recognised
me, and started down the room towards me with an expression of vivid 
delight upon
his face, evidently overjoyed at finding himself fully conscious in 
the astral
world. But in a moment came pouring forth from the physical body a 
great cloud
of etheric matter which was forced out by the anaesthetic. This 
cloud
immediately wrapped itself round him, and I could see the intelligence 
fade out of
his face until it became a mere mask. 
When I was
permitted to see him again two days afterwards, his memory of what 
had happened
tallied exactly with that I had seen. He remembered the rush out of 
his body; he
recollected clearly seeing me at the other end of the room, and 
feeling
greatly delighted that everything seemed so real. Then he started down 
the room
towards me, but somehow he never arrived, and knew nothing more until 
he came back
into the body an hour later when the whole operation was over. I 
felt on that
occasion what an advantage the possession of clairvoyance would 
have been to
the two doctors engaged. They gave the patient too much of the 
anaesthetic,
and came within an ace of finally driving out the whole of his 
etheric
double, instead of only part of it as they intended. As my clairvoyant 
companion
forcibly remarked, they left hardly enough of it to cover 
half-a-crown,
and the consequence was that the patient came perilously near to 
death, and
they had to pump oxygen into his lungs for ten minutes in order to 
bring him
back to life at all. 
A few years
ago a visit to the dentist frequently meant a minor operation, in 
which the
patient passed through a somewhat similar but much shorter experience, 
owing to the
administration of nitrous oxide, and many curious phenomena have 
shown
themselves in connection with that. An example in point will be found in 
my book on
Dreams (page 38). In these days of local anaesthetics the dentist is 
usually able
to do his work without the administration of gas, and consequently 
the
experiences connected with his operation are of a less occult nature. 
A LECTURE 
We have in a
previous chapter considered the consequences which attend upon the 
action of
going to church; let us now consider the inner side of attending a 
lecture, a
political meeting, a spiritualistic séance, or a religious revival. 
Of these
forms of excitement the lecture is usually the mildest, though even 
that to some
extent depends upon its subject. There is generally much less 
uniformity
about the audience at a lecture than about a congregation in a 
church. There
are often many and rather decisive points of likeness between 
those who
adopt the same religious belief, whereas the people who are interested 
in a lecture
upon some particular subject may come from many different folds, 
and be of all
sorts of quite different types. Still, for the time being there is 
a link
between them, the link of interest in a particular subject: and 
therefore,
however different their minds may be, the same portion of the mind is 
for the
moment being brought into activity in all of them, and that creates a 
certain
superficial harmony. 
Since the
Theosophical student frequently has to deliver lectures as well as to 
endure them,
it is perhaps well not entirely to neglect that side of the 
subject, but
to note that, if the lecturer wishes to act effectively upon the 
mind-bodies
of his audience, he must first of all have a clearly defined idea 
expressing itself
through his own mind-body. As he thinks earnestly of the 
different
parts of his subject and tries to put them before his people, he is 
making a
series of thought-forms-- unusually strong thought-forms because of the 
effort. 
He has a fine
opportunity, because his audience is necessarily to a great extent 
in a
receptive condition. They have taken the trouble to come in order to hear 
about this
particular subject, and therefore we must suppose that they are in a 
condition of
readiness to hear. If under these favourable conditions he fails to 
make them
understand him, it must be because his own thought upon the subject is 
not
sufficiently clearcut. A clumsy and indefinite thought-form makes but a 
slight
impression, and even that with much difficulty. A clearly-cut one forces 
the mental
bodies in the audience to try to reproduce it. Their reflections of 
it will
almost invariably be less definite and less satisfactory than it is, but 
still, if its
edges are sharp enough, they will convey the idea to some extent; 
but if that
from which they have to copy is itself blurred, it is eminently 
probable that
the reproductions will prove entirely unrecognisable. 
Sometimes the
lecturer receives unexpected assistance. The fact that he is 
engaged in
thinking strongly of one particular subject attracts the attention of 
disembodied
entities who happen to be interested in that subject, and the 
audience
often includes a greater number of people in astral than in physical 
bodies. Many
of these come simply to hear, as do their brothers in the physical 
world, but
sometimes it happens that one of those who are attracted knows more 
about the
subject than the lecturer. In that case he sometimes assists by 
suggestions
or illustrations. These may come to the lecturer in various ways. If 
he is
clairvoyant he may see his assistant, and the new ideas or illustrations 
will be
materialised in subtler matter before him. If he is not clairvoyant, it 
will probably
be necessary for the helper to impress the ideas upon his brain, 
and in such a
case he may well suppose them to be his own. Sometimes the 
assistant is
not disembodied, or rather only temporarily disembodied; for this 
is one of the
pieces of work frequently taken in hand by the invisible helpers. 
In some cases
the ego of the lecturer manifests himself in some curious exterior 
way. For
example, I have heard the greatest orator now living say that, while 
she is
speaking one sentence of a lecture, she habitually sees the next sentence 
actually
materialise in the air before her, in three different forms, from which 
she
consciously selects that one which she thinks the best. This must be the 
work of the
ego, though it is a little difficult to see why he takes that method 
of communication,
since after all it is he who is delivering the lecture through 
the physical
organs. At first blush it seems that it would be as easy for him-- 
or perhaps
even easier-- to select a form himself, and impress only that one 
upon lower
matter; and even then it might as well come directly to the brain as 
be
materialised in the air before it. 
Returning
from the lecturer to his audience, we may note that it is possible for 
his hearers
to give him great assistance in his work. Older members of a branch 
have
sometimes been heard to say that they did not feel it necessary to go down 
to the lodge
meeting on a certain occasion, as the lecture was about a subject 
with which
they were already thoroughly acquainted. Apart from the large 
assumption involved
in the statement that one can ever be fully acquainted with 
any
Theosophical teaching, it is not accurate to say that a man' s presence is 
useless
because he knows the subject. Exactly the opposite remark would have 
much more
truth in it; because he knows the subject thoroughly he also can make 
strong and
clear thought-forms of the different illustrations required, and in 
that way he
can greatly assist the lecturer in impressing on the audience what 
he wishes to
convey to them. 
The greater
the number of people present at a lecture who thoroughly understand 
its subject,
the easier will it be for all those to whom it is new to obtain a 
clear
conception of it. The lecturer, therefore, is distinctly helped by the 
presence of
those who can fully comprehend him. He also may be much helped or 
hindered by
the general attitude of his audience. In the main that is usually 
friendly,
since the majority of people who come to a lecture come because they 
are
interested in the subject and wish to learn something about it. Sometimes, 
however, one
or two appear whose main desire is to criticise, and their presence 
is anything
but helpful. 
A POLITICAL
MEETING 
This latter
effect is much more in evidence at a political meeting, for there it 
seems to be
the rule that, while some people go for the purpose of supporting 
the speaker,
others go merely for the purpose of challenging and interrupting 
him.
Consequently the feelings to be experienced, and the thought-forms to be 
seen, at
political meetings are not easy to predict beforehand. But one often 
sees cases in
which forms composed entirely or principally of the thoughts of 
the adherents
of one party make huge waves of enthusiasm, which rush over the 
audience,
surround the speaker and work him up into a corresponding condition of 
enthusiasm. 
Many years
ago I remember attending a meeting of this description, and being 
much struck
by the effect produced by getting all the people to join together in 
singing. Some
great gun of the party was to speak, and consequently the huge 
hall was
crowded to suffocation a couple of hours before the advertised time; 
but the
organisers of the meeting were wise in their generation, and they 
employed that
time most efficiently by working up that vast heterogeneous crowd 
into a
condition of loyal enthusiasm. All sorts of patriotic songs followed one 
another in
quick succession, and though few really knew the tunes, and still 
fewer the
words, there was at least no lack of enthusiastic good feeling. The 
two hours of
waiting passed like an entertainment, and I think most people were 
surprised to
find how quickly time had fled. 
The occult
side of the average political meeting, however, is far from 
attractive,
for from the astral world it not unfrequently bears a strong general 
resemblance
to an exceedingly violent thunderstorm. There is often much warring 
feeling, and
even a good deal of personal enmity. On the whole we have usually a 
preponderance
of a sort of rough and perhaps rather coarse, good-humoured 
jollity,
often pierced, however, by spears of anxious feeling from the 
promoters.
Unless duty actually calls one to such gatherings it is generally 
better to
avoid them, for on such occasions there is always a clash of astral 
currents that
cannot but induce great fatigue in anyone who is in the least 
sensitive. 
CROWDS 
It is also
desirable to avoid as far as possible the mixing of magnetism which 
comes from
too close contact with a promiscuous crowd. Not that we must assume 
for a moment
that the persons composing the crowd are necessarily lower or worse 
than
ourselves. It would be most undesirable that the student should become 
self-conscious,
self-conceited or self-righteous. It is probably true that the 
aims and
objects of the majority of people in any crowd, taken at random, are of 
more worldly
type than those of the Theosophical student; but it would be both 
wrong and
foolish to despise the people on that account. The point to bear in 
mind is, not
that we are better than they, but that there is a difference in the 
rates of
vibration, and that consequently to be in constant contact with others 
causes
disturbance in the various vehicles, which it is better to avoid. 
Nevertheless,
when duty renders it necessary or desirable that the student 
should enter
a crowd, there are at his disposal various means by which he can 
protect
himself. The most usual is the making of a shell, either etheric, astral 
or mental;
but the best protection of all is a radiant goodwill and purity. I 
shall
presently devote a chapter to the consideration of this question of 
protection. 
A SÉANCE 
Of all forms
of meeting one of the most interesting from the occult point of 
view is the
spiritualistic séance, though of this there are so many different 
types that
hardly anything can be said which would apply equally to all of 
them-- except
perhaps that one almost invariable characteristic is an atmosphere 
of joyousness
and hopefulness. The circles to which outsiders are often 
introduced,
those of which we hear and of which we may occasionally read in the 
newspapers--
these are after all the few, and behind them, forming the real 
block of
spiritualism, are two other variants of which we hear very little. 
There is the
ordinary séance, quite among the poor, with a medium probably of 
the stout
washer-woman type, where no sensational phenomena take place, where 
the spirits
are frequently ungrammatical. Thousands of such séances are being 
held all over
the world, and there is a strong family likeness between them. To 
a visitor
their proceedings would appear profoundly uninteresting. Usually the 
medium gives
a kind of fourth-rate ethical address-- or perhaps it is really 
given through
the medium-- but in any case it usually faithfully reproduces all 
her favourite
errors in grammar and in pronounciation. Then as a general rule a 
few words are
said specially to each of the persons present, often taking the 
form of a
description of their surroundings or of the spirits which are supposed 
to be
hovering about them. Such descriptions are usually vague and uncertain to 
the last
degree, but now and again striking identifications are made-- far too 
many to be
explicable on any theory of mere coincidence. And however dull all 
this may seem
to the outsider, it does undoubtedly carry peace and conviction to 
the members
of the circle, and gives them a real living knowledge and certainty 
with regard
to the continued existence of man after death, which puts to shame 
the faith of
the fashionable churches. 
The hidden
side of a séance such as this has often something pathetic about it. 
Behind the
medium there is usually what is called a spirit-guide-- a dead 
person,
sometimes of the medium' s own class in life, sometimes of a decidedly 
higher type--
a dead person who has by much patient effort learned how to 
influence
with a reasonable amount of certainty the clumsy organism of the 
medium,
which, however unsuitable it may be in most other respects, at least 
possesses the
invaluable faculty that it can be influenced and that 
communications
can in some way or other be got through. The patience with which 
this entity
deals with the poor souls that come to him from both sides of the 
veil is
admirable; for he has to try to bring into harmony not only the tearful 
inconsequence
of scores of sorrowing relations on this side, but also the 
feverish and
clamorous excitement of a crowd who are trying to rush into 
manifestation
from the other. With his class and in his way such an entity does 
a great deal
of good, and his life of unnoticed toil in some obscure district 
adds more to
the sum total of human happiness than many far more showy efforts 
which receive
greater credit in the eyes of the public. Even such a séance as 
this, when
examined with astral sight, is seen to be a centre of a kind of 
vortex. the
departed rushing in from all directions, desiring either themselves 
to manifest
or to watch the manifestation. 
There is
another variety of séance of which few know anything-- the private 
family circle
to which no outsider is ever admitted. This is infinitely the most 
satisfactory
side of spiritualism, for through it many thousands of families 
communicate
day by day with friends or relations who have passed from the 
physical
world, and in this way not only learn a number of interesting facts but 
are kept
constantly in touch with spiritual subjects and at a high level of 
thought with
regard to them. Most commonly the central figure at these private 
séances is
some departed member of the family, and the communications ordinarily 
are
affectionate little sermonettes of a devotional character, often somewhat 
rhapsodical. 
Occasionally,
however, where the departed relation happens to be a man of 
original
thought or of a scientific turn of mind, a great volume of definite 
information
is gradually gathered together. There are far more of these private 
revelations
in existence than is generally suspected, for hardly one in a 
hundred of
those who receive them is prepared to face an exposure to public 
ridicule of
what to him is above all things a holy thing, in the hope of so 
improbable a
result as the conversion of some sceptical stranger. 
At such
séances as these, remarkable phenomena are not infrequent, and 
materialisations
of the most startling kind are sometimes part of the daily 
programme.
Often the so-called dead are just as much part of the daily life of 
the family as
the living, as was the case, for example, with the phenomena which 
took place at
the house of Mr. Morel Theobald, at Haslemere. The séances 
described by
Mr. Robert Dale Owen are largely of this character, and they 
represent the
highest possible kind of spiritualism, though in the very nature 
of the case
it is hardly ever available to the ordinary enquirer. 
The hidden
side of such séances as these is truly magnificent, for they form 
points of
habitual contact between the astral and physical worlds-- vortices 
again, but
this time only of the higher and nobler varieties of astral life. The 
thought-forms
surrounding them are of the religious or the scientific type 
according to
the nature of the manifestations, but they are always good 
thought-forms,
calculated to raise the mental or spiritual level of the district 
in which they
are to be found. 
Putting aside
these two large classes, we have next the smaller group of public 
séances which
to most outsiders represent the whole of spiritualism. All sorts 
of people are
admitted to these, usually, on payment of a small sum of money, 
and the
entities who appear on the astral side are just as curious a 
conglomerate
as those who attend on the physical. Here also there is almost 
always a
spirit-guide in charge. The highest astral types are not to be found 
among the
habitués of such séances as these, but there is usually a sprinkling 
of dead
people who have devoted themselves to the idea of being useful to those 
still on the
physical earth, by the exhibition of phenomena and the giving of 
various small
tests. 
The aura of
such a séance is usually on the whole somewhat unpleasant, for it 
attracts a
great deal of attention in the astral world as well as in the 
physical, and
consequently round every one of them is always a clamorous crowd 
of the most
undesirable entities, who are restrained only by force from pushing 
in and
seizing upon the medium. Among the dangers attending these séances is the 
possibility
that one of these desperate creatures may seize upon any sensitive 
sitter and
obsess him; worse still, that he may follow him home, and seize upon 
his wife or
daughter. There have been many such cases, and usually it is almost 
impossible to
get rid of an entity which has thus obsessed the body of a living 
human being. 
The hidden
side of such a séance is generally a confused network of 
cross-currents,
some good and some bad, but none very good and some very bad. 
The
clairvoyant attending such a séance may obtain a certain amount of 
instruction
from watching the various methods by which the phenomena are 
produced,
which are sometimes exceedingly ingenious. He will be astonished at 
the
cleverness of the personations, and at the amazing facility with which those 
who know
nothing of this side of life can be deceived. 
A RELIGIOUS
REVIVAL 
From the
point of view of the student of the inner worlds one of the most 
remarkable
phenomena of our day is what is called a religious revival. A 
religious
revival, as seen from the physical world, usually means a gathering of 
people of the
lower classes whose feelings are inflamed by highly emotional and 
often lurid
appeals from some fanatical exponent of the gospel of a particular 
sect. Day
after day these meetings take place, and they are often accompanied by 
the most
extraordinary phenomena of nervous excitement. 
People work
themselves up into some sort of hysterical condition in which they 
feel
themselves to be saved, as they call it-- to have escaped forever from the 
bondage of
the ordinary life of the world, and to have become members of a 
spiritual
community whose aims are of the highest description. Often they are 
moved to
confess in public what they consider to have been their misdeeds, and 
they are apt
to do this with a wealth of emotion and repentance entirely out of 
proportion to
anything that they have to confess. The wave of nervous excitement 
spreads like
an infectious disease, and usually it lasts for some weeks, though 
often towards
the end of that time symptoms of universal exhaustion appear and 
the whole thing
somewhat shamefacedly dies down into commonplace life again. 
In a small
percentage of the cases the spiritual elevation appears to be 
maintained,
and the victims continue to live a life at a distinctly higher level 
than that
which had been theirs previously; but by far the greater number of the 
cases relapse
either suddenly and dramatically, or by slow and gradual stages, 
into much the
same kind of life as they had led before the excitement came. 
Statistics show
that the culmination of this emotional excitement is accompanied 
by great
sexual disturbance, and that the number of illegitimate unions of all 
sorts is
temporarily greatly increased. There are certain sects which take as 
part of their
regular system a much modified form of this excitement, and 
consider it
necessary for their junior members to pass through a crisis which is 
sometimes
described as “being convinced of sin,” and in other cases simply as 
“getting
religion”. 
Such a
revival as this is seen in its most extravagant form among the negroes of 
America,
among whom it reaches a level of frenzy not commonly attained by the 
white races.
The negroes find it necessary to relieve their feelings by dances 
and leaps and
contortions of the wildest kind, and these are often carried on 
for hours
together, accompanied by yells and groans of a truly alarming 
character. 
That this
sort of thing should take place in the twentieth century, and among 
people who
think themselves civilised is surely a most remarkable phenomenon, 
and one
deserving careful consideration from a student of the inner side of 
things. For
one who possesses astral vision such an outburst is a wonderful but 
unpleasant
sight. The missioner or revivalist preacher who first commences such 
a movement is
usually animated by the highest motives. He becomes impressed with 
the
overflowing love of God, or with the wickedness of a particular section of 
the
community, and he feels that the spirit moves him to proclaim the one and to 
rebuke the
other. He works himself up into a condition of tremendous emotional 
excitement,
and sets his astral body swinging far beyond the degree of safety. 
For a man may
yield himself to emotion up to a certain point, and yet recover 
himself, just
as a ship may roll to a certain extent and yet swing back again to 
her normal
position; but just as the ship capsizes if she rolls beyond that 
point of
safety, so if the man lets his astral body entirely escape from 
control, he
dies, or becomes insane or is obsessed. Such an obsession need not 
necessarily
be what we should call an evil one, though the truth is that all 
obsession is
evil; but I mean that we need not credit the obsessing entity with 
anything but
good intentions, though he usually takes advantage of such an 
opportunity
more for the sake of the excitement and the feeling which he himself 
gets out of
it than from any altruistic motive. 
In many
cases, however, the obsessing entity is a departed preacher of the same 
religion,
style and type as the man obsessed, and thus we have temporarily two 
souls working
through one body. The double force thus gained is poured out 
recklessly
upon any audience that can be gathered together. The tremendous 
swinging
energy of these hysterical excesses is contagious, and since such 
revivals are
usually set on foot among people whose emotions are not under the 
control of a
strongly developed intellect, the preacher soon finds others who 
can be
reduced by sympathetic vibration to a condition as unbalanced as his own. 
Every one who
swings over the safety point adds to the strength of these 
exaggerated
vibrations, and soon an astral disturbance is set up of the nature 
of a gigantic
whirlpool. Towards this from all sides pour astral entities whose 
one desire is
for sensation-- no longer merely or even chiefly human beings, but 
all kinds of
nature-spirits who delight in and bathe in the vibrations of wild 
excitement
just as children play in the surf. It is they who supply and 
constantly
reinforce the energy which is expended with such terrible 
recklessness.
It is they who try to keep up the level of the excitement, so long 
as they can
find any human beings who can be dragged into the vortex and induced 
to give them
the pleasurable sensations which they desire. 
The emotion,
remember, is emphatically not of a high type, for it is intensely 
personal. It
is always motived by an exalted egoism, the desire to save one' s 
own soul; so
that the dominant idea is a selfish one. That defines the kind of 
matter which
is set in motion in these tremendous swirlings, and that again 
limits the
nature-spirits who enjoy it to such types as find themselves in tune 
with that
kind of matter. These are naturally by no means the highest types; 
they are
usually creatures without much intelligence or comprehension, 
understanding
nothing about their human victims; and quite unable to save them 
from the
consequences of their mad excitement, even if they could be supposed to 
care to do
so. 
This then is
the hidden side of such a movement; this is what the clairvoyant 
sees when he
watches one of these most astonishing meetings. He sees a number of 
human beings
who are taken out of themselves, whose higher vehicles are for the 
time being no
longer their own, but are being used to supply this torrent of 
energy. All
these people are pouring out their emotions in order to make a vast 
astral
whirlpool into which these great nature-spirits throw themselves with 
intense
delight, plunging and flying through it again and again in wild 
abandonment
of utter pleasure. For they can abandon themselves to pleasure with 
a
thoroughness of which the heavier human being knows nothing. Their whole life 
for the time
is one wild paroxysm, and this feeling reacts upon the human beings 
who
unconsciously minister to their pleasures, and gives them also a sensation 
of intense
exultation. 
Here we see
the explanation of the passional side of these extraordinary 
displays. All
that the nature-spirits desire is intense emotion of one kind or 
other on the
part of their human slaves. It is nothing to them whether that 
emotion be
religious or sexual; probably they do not even know the difference. 
Certainly
they cannot know whether either is helpful or harmful to the evolution 
of the human
beings concerned. The whole thing is a wild, mad orgie of non-human 
entities,
precisely the same thing as the mediaeval witches' sabbath, but 
provoked in
this case by an emotion which many consider as belonging to the good 
side instead
of to the evil side of life. But to these nature-spirits all that 
makes no
difference. They know nothing of good or evil; what they enjoy is the 
tremendous
excitement which they can gain only by swaying masses of human beings 
simultaneously
into a condition imminently dangerous to the sanity of their 
victims. No
one man alone could reach so dangerous a level of excitement. There 
must be a
great number reacting upon and, as it were, encouraging and 
strengthening
one another. Indeed, I should advise the student not to attend 
revival
meetings, because, unless he is in good health and well poised, there is 
definite
danger that even he may be swept off his feet. 
I wish it to
be distinctly understood that in what I have written I am in no way 
denying the
great fact that what is called “sudden conversion” does sometimes 
take place,
and that the man to whom it happens is ever after the better for it. 
The word `
conversion' is a noble one, if we can only dissociate it from such 
undignified
surroundings as those that I have been describing. It means “to turn 
along with,”
and its implication is that the man, who has hitherto been working 
along his own
selfish road, realises for the first time the mighty truth that 
God has a
plan for man, and that it is within his power to adapt himself 
intelligently
to this plan and fulfil the part in it which is destined for him. 
When he
realises this, he turns round and “goes together with” the divine Will, 
instead of
ignorantly working against it; and after he has once done this, 
although he
may become what the Christians call a backslider, although his 
vehicles may
run away with him, and carry him into all sorts of excesses, he can 
never again
sin without feeling remorse-- without knowing that he has fallen, 
and
regretting the fall. 
This
knowledge of the great facts of life is called in the East “the acquirement 
of
discrimination” or sometimes “the opening of the doors of the mind”. Usually 
it is a
gradual process, or at least one which comes as the result of continual 
thought or
reasoning. Sometimes, however, the final conviction is borne in upon 
the man in an
instant, and that is a case of what is called “sudden conversion”. 
If the man to
whom that instantaneous flash of conviction comes has previously 
reasoned the
thing out with himself (perhaps in other lives) and has almost 
persuaded
himself, so that he needs merely a final touch of illumination to make 
him quite
certain-- then the effect of such a conversion is permanent. Not that, 
even then,
the man may not frequently fall back, but he will always recover from 
such falls,
and will on the whole make steady progress. 
As has been
described, the emotional effect of a great revival meeting is very 
powerful. Not
only will it give the little additional touch which is needed for 
the `
conversion' of a man who is nearly ready for that process, but it will 
sometimes
seize upon a man who is as yet by no means ready, and it may be 
powerful
enough to swing him over the dividing line, and make him profess 
himself for
the moment (and quite honestly) as heartily converted as the other. 
But the
permanent effect is by no means the same. In this latter case, the man 
is not really
ready; there is a vast amount of force still uncontrolled in the 
lower part of
his nature, and although that was for the time dominated by the 
forces
present at the revival meeting, when that is over it reasserts itself, 
and the man
inevitably falls back again into his former courses. We must not 
blame him for
that; the strength which is needed for the permanent control of 
the lower
nature grows very slowly, and it would be unreasonable to expect that 
it can ever
be developed in a moment of enthusiasm. The cases in which it 
appears to be
so developed are simply those in which the force has been secretly 
gathering
itself for a long time previously. 
Therefore I
say again that I do not for a moment deny the occasional reality of 
sudden
conversions; I do not deny that a certain amount of good must follow from 
all the
devotional enthusiasm which is thrown into a religious revival. But I 
also say that
every word that I have written above as to the general effect of 
such
gatherings, and the part taken in them by non-human entities, is absolutely 
true; and for
that reason I cannot but think that such excitement should be 
avoided by
the student of occultism. 
In the rare
cases where a vast crowd is moved by a dominant idea which is wholly 
unselfish,
quite a different order of entities comes into play-- the astral 
angels, who
have an active delight in good. Under such guidance as theirs, the 
excessive temporary
vibration is safe and even helpful, for these beings 
understand
humanity and know how to bring it back again safely into its ordinary 
condition. 
Some years
ago I happened to see a remarkable instance of this which I will 
presently
describe, but I must first say a few words as to the virtue which 
caused the
outburst. For the whole difference is in the motive: in the case 
previously
described it was fundamentally selfish, but in this it was unselfish; 
in that it
was the hope of personal salvation, in this it was loyalty and 
patriotism. 
A WAVE OF
PATRIOTISM 
Patriotism is
a virtue upon which in these days it is very necessary to insist. 
But we must
be sure of what we mean by the term. It is not prejudice, nor is it 
ill-mannered
boasting. There are those who can see no good in any country but 
their own,
who are constantly vaunting with offensive swagger what they consider 
its
superlative excellencies, and disparaging all others. These are not 
patriots, but
mere braggarts: they exhibit not the strength of their loyalty, 
but the depth
of their ignorance. 
True
patriotism is the very antithesis of all this; it recognises that each 
country has
its advantages and its disadvantages, that each nation has its 
excellencies,
but also always its deficiencies, since no political or social 
scheme is yet
perfect, and there is a good deal of human nature everywhere. 
Nevertheless
it also sees that just as man owes consideration to the parents who 
have tended
him and to the family of which he finds himself a part, so does he 
also owe
something to the country into which he is born, for that birth is not a 
matter of
chance but of karma. He is put there because these are the 
surroundings
that he has deserved, and they are also those best suited to help 
onward his
evolution. He is put there not to receive only, but to give; for man 
learns best
by service. Thus he should be prepared when called upon to work for 
his country;
he should acquiesce cheerfully in such measures as may be necessary 
for the
general good, even though they may bring loss to him individually; he 
should forget
for his country' s sake his private interests and desires, and 
when the
opportunity arises he should give himself unsparingly to her service. 
I am aware
that, among students of what is called advanced thought, there are 
those who
sneer at patriotism as a virtue which is half a vice-- as an evidence 
of a low
stage of development. But that is a mistaken view: as well might one 
rail at
family affection for exactly the same reasons. Truly both love for 
family and
love for country are more limited than universal love, but they are 
nevertheless
stages on the way to it. If primitive man thinks only for himself, 
it is an
advance for him to extend his love to that wider self which we call the 
family, and
to learn to feel and to think for his nation is but a further step 
on the same
road. Later still he will learn to think and to feel for humanity as 
a whole, and
then he will come to see that the animal and the plant are our 
brothers,
even though they may be younger brothers, and that all life is the 
divine Life,
and so the love which was once confined to himself, to his family, 
to his clan,
to his nation, has become wide as the shoreless sea of the divine 
Love. 
But a very
necessary stage on the way to this goal is that patriotism which 
leads a man
to forego his own ease and comfort, to put aside his private 
opportunities
of gain, nay, to sacrifice his very life, in order to serve his 
country.
Naturally also he personifies his country in the person of her ruler, 
and so is
developed the other virtue of loyalty, and his character is thereby 
greatly
elevated and purified. That individual kings have in the past often been 
unworthy of
this high feeling is a sad fact, but it does not interfere with the 
other fact of
the benefit which accrues to those in whom such feeling is evoked. 
When it
fortunately happens that the sovereign is all that a ruler should be, we 
have a
collocation of circumstances in which loyalty can work with its greatest 
effect, and
splendid results may be achieved both for the King and his people. 
A remarkable
instance of this was seen in the enthusiasm evoked by the 
celebration
of the Diamond Jubilee of the late Queen Victoria. For those who 
could see it,
the inner side of the proceedings of that day was a spectacle 
never to be
forgotten. 
It happened
that on that occasion I had, through the kindness of a friend, a 
seat at one
of the office-windows in the City on the route of the great 
procession.
Even from the physical point of view, the decorations had 
transformed
the gloomy London streets. The whole of the fronts of the tall 
houses on
both sides of the dingy street were covered with a sort of scaffolding 
which formed
temporary balconies to each of the windows, and all these were 
closely
packed with men, women and children, so that the grim house-fronts were 
like cliffs
lined with faces, rising tier above tier, and the procession wound 
its way at
the foot, as along a gorge whose sides were built of human bodies. 
Mostly the
people were business men with their wives and families, and country 
friends; and
these latter introduced an element of gaiety and curiosity to which 
those stern,
dark City streets are unaccustomed, for as a rule the people gave 
themselves up
to the enjoyment of the occasion, and to the criticising of their 
neighbours'
toilets. The City men themselves were in the majority of cases 
unable to
shake off their anxieties, and were to be seen still surrounded by 
thought-forms
of prices and percentages. Occasionally a privileged carriage 
would dash
by, or a regiment of soldiers on its way to take part in the pageant; 
but those
rarely claimed more than a moment' s attention from these business 
men, who
collapsed almost immediately into their calculations again. Even when 
at last the
great procession itself appeared, their interest in it was but 
half-hearted,
and they saw it against a background of stocks and shares and 
financial
anxiety. 
Now and again
some specially popular visitor received a little ovation, but on 
the whole the
astral appearance of that huge crowd differed little at that 
period from
that of other similar gatherings. The delight of the children at so 
unusual a
holiday showed itself in many a flash and coruscation of colour, while 
their
fathers' thoughts frequently offered the unfavourable contrast of dark and 
leaden
patches, blots upon the variegated brilliancy of the scene, for they were 
but little
affected by the waves of excitement which were beginning to leap 
across from
side to side of the street. But the vibration of feeling grew 
stronger and
stronger, and when the splendour of that marvellous pageant 
culminated in
the approach of the Queen herself, a startling change took place, 
for all the
thousands of little local flashes and vortices of colour disappeared 
utterly,
overwhelmed in the tremendous cataract of mingled blue and rose and 
violet, which
was pouring like a veritable Niagara down both sides of that 
living valley
of faces. 
Literally the
only comparison possible for it was that smooth, resistless rush 
which is so
impressive as one looks up from below at the greatest waterfall of 
the world,
but here it was combined with a wealth of indescribably glorious 
colour far
beyond any conception on the physical plane. No words can give any 
idea of the
effect of that tremendous outburst of simultaneous enthusiasm, that 
coruscating
cascade of love and loyalty and veneration, all converging upon the 
carriage in
which the Royal Lady sat, unrestrainedly weeping in sympathy with 
the
overflowing emotion of her subjects. Yes, and her subjects wept also-- wept 
for pure joy
and depth of feeling-- and those hard-headed business men forgot 
their calculations
and their anxieties, forgot themselves and their sordid 
financial
considerations utterly for the time, and were transported into a 
higher world,
lifted clear out of themselves, up to a plane of thought and 
feeling which
many of them had not touched since early days of innocent 
childhood. 
An unique
experience, not easily to be had in prosaic times like these, but a 
most salutary
one, which could not but leave a beneficial impression upon 
everyone who
passed through it. That strong soul-shaking was transient, no 
doubt, yet
every heart had for the moment been stirred to its profoundest depths 
by noble,
unselfish emotion, and every heart was the better for it. 
A similar and
even more splendid exhibition of unselfish emotion has taken place 
recently at
the Coronation of His Majesty King George V. I had not myself the 
privilege of
seeing that in the physical body; but an account from those 
clairvoyants
who did see it shows that it must have surpassed even that other 
demonstration.
WAR 
Another
occasional event-- happily very occasional and growing rarer and rarer-- 
which
profoundly stirs the hearts of the people, is war. Now I suppose that few 
at the
present day would venture to deny that war is an absurd and atrocious 
anachronism.
If we pause for a moment to think, we all know perfectly well that 
the result of
a battle does not in the least decide the original question at 
issue. It may
show which army has the cleverest general or the greatest weight 
of artillery;
it certainly does not show which side is in the right in the 
quarrel, if
there be any right. So far as individuals are concerned, all except 
the very
lowest classes have passed beyond the stage of attempting to decide 
personal
disputes by ordeal of battle; when our convictions as to a boundary 
line differ
pronouncedly from our neighbour' s, we no longer assemble our 
servants and
try to argue the matter with rifles or bludgeons, but we refer the 
case instead
to a tribunal in whose impartiality we both have reasonable 
confidence. 
As nations,
however, we are not yet at the level of evolution which we have 
reached as
individuals; we are willing (some of us) to submit comparatively 
unimportant
matters of dispute to arbitration, but there is as yet no court in 
which the races
of the world have sufficient trust to accept its decision in a 
question
vital to their existence. So the irrational appeal to brute force still 
remains as a
possibility hovering ever in the background of national life like a 
menacing
thundercloud. 
Poets have
sung of the glories of war, but the legions of the Red Cross, who go 
forth not to
hurt but to help, who come upon the battle-field after the rifle 
and the
cannon have done their work-- these can tell us something of the true 
meaning of
war, and of all the ghastly horrors involved in the gallant defence 
or the
successful charge. War may still be sometimes a necessity-- the lesser of 
two evils;
but it is so only because our boasted civilisation is still 
lamentably
deficient. Yet, horrible and senseless though it be, it is capable in 
a certain way
of utilisation; it has its part to play at an early stage of 
evolution. 
Unquestionably
the egos incarnated in the Zulu hordes, that did not hesitate to 
march to
certain death at the command of Chaka or Cetewayo, acquired in that way 
qualities of
obedience, self-control and self-sacrifice which will be valuable 
to them in
later births amid surroundings where they can be put to more rational 
use; and it
is to the Zulu level of development that war properly belongs. The 
same lessons,
however, are needed by many who obtain birth in higher races than 
the Zulu; and
without abating one jot of our horror of the ghastly cruelty and 
senselessness
of war, we may yet admit that such devotion to the abstract idea 
of patriotism
as will lead a man to be ready to die for it, means a distinct 
advance upon
the normal attitude of the class from which our common soldiers are 
chiefly
drawn. Those who are closely acquainted with our agricultural population 
cannot have
failed also to observe the difference which military or naval 
training
makes in the young man-- how, from being slow of speech and 
comprehension,
he becomes alert, dexterous, resourceful and self-respecting. 
Unfortunately
he sometimes picks up other and less desirable habits at the same 
time, but at
least he is less bovine and more human. 
There is,
however, no reason why an excellent system of physical training should 
not be
universally adopted even when peace reigns supreme, so that we might gain 
all the
benefit which is at present derived by those who are trained in the army 
and navy,
without the sinful and ridiculous waste of life and money in actual 
warfare. A
step in this direction is already being taken by the admirable 
organisation
called the Boy Scouts, and it is fervently to be hoped that this 
may spread
over the whole world, so that its benefits may be shared by all. 
Terrible and
wicked though it be, war, when it does occur (that is, when it 
cannot longer
be prevented), is always utilised and turned to at least some sort 
of
compensatory good by the Authorities who stand behind. It is sometimes 
employed also
as an alternative to something still worse, or a smaller war is 
permitted in
order to avoid a more disastrous one. 
I have been
told that if the war which England recently waged in South Africa 
had not taken
place, a colossal and terrible European war would have been 
inevitable,
which would have involved far more widespread destruction. It is 
also certain
that that war was utilised to bind more closely together the 
different
parts of the British Empire, so that in standing side by side upon the 
battle-field
men might learn to become more brotherly and to understand one 
another
better. Indeed, that is an effect which has often followed upon war, 
that the
factions within a country have agreed to forget their differences in 
the face of
the common enemy. The attack of Italy upon Tripoli may or may not be 
in the
abstract justifiable; but no one who has lived in the country can doubt 
that it has
had its value in bringing the somewhat heterogeneous population of 
Italy into a
closer unity than ever before-- into a realisation of its 
solidarity as
a nation. 
The hidden
side of the actual fighting is perhaps less remarkable than might be 
expected. The
sound-forms produced by the discharge of artillery and by the 
ceaseless
rattling of the rifles are naturally of a striking nature, but as far 
as the astral
world is concerned, a surging mass of confusion is the principal 
characteristic
in the neighbourhood of the battle-field. 
There is
inevitably a certain amount of fear coming from those who are new to 
the ghastly
work; but there is usually comparatively little of actual hatred. 
The pain and
grief of the wounded are terrible enough, yet even then there is in 
most cases
little of hatred or personality. There is generally a strong sense of 
order,
obedience, determination, coming perhaps principally from the officers 
and the older
soldiers. But unless the spectator senses the thought-forms of the 
generals, it
is difficult to get any coherent idea of the scene as a whole. 
Many
invisible helpers are brought together during a battle, to receive the dead 
and extend to
them any assistance of which they may be in need. But, taking it 
as a whole,
there is far more feeling excited about war in the minds of 
countrymen
and relations than in those of the soldiers themselves who actually 
take part in
it. 
CATASTROPHES 
Sometimes great
catastrophes other than war overtake the world. Two hundred 
thousand
people perished suddenly in an earthquake at Messina; what is the 
occult side
of such a happening as that? The inner sight helps us to look more 
understandingly
on such events as this, and while we pity the sufferers no less, 
we yet avoid
the feeling of overwhelming horror and dismay which paralyses many 
at the
thought of such an occurrence. Let us think calmly, analytically, what 
really
happened in that case. Two hundred thousand people were suddenly released 
from the
burden of the flesh. Surely we have no need to pity them. We cannot 
speak of them
as sufferers, for they have been lifted suddenly and painlessly 
into a higher
and happier life, and in such a catastrophe as this there is 
really less
of suffering than in connection with many isolated cases of death. 
The suffering
caused by sudden death is never to the dead man, but to the 
relations
who, not understanding the facts of death, suppose themselves to have 
lost him. But
precisely in a great catastrophe of this nature, few are left to 
mourn for the
others, since the families within a certain area are almost all 
destroyed.
The direct relations in most cases die together, and those who are 
left to mourn
are more distant relations settled in far-away districts. 
Some there
were beyond doubt who suffered terribly-- men who were wounded and 
left for days
awaiting succour; others who were shut in beneath heaps of ruins 
and suffocated
or starved to death. Towards these indeed our keenest sympathy 
may well go
forth. Yet remember that they can have been at most but few, a 
smaller
number than those who die of starvation every week in our capital city 
of London,
for starvation is not merely absolute lack of food for a certain 
number of
days. A man who has insufficient food, or bad food containing 
insufficient
nourishment, for a period of years, is starving to death quite as 
surely as the
man who for a few days has no food at all, and there is far more 
prolonged
suffering in the former case than in the latter. 
But again, it
may be said, in the earthquake there was a vast amount of 
suffering,
because many people were rendered homeless, and because they were 
bereft of
their ordinary supplies of food. That again is true, and to those also 
our heartiest
sympathy must be extended. Indeed, we know that the whole world 
did so extend
it, and from the occult view by far the most important effect of 
that
earthquake was the great wave of sympathy and pity which came rolling in 
upon the
place from every part of the habitable globe to which the news had been 
carried. 
It is not
death which we should regard as an evil fate; our Theosophical 
knowledge has
at least taught us that. It is never the dead whom we should pity, 
but the
living who still suffer under all the cramping restrictions of this 
strange
physical plane. For those whose consciousness knows no other world, it 
seems
terrible to have to quit this; a man whose sight ranges over the higher 
worlds knows,
with a vivid certainty that nothing can shake, that, if one is to 
consider
happiness alone, the happiest moment for every man is that in which he 
escapes from
this world into the wider and more real life above. 
Granted that
our life here is a necessity, that we have development to make 
which can be
made only under these hard conditions; it is for that reason that 
our physical
life is necessary, and so we come forth into it as a man goes forth 
from his home
to some unpleasant task which nevertheless he knows must be done. 
Pity by all
means the poor fellow who is exiled from that higher life, but do 
not waste
your sorrow upon those who have gone home again to the glory, the 
beauty and
the rest. 
Seen from the
physical world everything is distorted, because we see only so 
tiny a part
of it, and then with strange stupidity insist upon taking that for 
the whole.
Occultism teaches us a finer proportion, and brings our life into 
perspective
for us, and so, while we lack nothing of sympathy for all who 
suffer, we
yet learn that those who most need our sympathy are not those upon 
whom the
undiscerning world showers it most freely. 
All worlds
alike are part of the great Solar Deity; in Him “we live and move and 
have our
being,” and since we cannot fall away from His presence nor escape His 
guiding hand,
what matters all the rest? 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XII 
BY UNSEEN
BEINGS 
SENSITIVE
PEOPLE 
THE
occasional events to which we have hitherto referred have been such as might 
come into the
life of almost anyone. There is another class of occasional events 
which usually
come only to a certain type of people; but upon those people they 
exercise an
influence so great that it cannot readily be measured-- great enough 
often to
alter the whole current of a life. There are those among us who are 
more sensitive
than the majority of men, who dream dreams and see visions; and 
to these
people their visions are the most important fact of life. Naturally 
also, such
people are attracted to the study of occultism, so that the 
proportion of
them among our readers is likely to be far greater than in the 
world which
cares for none of these things. To these visions also there is a 
hidden side,
one which it is of great importance to study. 
Visions are
of many kinds-- some trivial and unimportant, others profoundly 
interesting
and productive of far-reaching effects to those who experience them. 
In some cases
their genesis is obvious; in others curious and unexpected 
associations
play their part, and a number of quite separate causes may combine 
to produce
what seems to be a single story. 
As I have
written several books upon the conditions of the astral world, it not 
unfrequently
happens that persons who have had psychic experiences or visions 
which they
have not fully comprehended, send me accounts of them and ask me 
whether my
experience along these lines suggests any explanation. Such letters 
are not
always easy to answer-- not that there is usually any difficulty in 
formulating a
hypothesis which will fit the facts, but because there are too 
many such
hypotheses. Almost every experience described might equally easily 
have been
produced in any one of half-a-dozen ways, and without undertaking a 
special and
detailed investigation it is often impossible to say which of these 
methods was
employed in a particular case. Naturally, but few of the hundreds of 
cases
submitted are of sufficient general interest to warrant such expenditure 
of time and
force; but occasionally one is encountered which is specially 
characteristic--
so good an example of its type that an analysis of it might 
conceivably
be of use to many others to whom similar experiences have come. 
A REMARKABLE
CASE 
Such an one
came to me recently from a lady-- an account of a long and 
complicated
vision or series of visions, coupled with impressive experiences, 
which had
left behind them a permanent result. In order to understand what had 
really
happened a certain amount of investigation was necessary, in course of 
which it
became evident that several distinct factors had come into play to 
produce the
curious effects described. Each of these factors had to be followed 
up separately
and traced to its source, and I think that students can hardly 
fail to be
interested in an examination of the way in which these independent 
and disconnected
causes worked to bring forth a somewhat startling whole. 
I give here
an epitome of the story as sent to me, using in many cases the exact 
words of the
narrator, but condensing as much as I can without losing the spirit 
and style of
the original. It should be premised that the lady had become 
dissatisfied
with the religious doctrines of her childhood, and had commenced 
the study of
comparative religion, reading several Theosophical books-- among 
others The
Secret Doctrine. She was very earnestly desirous to know the truth 
and to make
whatever progress might be possible for her. In the course of her 
reading she
came across Swami Vivekananda' s book on Raja Yoga, and practised 
the breathing
exercises therein recommended. The result was that she rapidly 
developed a
certain kind of clairvoyance and began to write automatically. For 
some five
days she indulged her astral controls, writing all day long whatever 
they wished. 
It seems that
she was strongly opposed to the idea of capital punishment, and 
had felt
great sympathy and pity for a murderer who had recently been executed 
in her
neighbourhood. Among other entities this dead murderer came and 
communicated,
and brought with him other men of the same stamp. She made the 
most earnest
efforts to help these people, trying in every way to give them hope 
and comfort
and to teach them as much of Theosophy as she knew. She soon found, 
however, that
the murderer dominated and obsessed her, and that she was unable 
to eject him.
Her case became rapidly worse, and her life and reason hung in the 
balance. For
a long time no suggestion, no effort, mitigated her sufferings, 
though she
prayed continually with all the power of her soul. 
At last one
day she became conscious of the presence of another being who 
brought her
relief. He told her that the prayer of her spirit had been 
recognised,
that he had been appointed as her ` guide,' and that because of her 
spiritual
development and the power which she had shown in prayer, she was 
considered
especially hopeful and was about to be the recipient of most unusual 
favours. In
fact, he said so much about her remarkable position and the 
recognition
which she had gained, that she asked wonderingly: 
“Who then am
I?” 
“You are
Buddha,” was the startling reply. 
“And who are
you? ” she asked. 
“I am the
Christ,” he answered, “and I will now take charge of you.” 
Our
correspondent here showed her commonsense and her great superiority over the 
majority of
those who receive such communications by absolutely refusing to 
believe these
astonishing statements, but she nevertheless accepted the guidance 
(and the
teaching upon other points) of the entity who made these astounding 
claims. 
He then told
her that she was to pass through an initiation, and that if she 
succeeded she
would be admitted to the “council of heaven,” which had been 
called
together to decide whether the world should now be destroyed, or whether 
yet another
effort for its salvation should be made. He urged her to hasten to 
qualify
herself to attend this meeting while the fate of the world still hung in 
the balance,
so that she might give her voice in favour of salvation. Her 
attitude of
mind was rather curious; she certainly did not accept these 
extravagant
claims, but still she half-believed that there was some great work 
to be done,
and she was willing to continue the experiment and submit herself to 
the guidance
of the entity who had saved her from obsession. 
As a
preliminary to the initiation she was directed to have a bed put into a 
room where
she could lock the door, to lie down upon it and make herself 
comfortable.
The guide then instructed her to breathe the yoga breath as taught 
by
Vivekananda. He told her that her previous efforts had raised the 
serpent-fire
to the solar plexus, and that now she must raise it to the brain-- 
a process in
which he would help and direct her. 
She describes
the sensations which followed as exactly resembling the travail of 
a woman in
labour, except that the pain was along the spine, and it seemed that 
the birth was
to take place in the brain. Many times her sufferings were so 
excruciating
that she grew desperate and was about to abandon the struggle, but 
the guide
seemed most anxious and always implored her not to yield, but to carry 
through the
ordeal to the end. He hovered over her like an attendant physician 
or nurse,
encouraging, directing, helping, doing everything that he could to 
assist the
birth. At last she prevailed, and she asserts that the birth appeared 
to her just
as definite and real a thing as that of one of her own children. 
When it had
taken place the guide was greatly relieved, and exclaimed: “Thank 
God it is
over.” 
This extraordinary
experience was, however, only the prelude to a long series of 
marvellous
visions, lasting altogether through twelve days of our physical time. 
These visions
were partly of a directly personal character, and partly of the 
nature of
general instruction-- often incoherent and indescribable, yet always 
interesting
and impressive. The personal part consisted of her relation with the 
so-called
“council of heaven” and the result of her dealings with it, and also 
included some
curious symbolical visions in which persons well known to her in 
physical life
seemed to play the part of the world which she was trying to save 
and of the
arch-enemy Satan, a fallen angel who resisted her. She pertinently 
remarks that
this was all the more strange since for many years she had quite 
outgrown any
belief in a personal devil or in the necessity of what is 
ordinarily
called ` salvation' . 
The general
instruction was broadly Theosophical in its character, and referred 
chiefly to
the stages of creation and the evolution of the various root-races. 
She describes
the first stage of this as follows: 
“I then
beheld a wonderful vision. At first in the midst of darkness I saw a 
vast Darkness
which seemed to brood and brood for ages. Then a slight movement 
began, as if
it might be the faintest dream in this great darkness. Little by 
little the
movement increased, until at last a definite thought seemed to 
evolve.
Little by little constantly changing forms appeared. All was chaos. Even 
the forms
were in the midst of chaos, and the travail of the Universe was 
terrible. All
was one. It seemed as if the effort to evolve order and to make of 
so many forms
a unit, demonstrated beyond doubt that all was made by One Great 
Being, and
that the pain and responsibility were felt by Him alone. This 
continued for
a long time, with another expression of birth-giving, with 
enlarging
results and unchanging solemnity. 
“I do not
know when I first began to see souls. It must have been early in the 
wonderful exhibition;
for I remember very distinctly how thickly they lay 
everywhere in
the midst of chaos, and in the midst of forms. In the continual 
vibration of
this marvellous evolution these souls were swallowed up in forms, 
which forms
again changed to souls. These souls were egg-shaped and of all 
sizes, from
tiny ones to larger ones, but none so large as I saw later in a 
wonderful
sequel. 
“After a time
the panorama of marvels changed and the world assumed a shape 
familiar to
my mode of thought. Symbol upon symbol passed, including all history 
and
mythology. Thousands of pictures passed in review, as if revealing the whole 
of Cosmos and
of history. I can recall but few now, but one will serve as an 
illustration.
“I saw a cow
of immense proportions-- almost as large as one of our mountains. A 
ladder was
placed against her, and a man crept slowly and laboriously up the 
ladder, round
by round. He represented Humanity. When at last he reached her 
back, he
stretched forward and grasped both her horns. Humanity claimed the 
products and
bounty of the earth for all, not for a few only. My guide called 
the cow ` The
cow of Demeter' . My reading of the classics had taught me that 
Demeter
represented the earth.” 
It was
apparently at this stage that she was introduced to the “council of 
heaven”. She
found it to consist of a small number of colossal figures seated in 
a semicircle.
The members seemed impatient with the world and determined that it 
should be
destroyed, but she begged most earnestly that another chance should be 
given to
humanity, saying that she had lived and died many times for the world, 
and was quite
ready to devote herself once more to its service. Her guide told 
her
afterwards that she had no idea in the physical world how eloquent she had 
been in her
pleadings on that occasion. There seems to have been some difference 
of opinion in
the council, but eventually the majority yielded to her prayer, 
and promised
to send help to her and to her guide in order that they might work 
for the
world. (An examination into the truth lying behind this remarkable 
vision of the
“council of heaven” was one of the most interesting features of 
the
investigation, of which I shall write later.) After this the 
semi-theosophical
visions were resumed. Once more I quote the words of her 
letter: 
“That night
other visions succeeded, but the story of symbology changed. I saw a 
valley in
which lay the human race, and over it hovered a swarm of beings clad 
in white, but
the whiteness radiated no light. Humanity was dark and shadowed. I 
rushed to
awaken them, but at my approach the white-clad figures rushed into 
strong,
determined and powerful groups to prevent my accomplishing my purpose. I 
recognised
that they were deceiving spirits, self-appointed teachers and 
preachers of
the earth, and that they resolutely beat down and held down the 
dazed and
shadowed humanity. But even as I looked I saw here and there an 
awakening
soul among the human multitude. As this soul awoke it grew luminous as 
with a light
from within, and at the same time it arose from its prone position 
and began to
move about over the sleeping world, trying to arouse others. I 
seemed to
stand on a distant mountain, but could distinctly see whenever a soul 
began to
awaken and to shine, and before the vision passed, many of these 
radiant
lights seemed to burst out here and there, and even a golden light of 
sun-rays
began to gild the tops of the surrounding mountains, and the whiterobed 
figures fled
as this golden radiance increased. They, however, continued to 
exercise
themselves in strenuous endeavours to counteract and oppose my efforts 
to help the
world or to live my life. 
“All night
the visions continued, but those towards morning were vague. My guide 
awoke me and
told me to get up and get a cup of coffee and to gather myself 
together, as
I was so much in the spirit as to be about to depart from the body 
altogether.
When I had obeyed I found myself dazed. All the time in which I was 
endeavouring
to make a fire and to prepare the cup of coffee, my guide was 
present and I
was conscious of a most wonderful condition. Angels seemed to 
surround me
and to sing hymns of thanksgiving. It was Thanksgiving morning, and 
the former
inclemency of the weather had given place to balminess. I opened the 
door and
turned my face to the south-west. I felt myself surrounded by supernal 
Beings, and
sang with them a wonderful hymn of praise and thanksgiving. It 
resembled the
Assumption of the Virgin-mother, the immaculate conception, the 
birth and
presence of the wonderful Child at once. A peculiarly refreshing but 
unfamiliar
odour permeated the atmosphere. My guide said that the angels were 
burning
frankincense. Later in the day my guide again told me to go to bed. 
“The vision
was most wonderful. Again I beheld Creation, but this time it was 
different. I
saw the races in the aggregate. As the races appeared and vanished, 
my guide said
solemnly: ` And the evening and the morning were the first day,' ` 
And the
evening and the morning were the second day,' etc. Somehow, though I 
cannot now
explain it, although I felt that I understood it at the time, the 
fifth race
was born in the fourth day, and seemed to be of special importance. 
To that birth
my special attention was called, as the full-fledged fifth-race 
man lay
stretched on the hands of a great Being, and was held out to me to 
observe. In
this vision I saw that, up to the fifth race, mankind was all sorts. 
Some were
large and some were small. Chaos prevailed, and there was little order 
anywhere in
the human universe. But after the birth of the fifth race man I saw 
that all had
become equal and all worked in perfect harmony. I saw also, at this 
time, that
the race took solid form, like a phalanx-- the form, however, being 
circular--
and that a band was slipped around the whole mass, passing from man 
to man, and
that no man could get outside of that binding band. The passing of 
the race was
marked by the whole human race being suddenly transformed into the 
soul form--
egg-shaped. 
“In the sixth
race the development was very marked indeed. The individuals were 
equal, but
much larger than in the fifth race. The tendency of the whole race 
was much more
upward, and the movement had become greatly accelerated. At some 
time towards
the close of the fifth or the beginning of the sixth-- I cannot 
accurately
recall just when-- I saw sunlight again gilding the peaks. The race 
emerged from
shadow into sunlight, and the onward and upward tendency became 
swifter and
swifter. Then, the hour having once more struck, the eggs lay 
together just
as do the eggs in a nest, but their number was countless. 
“My guide
left me here. He said he could not go on with me, that I must go on 
alone and
interpret for myself the meaning of my visions. He warned me to be 
careful not
to give up my life; for upon my going through successfully and not 
giving up my
life would depend my success and the salvation of the world, for 
which all
this that we had seen had been done. In other words, I believed myself 
to be passing
through a terrible ordeal for the salvation of the world. 
“As I beheld
the development of the seventh race I seemed to go to unimaginable 
altitudes
indeed. The band that I first saw binding the fifth race was strongly 
encompassing
the sixth and seventh races. It became unbreakable. And as I looked 
into the
faces of the men of the seventh race, I saw that gradually they shone 
more and more
brightly with an inner light. Their radiance no longer came from 
without, but
each was shining, living, dazzling light. 
“My body was
now very weary, and when evening came I begged for rest. But this 
was not
given. I was put through many trials. Many were terrible, and it 
required the
utmost exertion of my powers to enable me to endure. What was the 
nature of
this I do not know. I know only that I promised to deliver God' s 
message under
any and all conditions, no matter what they might be, if He should 
require it.
But the trials were awful. At one time I refused the visions, though 
they were
becoming more and more beautiful. They then ceased, and I seemed to 
find myself
in the power of Satan. (All these orthodox terms I personally had 
long disclaimed
but they became real again in the visions.) 
“For a time I
believed that as a punishment for my perverseness, or rather as a 
result of
this mistake, I had lost all. The awful crisis had passed. The world 
was lost as a
result of my failure; and now it seemed to be not only this world, 
but the
Universe. How I prayed and struggled then! Before all could be restored 
I promised
not only to give up my life but the lives of my children and even the 
very life of
my soul, if need be for the salvation of the world. 
“I cannot
linger here. Towards morning a wonderful breath came into my body, 
going up and
down the spine as if there were absolutely no physical obstruction 
in my body,
and as it breathed or flowed through me, it sang a wonderful, divine 
anthem, and
ended in a marvellous union, in which I felt myself fully united 
with God.
That was a condition it were folly to attempt to describe. 
“During this
time I beheld a new series of visions-- all of glory. There were no 
forms that I
can recall, but glory after glory of colour, each brighter and 
grander than
the last. At last it was a wonderful violet, and as it shone upon 
me in
unspeakable glory, I was told that I might go on and see God if I would. I 
asked if from
there I might return, and was told that if I went on I could not 
return. I
then said once more, as I had done in a hundred other trials: ` I must 
live to save
the world.' And as I said that and refused to go on, the sun rose 
in the world,
where I was then conscious, and I looked up at my beautiful 
vision,
thinking how dull the sun was, and then gradually the vision faded. 
“Just when, I
cannot say, but about this time, I was laid on a cross during the 
night, placed
in a sepulchre, and believed my body was dead. My physical heart, 
as I thought,
was arrested, and the pain which I endured was excruciating. But 
the bliss of
my soul in the higher visions was as great as was the pain in the 
body in the
sacrificial trials. 
“After this I
must desist from any effort at description. I really cannot tell 
the strange
things that befell me, nor are they clear in my memory. One of the 
ideas was
that I was put through preparation for the work I was to do; another, 
I seemed to
hear, and be a part of, involution as well as evolution. Perhaps it 
represented
the experiences of the soul preparing for incarnation. 
“When at last
I came out of it all, I found my sorrow-stricken family around my 
bed. They had
thought that I was dying. From the beginning of my abnormal 
condition to
the final close had been twelve days, and for five days and nights 
I had not
slept. On the last day, I had believed myself that after all I was not 
to live
longer in this world, and when I awoke to full and normal consciousness, 
the voice
that I had heard so mysteriously gradually faded away, as did the 
visions, and
neither have appeared to me since. 
“But since
then, I have been conscious of a new spiritual life, and in 
meditation I
reach a blissful condition, and I feel sure that some wonderful 
thing has
happened to me.” 
THE VISION
INVESTIGATED 
It must be
understood that the extracts given above are only a small part of the 
visions
described by our correspondent, but I think that I have given a fair 
sample of
them, and have not omitted any point of special interest. 
Anyone who is
accustomed to analyse psychic phenomena will at once see that 
there are in
the account several features which differentiate it from the 
average. Many
visions, even though quite elaborate and detailed, and intensely 
realistic to
the seer, prove on examination to be entirely self-created. I mean 
that a man
first thinks out a subject himself along certain lines, thereby 
creating a
series of thought-forms; and then he proceeds to pass out of his body 
in sleep or
trance, sees his own thought-forms without recognising them as his, 
and supposes
them to be actualities instead of imperfect reflections. Thus he is 
strongly confirmed
in his particular belief or superstition, whatever it happens 
to be,
because he himself has seen it in a vision which he is sure to regard as 
celestial.
Such a man is of course perfectly honest in his conviction, and even 
perfectly
right in saying that he has seen certain things; the weak point is 
that he has
not the training which would enable him to distinguish the nature of 
what he has
seen. In the case now before us, however, there are various little 
touches,
which are extremely unlikely to have been the thoughts of the seer, and 
there is
considerable evidence that a mind differing much from hers must have 
been
responsible for a great deal of what was seen. 
As our
correspondent was anxious to understand the genesis of her visions, and 
as their
history gave promise of somewhat unusual features, it seemed worth 
while to make
a definite investigation into the matter. 
A rapport was
therefore obtained with the lady, and it was further found 
necessary to
examine the astral and mental records connected with her, and thus 
ascertain
what had really happened to her. It was soon obvious that many 
distinct
factors entered into the matter, and it was only by patiently 
disentangling
the threads and following each one up to its origin that all the 
causes could
be clearly seen. To put the case briefly: 
The lady, as
hundreds of other people have done, had got herself into serious 
trouble by an
unwise use of breathing exercises. Her desperate efforts to escape 
from the
result of these exercises attracted the attention of a dead man who was 
strong enough
to be of some use to her. But this man had objects of his own to 
gain--
objects not consciously selfish, but belonging to a curious personal 
delusion of
his-- and as he helped her he realised that he had here what might 
be a powerful
instrument for the furtherance of his plans. He promptly modified 
his scheme,
gave her a prominent part in it, and pushed her on into experiences 
which without
him she would probably not have had for several incarnations yet. 
Much of what
resulted was evidently not at all what he had expected, though he 
tried bravely
to turn it all to account. Eventually he dropped her, partly 
because he
was alarmed at the turn which matters were taking, and partly because 
he began to
see that he could not use her quite as he had hoped. The outcome of 
the whole
adventure, so far as our correspondent is concerned, has been good, 
but this is a
piece of good fortune for which she cannot be too thankful, since 
the risks
were enormous, and by any ordinary calculations there was scarcely the 
barest
possibility that she would escape with her life and with reason 
unimpaired
from such an experience. 
In order to
comprehend all that occurred we must first try to understand what 
manner of man
was this ` guide,' and how he came to be what he was. During 
physical life
he had been a small farmer, a kindly but ignorant man, fanatically 
religious in
a narrow protestant way. His only literature was the Christian 
Bible, over
which he pored during the long winter evenings until his whole life 
became
saturated with his conception of its teachings. Needless to say, his 
conceptions
were usually misconceptions, often so grossly material as to be 
ludicrous,
yet the man was so thoroughly in earnest that it was impossible to 
laugh at him.
He lived in a
thinly populated part of the country, and as he found his few 
neighbours
out of sympathy with his religious views he became more and more a 
recluse as
years rolled by, living frugally on the produce of a small part of 
his farm, and
devoting himself with increasing ardour to the study of his one 
book. This
constant brooding over one idea brought him eventually into a 
condition of
religious monomania, in which he came to believe himself the chosen 
saviour of
the world, the Christ who was destined to offer to it once more the 
opportunity
of salvation which two thousand years ago it had received only very 
partially. A
prominent feature in his scheme was the rescue from its false 
belief of the
vast mass of non-Christian humanity, and his idea was that this 
should be
done not along ordinary missionary lines but through the influence of 
its own great
leaders. It was this part of his programme which induced him to 
take so keen
an interest in our correspondent, as we shall see later. 
While still
fully possessed by these religious delusions the worthy farmer died. 
Naturally
enough, his astral life was simply a continuation of the physical, 
raised as it
were to a higher power. He soon found himself amidst the crude 
thought-forms
of the golden Jerusalem, a special corner of which he seems to 
have modelled
for himself to suit his idiosyncrasies. The result of his efforts 
to visualise
the descriptions given in the Apocalypse were sometimes really 
ingenious and
original. I noticed specially his image of the four and twenty 
elders bowing
perpetually in adoration before the throne, and casting at the 
feet of the
deity their golden crowns, which immediately rose from the ground 
and fluttered
back automatically on to their heads, only to be cast down again. 
His “sea of
glass mingled with fire” was not altogether successful, and looked 
rather like
some unusually weird product of a volcanic eruption. His image of 
the
All-Father was quite conventional-- a stern-looking old man with a long 
white beard.
In the earlier part of his physical life he had evidently had a 
thought-image
of the Christ-- the usual impossible combination of a crucifix and 
a lamb
bearing a flag; but during the later period, when he was persuaded that 
he himself
was the Christ, this figure had not been strengthened, and it was 
consequently
inconspicuous and inactive. 
It is among
these thought-forms of his that we have to seek for the “council of 
heaven” which
plays a part in our correspondent' s vision, and the constitution 
of that
council proved to be both interesting and instructive. The idea seems 
originally to
have been that the council was a sort of selection of about ten of 
the more
important biblical characters (Elijah, Moses, Peter, etc.) represented 
by colossal
figures seated in a semicircle on uncomfortable-looking high-backed 
golden
chairs, which, though supposed to be celestial thrones, were manifestly 
derived from
an imperfect recollection of the sedillia in some Gothic cathedral. 
The deity
himself presided over their deliberations. 
Originally
the members of this council had obviously been nothing but 
thought-forms;
but at the time when cur enquiries brought us into contact with 
them, several
of them had been seized and ensouled by living entities, and this 
ensoulment
introduced some new and interesting factors. Two of these entities 
were dead
men, both of them religious people, each working from his own point of 
view. One of
them was a man of German extraction, who during earth-life had been 
a
shoe-maker-- a simple and uninstructed man not altogether unlike the former. 
He too had
studied the Bible diligently; he too was a dreamer of vague, mystical 
dreams; he
too felt that he had a special revelation or interpretation to offer 
to the
world-- something far more rational than the farmer' s. He had come to 
feel that the
essential truth of Christianity lay in the mystical union of 
Christ and
his heavenly bride, the Church. To him the Christ was far less the 
historical
personality of the Gospels than the living spirit of the Church, and 
the task of
the true Christian was to awaken within himself the Christ-spirit. 
The message
which humanity needed, he thought, was that every man could and 
should become
a Christ-- a message which seemed to him so clear and simple that 
it needed
only to be delivered to command instant attention, and thus to save 
the world
from sin and lift it at once into the light of truth. He had begun 
preaching to
this effect while still on the physical earth, but had died before 
he had done
much towards the conversion of humanity. 
Arriving in
the astral world, he was still as eager as ever to spread his views, 
and having
met the farmer he struck up a friendship with him. They had much in 
common, and
each felt that the other might be helpful to him in the prosecution 
of his
scheme. The shoemaker did not recognise the farmer as the sole Christ, 
but he did
apply his theory to him, and consider him as a person in whom the 
Christ-spirit
was exceptionally developed. The farmer understood only vaguely 
the
shoe-maker' s central idea, but he realised that he had found some one who 
was willing
to co-operate in saving the world. Each regarded the other as 
somewhat
eccentric, but still each with a simple cunning thought that he could 
make use of
the other for his own purposes. 
Between them
they had conceived this curious idea of a “council of heaven” of 
which they
were both members; or possibly they may have found a thought-form of 
this kind
made by some one else, and may simply have adopted it and joined 
themselves to
it. The thought-forms as viewed by trained vision were clumsy and 
imperfect,
though no doubt quite satisfactory to their makers. Moses, for 
example, was
seriously incomplete. He sat, stiff and rigid, as though glued to 
his
uncomfortable golden throne, but in reality he was only a face and front 
projecting
from the chair, and had never been properly finished off behind. In 
this respect
be resembled many of the thought-forms found in the Summerland, 
where it is
not infrequent to see mothers fondling children which are defective 
in exactly
the same way. The creators of such forms are always completely happy 
with them and
never perceive their imperfections, for though there is no life in 
such dolls
except the thought which is put into them, that thought will always 
respond to
its generator and do exactly what it is expected to do. Peter was 
another very
inefficient person on this council-- quite insignificant-looking; 
but at least
he carried a large bunch of keys, the jingling of which was his 
principle
contribution to the deliberations. 
While the
majority of this council was of the type just described, the 
thought-forms
of the deity, of S. Paul (the image chosen for occupation by the 
shoemaker)
and of the prophet Elijah were much more definite and original. The 
latter indeed
quite surprised us by his activity, and on examination it was 
found that
he, too, was being occupied (for at least used as a kind of 
mouthpiece)
by another dead man, a Welshman, who at some early period in his 
earth-life
had gone through the experience called ` conversion,' and had later 
on emigrated
to America, where he had lived for some years and eventually died. 
During his
physical life he had always been seeking religious experiences of the 
emotional
type; for instance, he had attended some of the negro revival 
meetings, and
had there witnessed and taken part in the celebrated “Jerusalem 
jump.”
Intermingled with his religion were curious socialistic proclivities, and 
his dream was
of a golden millennium which was half irrational, emotional 
Chiristianity
and half materialistic Socialism. 
He had
grasped rather more than the others the relation between the physical and 
astral
worlds, and the possibilities of the latter, and he understood that 
before he
could hope to influence the physical world he must somehow or other 
get into
touch with it. He was not thinking of reincarnation, for he had never 
heard of such
an idea; but he knew that he had passed from the physical world 
into the
astral, and therefore he thought there must be some way of passing back 
again. His
attention was much occupied with this problem, and when he became 
aware that
the farmer had found a medium through whom he could come to some 
extent into
touch with the physical world, he decided to make use of both in any 
way that he
could. This seemed a possible first step in the direction of gaining 
his ends, and
it occurred to him to enter the thought-form of Elijah in the 
“council of
heaven” as a means of presently introducing himself on such a 
footing as
would at once ensure respect from the others. I do not think he was 
in any way
self-seeking or self-conceited in doing this; it was to him simply a 
means to an
end, providentially put in his way. 
But now
ensued an unexpected result. Masquerading thus as Elijah, he tried to 
bear himself
as he thought the prophet would have done, and to impart an 
Old-Testament
flavour to his impersonation. This reacted upon his ordinary 
astral life;
he began to live all the while in the character, and by degrees to 
wonder
whether he was not really Elijah! He is literally in process of 
transforming
himself, and will assuredly soon be a confirmed monomaniac. At the 
time of our
investigation he still knew that he was a Welshman who occasionally 
impersonated
Elijah; but I feel certain that in the near future he will pass 
beyond that
stage, and will be as sure that he is really Elijah as the farmer is 
that he is
the Christ. 
Meantime he
had not yet introduced himself as the Welshman to the other human 
members of
the council, but flattered himself that as Elijah he was inspiring 
great respect
and in fact directing their decisions. We have, therefore, the 
astonishing
spectacle of a council whose only effective members were three dead 
men, each one
of whom thought that he was manipulating the others for the 
furtherance
of his own objects; and yet none of those objects was selfish, and 
all the men
concerned were religious, well-meaning and honest in intention. Only 
in the astral
world would such an extraordinary combination be possible; yet the 
most
astounding and the most characteristic fact still remains to be told. 
It has been
already mentioned that the All-Father himself was supposed to 
preside over
the meetings of the council. He was of course a thought-form like 
all the rest,
but he occasionally manifested a spasmodic and inappropriate 
activity
which showed the presence of some exterior force, different in quality 
from the
others. Careful investigation showed that just as the form of Elijah 
was ensouled
by the Welshman, so was this form of the deity ensouled by-- a 
frolicsome
nature-spirit! 
I have
already described some of the characteristics of this delightful kingdom 
of Nature. It
may be remembered what a keen pleasure some of such creatures take 
in theatrical
performances among themselves, in any sort of masquerade (most 
especially if
thereby they can gain the triumph of deceiving or frightening a 
member of the
superior human evolution), and also how they enjoy telling some 
enthralling tale
to their fellows. Bearing this in mind, we shall at once see 
that, from
the point of view of a tricksy nature-spirit, here was an absolutely 
unique
opportunity. He could (and did) play a joke on the most colossal scale 
conceivable
upon three human beings, and we may readily imagine what a 
soul-satisfying
story he had to tell afterwards to his admiring fellows. 
Needless to
say, he had not the faintest idea of irreverence ; he would probably 
be no more
capable of such a conception than a fly would; to him the whole thing 
was nothing
but an unequalled opportunity for a really gorgeous hoax, and he did 
his very best
with it. 
Of course he
could neither understand nor join in the deliberations, so for the 
most part he
preserved a cryptic silence which was very effective. He had 
somehow
acquired a small number of biblical phrases appropriate to his part, and 
he emptied
these out upon the council at intervals as a parrot might, apparently 
having no
conception of their meaning. “Thus saith the Lord”; “Amen, so be it”; 
“I am the
Lord thy God; thou shalt have none other Gods but me”; “I will smite 
the earth
with a curse”-- these were some of the gems of his collection, the 
specimens of
his unconscious eloquence. Now and again the joke became too much 
for him, or
perhaps the restraint was irksome, and he abandoned the thought-form 
for a few
moments in order to relieve his overstrained feelings by wild dancing 
and outbursts
of laughter, somewhere out of sight of his council. When this 
happened it
was most interesting to see how the thought-form collapsed from 
alertness to
stolidity, and the unfortunate human members of the council 
immediately
supposed that something had occurred to provoke that divine wrath 
which is
always so prominent a part of this type of religion. 
This, then,
was the reality behind the awe-inspiring “council of heaven” before 
which our
correspondent pleaded so earnestly. It will be understood that only 
the dead men
could really contribute to whatever discussion may have taken 
place; the
other members of the council could not originate anything, though 
they may have
had enough vitality to give a formal assent to a proposition. 
To understand
the part played in the vision by the Theosophical thought-forms we 
must glance
at the history and mental condition of our correspondent. Falling 
away from a
rather materialistic form of Christianity, she became practically an 
atheist. Then
she lost a beloved child; and in such a nature these various 
experiences
naturally produced deep emotions, each of which had its part in the 
moulding of
her temperament. At this period she came into contact with 
Theosophy,
and commenced its study with no less formidable a book than The 
Secret
Doctrine. Undaunted by its difficulties she applied herself to it 
diligently
and strove to grasp its teaching, to make mental pictures of what is 
described in
the Stanzas of Dzyan. Certain of its ideas had a special attraction 
for her. The
thought of initiation with its mysterious and dangerous ordeals was 
one of them;
another was the succession of the races, coupled with the great 
question as
to who shall and who shall not pass the final test and reach in 
safety the
further shore. All this was inevitably to some extent coloured by 
earlier
Christian conceptions about “conversion” and ` salvation,' even though 
at the same
time the splendid horizons of the great oriental religions opened 
before her. 
Thus it came
about that she surrounded herself with a great mass of strong 
thought-forms
of a more or less Theosophical character, and by the very fact of 
doing so
unconsciously set in motion certain occult laws. In the higher worlds, 
like attracts
like, and her thought-forms soon drew to themselves others of 
similar nature.
Some hundreds of miles from where she lived there was an earnest 
Theosophical
Lodge, which among other activities maintained a Secret Doctrine 
class. A vast
mass of thought-forms and speculations had been thrown off by this 
class, and
our correspondent was soon in touch with this astral storehouse. How 
the first
contact was made I did not observe. Perhaps when travelling in the 
astral body
our correspondent may have been attracted by the presentations of 
subject in
which she was so deeply interested; or on the other hand some member 
of the class
may have astrally noticed her thoughts and tried to add to them; or 
it may have
been simply that sympathetic vibrations attracted one another, as 
they
invariably do, without human interference. However that may have been, the 
fact remains
that she was surrounded by an enormous body of thought-forms of a 
particular
type, she herself being at the very same time precisely in the 
condition to
be most deeply affected by them. 
At this
period she began to practise breathing exercises, and by that means laid 
herself open
to astral influences. Her keen sympathy with suffering caused her 
to seek the
dead murderer, or perhaps brought him to her, and the automatic 
writing and
the obsession followed in the natural course of events. The murderer 
put forth all
his power to maintain the advantage which he had gained, and she 
struggled
desperately to protect and free herself, making herself for the time 
quite a
conspicuous object in the astral world by the vehemence of her efforts 
and the
amount of energy which she put forth. 
As the farmer
wandered about, the affray attracted his attention, and in his 
character as
the Christ he felt it his duty to interfere and expel the murderer. 
He had never
before encountered so brilliant an astral body, nor had he seen 
such
impressive surrounding as those of the person whom he had rescued-- a mass 
of forms at
once so unusual in type (connected as it was with cosmic processes 
considered
from the oriental point of view) and at the same time so far larger 
in quantity
than any one person normally carries with him. Here were the forms 
of oriental
Gods, of the founders of religions, of Masters, Adepts, Angels, and 
all sorts of
magnificent but unfamiliar conceptions. If we remember that the 
farmer could
not know that these were only thought-forms, but must inevitably 
have taken
them as actual living beings, we shall see that it is small wonder 
that with his
ignorance on all such matters and his constant expectation of 
celestial
assistance in his appointed work, he should feel that he had been 
specially
guided by providence to help one who could help him in return-- a 
person of
importance in the oriental world commensurate with that which he 
arrogated to
himself for the occident. At once he seized his opportunity; he 
proclaimed
himself as the appointed guide and proceeded to take charge of the 
lady' s
further development. 
A curious
fact noticed here was that, though he posed as guide, he was largely 
influenced by
the thoughts of our correspondent, and in many cases simply gave 
her back
those thoughts in other language. He knew nothing of the serpent fire, 
but he
thought of it as some form of divine afflatus; he saw that some process 
of awakening
was being performed by its aid: and he did his best to help and 
encourage
this. Their joint efforts succeeded in arousing what may be called the 
upper layers
of that mysterious force, though fortunately for the lady, from 
ignorance as
to what is really needed for full achievement, they were not able 
to stir it to
its depths, otherwise her body would surely have been destroyed. 
Further, they
evidently did not know through what centres it must be sent in 
order to bring
continuous consciousness, and so they missed their aim. But the 
description
given of the sufferings endured is accurate as far as it goes, and 
some of the
expressions used are strikingly suggestive. How dangerous their 
experiments
were may be seen from the lady' s account of these sufferings, and 
from her
family' s testimony as to the condition in which she had been. The 
whole story
gives a most impressive warning against the risk of attempting 
premature
development along such lines. 
It is useless
to criticise in detail what may be called the Theosophical part of 
the vision;
wonderful, uplifting, awe-inspiring as it no doubt was to the seer, 
it after all
represents not the actual occurrences of evolution, but the 
combination
and synthesis of a number of thought-images. Parts of the symbology 
are
interesting and illuminative, while others obviously require modification. 
Certain
features, such as the chanting of the angels, are clearly due to the 
influence of
the Christian stream of thought in the mind of the guide. He 
watched the
unfolding of the vision along with our correspondent, but being 
ignorant of
oriental teaching he understood but little of it. For example, he 
seems to have
confused the successive races with the various tribes of Israel, 
and tried to
fit in what he saw with the story of the sealing of the 144,000. 
It is in the
monomania of the guide that we must seek for the cause of the 
weighty
feeling of responsibility which overshadowed the whole vision, the 
conviction
that upon our correspondent' s success depended the salvation of the 
world. This
sort of naïve self-conceit or megalomania is one of the commonest 
characteristics
of communications from the astral plane. It seems to be one of 
the most
ordinary illusions of a dead man that, if he can only get some lady to 
act as a
medium for him, he can revolutionise the entire thought of the planet 
by a simple
statement of a few self-evident facts. But in this case there was 
rather more
than the usual excuse for the attitude adopted. The poor farmer was 
deeply
impressed with the thought that unless the world accepted him this time 
it would lose
its final chance of salvation, and he propounded this theory one 
day to the
deity in council at a moment when the nature-spirit happened to be in 
charge. It is
little likely that the nature-spirit had any clear conception of 
the purport
of the question, but at least he understood that his assent was 
being asked
to some proposition or other, so he gave it in his most pompous 
manner; and
this naturally enough confirmed the farmer in his delusion, and made 
it the one
dominating thought of his life. Apart from his influence no such 
impression
would ever have come into the mind of the lady, whose view of her own 
position and
powers was much saner and more modest. 
The
personification of the world and the devil in human forms is also due to the 
thought of
the guide, for the lady herself knew much better than to believe in 
the exploded
superstition of a personal Satan. This seems to have come at a 
period of the
experience when she was much exhausted, and therefore more fully 
under the
domination of the guide' s mind, and less able to exercise her own 
natural power
of discrimination. The nervous tension attendant upon the 
conditions
through which she passed must have been indescribable; indeed, it 
brought her
perilously near to the possibility of physical hallucination. She 
writes of
certain acts of reverence made to her on the physical earth by 
animals, but
investigation does not confirm this, showing the actions of the 
animals to
have been quite normal and dictated by their ordinary instinct, 
though the
lady in her overstrained condition gave them a different 
interpretation.
The special
interest of the case to those who examined it was the manner in 
which a
number of independent and quite ordinary astral factors combined to 
produce a
dramatic and imposing whole. The ruling force was the will of the 
guide, and
the strength of his extraordinary delusion; yet this would have been 
ineffective,
or at least would have worked quite differently, but for the action 
of our
correspondent in rashly laying herself open to astral influence. The 
Secret
Doctrine class and its thought-forms, the other dead men on the council, 
the sportive
nature-spirit-- all these played their part, and if any one of them 
had been
absent the picture would have been less complete, or the plot must have 
worked itself
out on other lines. 
It seems to
me that the story has its value as showing the astonishing fertility 
and abundance
of the resources of the astral world, and the imperative necessity 
of that full
knowledge which is only to be gained by thorough occult training. 
All through
it we see really good and well-intentioned people deceiving 
themselves
quite pitiably for want of this knowledge-- putting themselves often 
into such
positions that one cannot wonder that they were deluded. One must 
presume that
it was needful for them to learn in the hard school of experience, 
and it is
also well to remember that no trial of this nature ever comes to any 
one without
an adequate opportunity of preparation. No one who had studied the 
Bible as
closely as the guide had done could have failed to remark the warnings 
therein
contained as to possible deception by false Christs and lying prophets, 
and even in
the book of Svami Vivekananda there is to be found an earnest 
adjuration
against the premature or promiscuous use of his instructions. 
Unfortunately
people never will take these cautions to themselves, but 
invariably
apply them to their neighbours or opponents. 
Yet it should
be noticed that for our correspondent the outcome was good. The 
forms seen
were largely illusory, but the high emotions awakened, the awe and 
the rapture--
all these produced permanent results which cannot but have in them 
much of good.
The boundless enthusiasm for spiritual things, the unselfish 
desire to
help even at the cost of any sacrifice-- these are in themselves 
mighty
forces, and when generated they evoke a response from worlds far higher 
than any
which are actually reached by the consciousness in the vision itself. 
The feeling
is genuine, however imperfectly conceived may be that which 
occasions it;
and so while we congratulate our correspondent on having come 
safely
through perils more tremendous than she can readily realise, we may be 
permitted to
hope that the peace and uplifting which she gained through them may 
prove a
permanent heritage. The deep sense of union with the divine which 
brought with
it such bliss was unquestionably a true touch of the lower fringe 
of the
intuitional world, and to have attained this is no doubt worth all the 
suffering
through which the patient passed. But the student knows that all that 
(and much
more) could have been obtained without the pain and without the awful 
risk, by the
investment of the same amount of energy in the more ordinary 
methods which
have approved themselves to the wisdom of the ages. To force one' 
s way into
unknown realms without the guidance of one who really knows, is to 
court
disaster; and it is a danger to which none need expose himself, for the 
old paths are
always open, and the old saying still remains true: “When the 
pupil is
ready the Master appears.” 
IN WRITING A
BOOK 
Many of us
are constantly being influenced by unseen entities in a great many 
ways of which
we have not the slightest idea. We have spoken of pride of race 
and caste.
This often exists in an even more intense form as pride of family, 
and in that
case not infrequently it is largely due to the influence of our 
ancestors. I
have known several cases in which a man contrived to keep himself 
for a long
time in the astral world in order that he might hover over his 
descendants
and try to induce them to keep up the pride of their race. The late 
Queen
Elizabeth, for example, had so intense a love for her country that it is 
only quite
recently that she has lapsed into the heaven-world, having spent the 
whole
intervening time in endeavouring, and until recently almost entirely 
without
success, to impress her successors with her ideas of what ought to be 
done for
England. Hers is perhaps an extreme case, but in several other royal 
families the
continuity of tradition which has been maintained has been in the 
same way
largely due to constant pressure, intentionally exercised, by older 
members of
the family, from the astral world. 
It is by no
means uncommon for fathers and mothers who have set their hearts 
upon some
particular alliance for their sons or daughters to endeavour even 
after death
to bring about the fulfilment of their wishes. In rarer cases they 
have been
able to show themselves as apparitions in order to emphasise their 
commands.
More often they exercise an insidious because unsuspected influence, 
by constantly
keeping their thought upon the matter before the mind of the 
person whom
they wish to influence-- a steady pressure which the ordinary man is 
likely to
take for his own sub-conscious desire. 
Cases in
which the dead have constituted themselves guardian angels to the 
living are
exceedingly numerous, and in this way mothers often protect their 
sons, and
deceased husbands their widows, for many years. Sometimes such 
influence is
not of a protective character, but is exercised in order that the 
dead man may
find a means of expressing some ideas which he is anxious to put 
before the
world. The person upon whom the impression is made is sometimes 
conscious of
it, and sometimes entirely unconscious. A certain distinguished 
novelist has
told me that the wonderful plots of his stories invariably come to 
him as though
by a kind of inspiration, that he writes them without knowing 
beforehand
how they will work out-- that in fact, as he puts it, they are 
actually
written through him. Far more often than we think, authors and musical 
composers are
influenced in this way, so that many books credited to the living 
are really
the work of the dead. 
In some cases
the dead man desires to announce his authorship, so that books 
confessedly
written by the dead are becoming quite a feature of modern 
literature;
or perhaps a better way to express it would be that many of us are 
gradually
coming to recognise that there is no such thing as death in the old, 
bad sense of
the word, and that though a man who has laid aside his physical 
body may find
a certain difficulty in writing a book with his own hand, he is 
quite as
capable of dictating one as any living author. Sometimes such books are 
moral or
metaphysical treatises, but sometimes also they are novels, and in this 
latter shape
they undoubtedly do good, for they reach many who are quite 
unlikely to
encounter a more serious essay on occult matters, and would be still 
less likely
to take the trouble to read it if they did encounter it. 
A good
specimen of this class (and it is a class which is becoming more numerous 
year by year)
is The Strange Story of Ahrinziman-- a book which was brought to 
my notice
some years ago. Let me take it as an example and explain what it is 
and how it
came to be written. I know that the first impulse of those who are 
dozing in the
comfortable haze which surrounds the average intelligence and 
cushions it
against the real facts of life, will naturally, be to proclaim that 
the whole
thing must be nonsense, on the crude theory that when a man is dead he 
is dead, and
it is therefore quite impossible that he should dictate anything; 
and even
those who know better than that may be tempted to suspect that to 
assign the
authorship to a man out of the body is nothing but a novel form of 
advertisement--
a trick of the trade, as it were. So perhaps I had better begin 
by saying
that I have trustworthy assurance that this book is at least a genuine 
dictation from
the astral world, though naturally that by no means guarantees 
that it is in
all other respects what it claims to be. 
People who
are unacquainted with the conditions of life among those whom we are 
in the habit
of miscalling “the dead,” seem to find it impossible to realise how 
natural in
all respects that life is, or to understand that human nature may and 
does exhibit
all its varied aspects just as quaintly on the other side of the 
grave as on
this. The dead man has not necessarily been canonised, nor has he 
suddenly
become grave and reverend; he is exactly the same man as before, just 
as
susceptible to the influence of vanity or jealousy, just as capable of making 
mistakes. 
An astral
author may employ the same literary machinery as a physical author, 
and may cast
his tale into any form that pleases him. When we find Mr. Rider 
Haggard
writing in the first person under the name of Allan Quartermain of 
Ludwig Horace
Holly, we do not necessarily assume that he is relating personal 
experiences of
his own, nor even that Quartermain or Holly had a historical 
existence. In
exactly the same way we must realise that when a dead man dictates 
in the first
person The Story of Ahrinziman, he may be trying to give us a more 
or less
modified autobiography, or he may simply be casting an allegory or a 
problem-novel
into an attractive and striking form; and this suggestion must no 
more be
considered a reflection upon the bona fides of the dead author than was 
the previous
sentence a reflection upon that of Mr. Haggard. 
Be this as it
may, Ahrinziman tells us a good story-- a story which is 
thoroughly
oriental in its setting. He describes himself as the illegitimate son 
of a Persian
king. His mother, a Greek vestal virgin captured in some Persian 
foray, is
murdered by the rightful queen in a fit of jealousy, and to avoid 
further
unpleasant expression of this same consuming jealousy, the child is 
brought up by
a peasant among the mountains in a distant corner of the empire. 
The boy is by
nature clairvoyant to a certain extent, able to see the 
nature-spirits
which surround him, and also his dead mother. Presently he comes 
into contact
with some priests, learns much from them, and is eventually taken 
into the
temple and becomes a medium for them. Discontent seizes him, and he 
absconds and
joins a band of robbers in the mountains, but after a few years 
abandons them
in turn. He then meets with a practitioner of the darker magic, 
and attaches
himself to him as a pupil; but the master dies in the performance 
of one of his
enchantments, and the student is saved from sharing his fate only 
by the
interference of his dead mother. 
During
further wanderings he meets the prince, who is in reality his 
step-brother
(the son of the queen who murdered his mother), and is enabled by 
his
clairvoyant power to cure him of an obsession. This prince in due course 
comes to the
throne and raises our hero to a position of honour, knowing 
nothing,
however, of the real relationship between them. By this time Ahrinziman 
is married,
unfortunately to an entirely unworthy woman who never really 
appreciates
him, and is false to him without hesitation when she finds that she 
has attracted
the favourable regards of the king. Through his partial 
clairvoyance
Ahrinziman becomes aware of this, and in his jealous rage causes 
the death of
the king by astral means. He himself succeeds to the throne (having 
declared his
parentage), but after a short reign is slain by another claimant. 
The rest of
the book is devoted to a description of his experiences in the 
astral world.
He is represented as, at first, filled with jealousy and hatred, 
and
consequently mating with all sorts of horrible entities in order through 
them to
achieve revenge; but gradually the good within him asserts itself, and 
he begins to
try to aid instead of to injure, and so through a long and toilsome 
upward
progress he at last attains to perfect bliss. 
How far is it
possible that all this can be true? May we take it wholly or 
partly as the
autobiography which it professes to be, or must we regard it as a 
romance?
Certainly of much of it we may say: “Se non è vero, è ben trovato.” As 
to the
physical part of the story, we have but meagre records of what took place 
in Persia in
the fifth century before the Christian era, but as far as it goes, 
our
fragmentary history of that period seems to fit in fairly accurately with 
what
Ahrinziman writes. The interest of the student of the hidden side of nature 
will
naturally be centred chiefly on the astral experiences, for the sake of 
which mainly
the book is put forth, and he will desire to know how far these can 
be confirmed
from the point of view of such occult knowledge as has reached our 
western
world. 
Those who
have studied most deeply will be the first to admit that in this 
splendid
science of the soul we are as yet but picking up pebbles on the shore 
of the great
ocean of knowledge, that our fullest information is as yet far from 
exhaustive,
and that the marvellous variety and adaptability of astral 
conditions
are so great that it would be rash to say that anything is 
impossible.
Still, certain broad rules are well established, and some of these 
seem to be
violated by Ahrinziman' s story, if we are to take it literally, 
though all
falls readily into place if we allow for certain limitations upon his 
part. If the
whole thing is simply a parable, well and good; but it is 
interesting
to see how Ahrinziman may be perfectly honest in his narration, even 
though some
points in it are contrary to accepted facts. 
The first
great question is whether a stay of anything like such a period as two 
thousand
three hundred years in the astral world is at all possible, since we 
know that
twenty or thirty years is a fair average for ordinary persons. It is 
true that a
man of unusual will-power may greatly prolong his astral life by 
intensifying
his passions and desires, and throwing all his strength into the 
lower rather
than the higher side of himself; and this is exactly what 
Ahrinziman
represents himself to have done. I have read of a case in Germany 
where an
erring priest was earth-bound for four hundred years, and I have myself 
known one
where ambition and a determined will detained a person in astral life 
for three
hundred; but such instances are infrequent, and none of them even 
approach the
vista of centuries claimed by Ahrinziman. It is clear, too, that he 
does not
consider himself by any means as a special case, for he speaks of many 
friends and
contemporaries as still with him, some in advance of him in 
progress, and
some behind him. If, therefore, we are to accept his story as 
genuine, it
becomes more probable if we regard it rather as an attempt to 
describe
conditions through which he passed during the first century after his 
death than as
indicating anything at present existing. 
Though eager
for occult knowledge, he did not show much attraction towards 
spirituality,
except in childhood; his actions were chiefly the result of 
ambition,
passion and revenge, and he died by violence in the prime of life. 
Considering
all these factors we should expect a protracted and stormy astral 
existence,
the earlier part of which would probably be extremely unpleasant; we 
should expect
also that gradually the passions would wear themselves out, that 
the better
side of his nature would assert itself, and that opportunities would 
be offered
for progress. 
All this is
what Ahrinziman describes, but he surrounds it with a wealth of 
allegory that
may easily be misunderstood, and he spreads over two thousand 
three hundred
years what may well have occupied forty or fifty. We must not 
forget that
in the astral world none of our ordinary methods of time-measurement 
are
available, and that if, even in physical life, a few hours of suffering or 
anxiety seem
to us almost interminable, this characteristic is exaggerated a 
hundredfold
in an existence of which feelings and passions are the very essence. 
While it is
scarcely conceivable that Ahrinziman can really have spent two 
thousand
years in the astral world, it is easy to believe that his sojourn there 
seemed to him
an eternity. 
Still the
fact remains that, if he is to be credited as to the physical part of 
his life,
about that length of time has passed since his assassination; what 
then has he
been doing during all these years? I have no personal acquaintance 
with him, and
no right to make impertinent enquiries, but a case somewhat 
parallel to
his which I recently investigated may suggest to us a possible 
explanation. 
I was
consulted by a lady who stated that her “spirit guide” was a priest of 
ancient
Egypt; and as the advice which he gave was good, and his teaching 
accurate, it
seemed worth while to inquire into his reasons for making so 
extraordinary
a claim, as it appeared scarcely likely that so dignified and 
upright a man
would stoop to the common and petty device of impersonation. On 
meeting him I
saw at once that he had unquestionably been initiated up to a 
certain level
into the Mysteries according to the Egyptian Rite, and naturally I 
wondered how
it could be that he was still active in the astral world. Upon 
examination I
found that since his life as an Egyptian priest he had had another 
incarnation,
which he had spent wearily and unsatisfactorily within the walls of 
a monastery,
devoting it apparently to the working out of some accumulations of 
karma; but
after his death certain circumstances (it seemed a mere accident) 
brought him
into touch with the thought-current of his old Egyptian 
surroundings.
Instantly the
memory of that previous life flashed into his consciousness (I 
think it had
always been hovering upon the threshold, and he had always been 
hungering,
though he did not know for what), and it was so much more vivid and 
real than the
dull monastic round, that the latter became to him a mere evil 
dream. He
soon forgot it altogether, or regarded it as nothing more than a 
wearisome
part of his astral punishment, and so he was really quite honest in 
his statement
that he was that Egyptian priest-- the powerful personality with 
which he had
identified himself up to the close of his last life in the 
heaven-world,
just before his descent into the comparatively recent incarnation 
in which he
became a monk. I do not assert that Ahrinziman' s case is similar, 
but it is at
least possible that it may be. 
Naturally
Ahrinziman writes as a man of his day, and uses the terminology to 
which he is
accustomed, much of which sounds odd in our ears to-day, especially 
as he
constantly confounds his symbols with material facts. Of course it is not 
actually
true, as he supposes, that men are divided into three great groups, 
having at
their heads angels bearing respectively white, red, and golden stars, 
any more than
it is actually true that Phoebus drives his chariot daily across 
the sky from
east to west, or that the Sun God is newly born at Christmas when 
the days
begin to grow longer. But it is true that some ancient religions 
adopted a
system of symbology closely allied to that which this book puts forth, 
and that a
man passing into astral life with his mind filled with such 
preconceived
ideas might go on for a long time interpreting everything in 
accordance
with them, and ignoring facts which they did not cover. 
It is true
also that mighty spirits exist whose method of evolution is so 
entirely
different from our own, that for us it would be evil; but with them we 
do not
normally come into contact, nor is it of them that Ahrinziman speaks, for 
he himself
admits that his angels of light and darkness are after all human 
beings who
have lived their life on earth. He describes vividly the stupendous 
thought-edifices
reared by man' s passions, though he often fails to distinguish 
the temporary
thought-images from the more permanent realities of the world. He 
gives us a
horrible description of a kind of astral battle in which the plain is 
strewn with
the disjecta membra of the combatants-- a gruesome detail which 
could not
really occur, as will at once be manifest to anyone who comprehends 
the fluidic
nature of the astral body. 
Indeed, if
his remarks are really to be taken as representing the ancient 
Persian
knowledge with regard to things astral, we are compelled to recognise 
that that
presentation was less definitely scientific, as well as less 
comprehensive,
than that which is put before students of the occult at the 
present day.
For example, Ahrinziman does not seem to have any clear grasp of 
the great
central fact of reincarnation, or perhaps regards it as an occasional 
possibility,
instead of recognising it as the appointed means of evolution for 
humanity. 
His use of
terms is somewhat perplexing until one becomes accustomed to it, for 
it is fairly
evident that he gives the name of “spiritual body” to what we now 
call the
astral vehicle, and that his “astral body” is nothing more than the 
etheric
double-- as may be seen when he describes the latter as slightly larger 
than the
physical, and as capable of being influenced by powerful acids; remarks 
which are
true of the etheric double, but would be inaccurate if they referred 
to what is
now termed the astral body. He has also a confusing habit of speaking 
of unpleasant
astral conditions as below the earth-plane, and pleasant ones as 
above it,
though he describes them both as less material than our earth. He has 
probably been
misled by the fact that the denser astral matter does 
interpenetrate
our physical globe, and that those who are confined to the least 
desirable
subdivision may often find themselves actually within the crust of the 
earth. In
addition to this there is, no doubt, a world lower than the physical-- 
one with
which normal humanity has happily no connection; but it is more, and 
not less,
material than the world which we think we know. 
Quite
frequently he describes something in language which at once convinces the 
student that
he has unquestionably seen that of which he writes; and then he 
proceeds to
disappoint us by accounting for it in an involved and unscientific 
manner, or by
treating poetic symbols as though they were material facts. Once 
or twice he
shows his conceptions to be tainted by the twin-soul theory-- a line 
of thought to
be sedulously avoided by all who wish to make any real advance in 
occult study.
He is in
error when he speaks of mediumship as a necessity for spiritual 
evolution--
though perhaps this is once more merely a question of terminology, 
as he may be
using the word in the sense of psychic sensitiveness. He is, 
however,
clearly wrong when he says that it is impossible for a man, still 
possessing a
physical body fully to comprehend or to control astral forces and 
beings, or to
have perfect spiritual sight. What he no doubt means, or at least 
ought to
mean, is that a man who is still confined to his physical body cannot 
possess these
higher powers, for he has not realised that a man may learn during 
life how to
leave his physical body as completely as at death, and may yet 
return to it
when he wishes. Also he shows ignorance of the Oriental teaching 
when he
stigmatises it as selfish, and opines that by it “the eager hunger of 
the starving
many for light is left unsatisfied”. On the whole, however, his 
teaching is
commendably free from sectarianism. 
Though the
student of occultism thus finds himself compelled to differ from 
Ahrinziman on
certain points, I hasten to add that there are many upon which we 
must all most
thoroughly agree with him. To take at random a few of the many 
gems which
may be found, his criticisms on war and conquest, and on the history 
of religions,
are admirable. We are all with him when he writes: 
I hold that
truth and error, good and evil, are to be found everywhere and in 
all religions
and amongst all peoples; and no matter how pure the original 
doctrines of
any form of faith may be, it is impossible to prevent the ambitions 
and the
lusts, the greed and the cruelty of the undeveloped human soul from 
perverting
the purity of the teachings and turning them to the basest purposes 
and
overlaying them with the grossest errors . . . The absurd ordinances, the 
horrible
sacrifices, the revolting practices, the grotesque beliefs, the 
fantastic
theories, that had crept into the teaching of this religion, were all 
excrescences
fastened one by one upon the simple purity of the teaching of its 
founder. 
His
terminology is perhaps not the best possible, yet there is much truth in his 
thought that
all evil is a perversion of some good quality, into which it will 
one day be
transmuted. Many of his ideas as to spiritual development are also 
greatly to be
commended. The dangers of mediumship and hypnotism could hardly be 
better
expressed than in this solemn warning: 
Let no one
ever resign the sovereignty of himself, his mind or body, into the 
hands of
another, be he priest or layman. For a man' s freedom is his divine 
prerogative,
and he who yields it to another is more abject than the lowest 
slave. 
Again it is
explained in one of the notes: 
A perfect
trance should be the conscious flight of the soul into a superior 
condition,
from which it ought to return strengthened and refreshed and capable 
of wider
thoughts and nobler and freer actions, and a stronger and more perfect 
possession of
its own individuality. To apply the word ` trance' to those 
exhibitions
of semi-conscious mental aberration of persons whose sensitiveness 
lays them
open to the mesmeric control of either incarnate or excarnate minds, 
is to propagate
an error which ought long ago to have been exploded. With the 
spread of
mediumistic development, all and every variety and degree of 
sub-conscious
conditions have come to be classed as ` trances,' yet they bear no 
more
resemblance to the true trance of the developed mystic of the older occult 
faiths than
does the sleep which is produced by the use of powerful narcotic 
drugs
resemble that of healthy, tired nature. The hypnotically-induced trance is 
as pernicious
to the soul as would be the habitual use of narcotics to the body. 
Whether the
magnetiser be in the flesh or out of it, the results are the same; 
an habitual
use of magnetism to induce sleep or ` trance' is an evil. 
He describes
accurately how the lower dead crowd to séances, and how the 
so-called
guides are by no means always strong enough to keep off evil 
influences.
Clearly also does he warn us how readily the ideas of the earthly 
enquirers
mingle with the revelations of the magnetised medium, so that by such 
a method of
investigation a man usually receives such information or counsel as 
he desires or
expects. He understands that asceticism as such is useless and 
often
harmful, and that the physical body must be in perfect health and power if 
visions are
to be reliable. He realises, too, something of the difficulties of 
the way: 
Few, very
few, who possess the needful clearness of sight ever learn how to use 
it
successfully; still fewer have the indomitable will and the unquenchable 
thirst for
knowledge which will carry them through all the dangers and trials 
and
disappointments, and the infinite toil and labour involved in these studies. 
He has all
history on his side when he tells us that those who develop the 
highest
degrees of power will do well entirely to withdraw themselves from 
active life
in the physical world, and his strange congeries of characters is 
gradually
brought to understand that only through unselfishness is real progress 
possible. 
Again and
again little touches of knowledge leap to the eyes of the student, 
showing that
things have been rightly seen, even though the expression may be 
confused for
want of more definite classification of the facts. Ahrinziman 
understands
the making of talismans and potions; he sees how a single action or 
thought of
revenge opens the door to evil influences which may cling to its 
author for
years to come; he describes how the presence of the dead causes the 
living to
think of them, even though not sufficiently developed to perceive 
them. 
In writing of
astral life, he gives us a fine description of the wicked queen 
surrounded
after death by evil thoughts and memories, which to her were as 
actual
events; and a grimly realistic touch is the account of the slave who 
spends his
time in crawling ever backwards and forwards through the secret 
passage in
the making of which he was murdered. He tells us of the dead who have 
a confused
impression that they are still in their earthly bodies, and of those 
others who,
having realised their separation, try to use the earthly bodies of 
living men as
mediums for the gratification of their passion. He comprehends, 
too, how men
who stand side by side, as far as space is concerned, may yet be 
absolutely unconscious
of one another; he knows the glorious truth that no evil 
can be
eternal, that however far from the Path the erring soul may wander, at 
long, long
last it also will find its homeward way. 
He ends with
a hope which we all may echo-- that, as the barriers of ignorance 
which so long
have divided nation from nation are gradually wearing thinner 
before the
radiating force of knowledge, and the light of brotherhood is 
beginning
faintly to shine through, so the same wider knowledge and clearer 
insight may,
by degrees, set at naught the imaginary barrier which we have 
misnamed
death, showing us that there is in truth no separation after all, since 
whether at
the moment we happen to have physical bodies, or not, we are all 
members of
the same great fraternity, all moving towards the same goal, all 
enveloped in
the sunlight of the same Eternal Love. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XIII 
OUR ATTITUDE
TOWARDS THESE 
INFLUENCES 
PROTECTIVE
SHELLS 
WE have
considered specimens of the various kinds of influences which are coming 
in upon us
from all sides, and we find that among such influences are many which 
are
disturbing and undesirable; so a question naturally arises as to how we can 
best avoid or
neutralise these. It is an easy matter to form round oneself when 
necessary a
sort of temporary suit of armour of higher matter-- what is commonly 
called by
students a protective shell. But is this the best way to meet the 
difficulty?
An authority on the subject once remarked that, as far as 
self-protection
is concerned, the best thing to do with a shell is not to form 
it in the
first place, and if one has formed it, to break it up as speedily as 
possible!
There is certainly a good deal of truth in these words, for in the 
majority of
cases (at least among all but the most elementary students) all that 
can be
achieved by the formation of a shell round oneself can also be done more 
effectively
and with less danger in other ways, as we shall see later. Exact 
knowledge as
to the formation of shells of various kinds is sometimes useful; 
but, like
most other knowledge, it may be abused, so before directing one' s 
energies
along these lines it is desirable to know exactly what one wishes to do 
and how it is
to be achieved. 
The first
great principle to bear in mind is that a shell should be used far 
more
frequently for the protection of others than for oneself. The Invisible 
Helpers, for
example, frequently find it desirable to make such a defence for 
some of those
whom they are trying to save from evil influences of various 
sorts. But
the average enquirer has more often in mind the idea of protecting 
himself
against various outer influences, and he usually asks how he may form a 
shell for
that purpose. There are occasions in which such action is allowable, 
and we may
perhaps group these under three heads corresponding to the etheric, 
the astral
and the mental vehicles. 
In all cases
alike these shells are constructed by the power of the will, but 
before
exercising that power it is well to know of what kind of matter the shell 
is to be built
and what it is desired to keep out. The directions usually given 
are that the
student should think of his aura as surrounding him in ovoid form, 
should
concentrate strongly upon the outer surface of that aura, and should then 
exert his
will to harden it so that it may become impervious to any influences 
from without.
These directions are good, and a fairly strong shell can be made 
in that way;
but the effort will be at the same time much less laborious and 
much more
effective if the man understands exactly what he is doing and why, and 
so can send
forth the energy of his will in the right direction only, instead of 
flooding the
whole neighbourhood with a stream of ill-directed force. Let us 
then consider
the three varieties somewhat in detail, and see for what purpose 
each is
appropriate. 
THE ETHERIC
SHELL 
We will take
first that which is intended to protect the physical body 
(including
the etheric double) from various dangers to which it may be liable. 
The more
common uses of such a shell are three-- to protect a sensitive man when 
in a crowd;
to shield the physical body at night when the man leaves it in 
sleep; and to
prevent the danger of physical infection on some occasion when the 
student has
in the course of his duty to subject himself to it. In all these 
cases it is
obvious that the shell must be of etheric matter and of etheric 
matter only,
if it is to be effective for its purpose, although it may sometimes 
be desirable
to create other shells in other worlds simultaneously to afford 
protection
from other classes of dangers. 
The object of
a shell in a crowd is usually twofold. In a mixed multitude of 
ordinary
people there will almost certainly be a great deal of physical 
magnetism of
a kind distasteful to the student and even prejudicial to him, and 
part of his
object in shelling himself is to defend himself against that. It is 
also probable
that in any large crowd there may be a certain number of those 
unfortunate
persons who, being themselves in some way physically weak, are 
constantly
drawing large amounts of vitality from others. Such absorption often 
takes place
entirely without the knowledge of the person temporarily benefited 
by it, so
that he may be regarded as a kind of unconscious etheric kleptomaniac. 
One who has
thus the misfortune to be an unconscious vampire may be compared to 
a gigantic
sponge, always ready to absorb any amount of specialised vitality 
which it can
obtain. If he confines himself to seizing upon the bluish-white 
radiations,
which every normal person throws out, he will do no harm, for the 
matter of
which these are composed has already been received and dealt with by 
the person
from whose aura it is taken. But usually this is not all that he 
takes, for on
the approach of the vampire this outpouring is greatly stimulated 
by his
drawing force, so that not only the already-utilised bluish-white fluid 
is lost, but
by intense suction the whole circulation of the vitality through 
the body of
the victim is so hastened that the rose-coloured matter is drawn out 
with the
refuse through all the pores of the body, and the unfortunate original 
owner has not
time to assimilate it; so that a capable vampire can drain a 
person of the
whole of his strength in a visit of a few minutes. 
Such an
unconscious vampire is assuredly always an object of pity; yet it would 
be a great
mistake if, because of that pity, any victim voluntarily allowed 
himself to be
depleted, with the idea that he was thereby serving and helping 
one in sore
need. The vampire invariably wastes the substance which he thus 
nefariously
acquires. It rushes through him and is dissipated again without 
proper
assimilation, so that his ever-present thirst is never satiated, and to 
endeavour by
abundant self-sacrifice to fill him up is exactly, to use an 
expressive
Indian proverb, like pouring water into a bag with a hole in it. 
The only
thing that can really be done to help a confirmed unconscious vampire 
is to supply
the vitality for which he craves in strictly limited quantities, 
while
endeavouring, by mesmeric action, to restore the elasticity of the etheric 
double, so
that the perpetual suction and corresponding leakage shall no longer 
take place.
Such a leakage invariably flows through every pore of the body on 
account of
this lack of etheric elasticity-- not through a sort of tear or wound 
in the
etheric body, as some students have supposed; indeed, the idea of 
anything in
the nature of a permanent tear or wound is incompatible with the 
conditions of
etheric matter and the constitution of the etheric double. 
A strong
shell is one way of guarding oneself against such vampirism, and there 
are many
people for whom at present it may be the only way open. 
In the case
of normal and healthy people there is usually no trouble with the 
physical body
which is left behind when the man himself moves away in sleep or 
in trance,
for in the improbable event of any sort of attack being made upon it 
the body
would instantly recall the wandering soul, so that the whole man would 
be at hand to
defend himself if necessary. The physical body has a consciousness 
of its own,
quite apart from that of the man who inhabits it-- a vague 
consciousness
truly, but still capable of knowing when its vehicle is in danger, 
and of
instinctively taking whatever steps are in its power to protect it. I 
have myself
seen that consciousness manifest itself when the owner of the body 
had been
driven out of it by a dentist' s administration of laughing gas-- 
manifest
itself in a vague outcry and an inefficient attempt at protesting 
action when
the tooth was extracted, though the man himself afterwards reported 
that he had
been absolutely unconscious of the operation. 
As the
physical body always remains intimately attached by sympathetic vibration 
to the
astral, even when the latter is far away from it, any disturbance which 
threatens the
physical is almost sure to be communicated instantly to the ego, 
who promptly
returns to investigate. 
There are,
however, abnormal and unfortunate people who are subject to the 
attacks of
certain entities who desire to seize upon and obsess their bodies, 
and such
people sometimes find it necessary to take strong measures to retain 
possession of
their personal property. Or again, perhaps circumstances may 
compel the
student to sleep in exceedingly undesirable surroundings-- as, for 
example, in a
railway carriage in close physical contact with people of the 
vampirising
type or of coarse and forbidding emanations. In either of these 
cases a
strong etheric shell might be the best way of meeting the difficulty, 
though the
student has the alternative of making a strong thought-form animated 
with the purpose
of guarding the body. Such a thought-form may be made even more 
effective and
vivid if a nature-spirit of appropriate type can be induced to 
enter into it
and take a delight in carrying out its object. 
The idea of
protection from infection is sufficiently obvious to need no special 
comment. Such
infection can enter only by means of physical germs of some sort, 
and against
these a dense wall of etheric matter is a sure protection. It must 
never be
forgotten, however, that a shell which keeps out matter of a certain 
type must
also keep it in ; so that in guarding ourselves against germs which 
may bring
contagion we are also keeping in close contact with the physical body 
a great mass
of its own emanations, many of which are distinctly poisonous in 
character. 
In the cases
above mentioned the shell to be made is of etheric matter only, and 
the man who
wishes to make it must recollect that his etheric body is by no 
means
coterminous with the astral or mental. Both of the latter adopt the shape 
and size of
that ovoid section of the causal body, which alone of its 
characteristics
can manifest in the lower worlds. The etheric body, however, is 
of the shape
of the physical, and projects slightly from its surface in all 
directions--
perhaps a quarter of an inch or so. If, therefore, the plan of 
densifying
the periphery of the aura is to be adopted, the man, who tries the 
experiment
must recollect where that periphery lies, and direct his will-power 
accordingly. 
He has,
however, the alternative of making an ovoid shell of etheric matter 
drawn from
the surrounding atmosphere. That course is in many ways preferable, 
but demands a
far greater exertion of the will and a much more definite 
knowledge of
the way in which physical matter is moulded by it. Such a shell as 
has been
described, though invisible to ordinary sight, is purely in the 
physical
world, and therefore guards its creator only against definitely 
physical
emanations. It does not in the least affect the entrance of wandering 
thoughts or
of astral vibrations tending to produce passions and emotions of 
various
kinds. 
Some
sensitive people find it impossible to come near those suffering from any 
weakness or
disease without immediately reproducing in their own physical bodies 
the symptoms
of the sufferers. In such cases an etheric shell may be useful, as 
without it
the sensitive man is largely precluded by this abnormal keenness of 
sympathy from
assisting such people. 
Again, for
those whose business makes it necessary for them to live and move in 
the midst of
the horrible din of our modern civilisation such a shell may 
sometimes
prove useful, as giving the tired and harassed nerves at least 
something of
an opportunity for recovery, by protecting them for a while from 
the otherwise
incessant hammering of all the multiplex vibrations which 
constitute
modern life. 
SHIELDS 
In some cases
what is called for is not a shell surrounding the whole body, but 
simply a
small local shield to guard oneself against some special temporary 
contact. All
sensitive people are aware that the western custom of shaking hands 
often brings
with it positive torment, lasting not infrequently for some hours 
after the
moment of contact. Often to go out of one' s way to avoid shaking 
hands may cause
offence, or may give an impression of pride or of an assumption 
of
superiority. The difficulty may usually be obviated by making an effort of 
the will
which covers the right hand with a strong temporary shield of etheric 
matter, so
that the sensitive may endure the unpleasant contact without allowing 
a single
particle charged with undesirable magnetism to enter his body. 
Of the same
nature as this, though requiring for their successful manipulation a 
far greater
knowledge of practical magic, are the shells which are sometimes 
used as a
protection against fire. I have myself had such a shell of etheric 
matter made
over the palm of my hand at a spiritualistic séance-- made so 
effectively
that, although it was too thin to be observable by the senses, it 
yet enabled
me to hold in my hand for several minutes a glowing coal, from 
which, while
I held it, I was able to light a piece of paper. A still more 
extended
application of the same idea is the much larger shield spread over the 
glowing
ashes, or over the feet of the participants, in the fire-walking 
experiment
which has been so often described. 
A WARNING 
Students
wishing for some reason to guard their physical bodies during sleep may 
be warned not
to repeat the mistake made some time ago by a worthy friend who 
took a great
deal of trouble to surround himself with a specially impenetrable 
shell on a
certain occasion, but made it of astral instead of etheric matter, 
and consequently
took it away with him when he left his physical body! Naturally 
the result
was that his physical body was left entirely unprotected, while he 
himself
floated about all night enclosed in triple armour, absolutely incapable 
of sending
out a single vibration to help anybody, or of being helped or 
beneficially
influenced by any loving thoughts which may have been directed 
towards him
by teachers or friends. 
THE ASTRAL
SHELL 
The objects
aimed at in making an astral shell are naturally of an entirely 
different
type, since they must be connected only with passions and emotions. 
Most of them
also fall under three heads. A shell may be formed round the astral 
body, first,
to keep out emotional vibrations intentionally directed by others 
at the
student, such as those of anger, envy or hatred; secondly, to keep out 
casual
vibrations of low type (such as those evoking sensuality) which are not 
intentionally
directed at the student, but are to be found floating in the 
surrounding
atmosphere, and impinge upon him as it were by accident in the 
course of
ordinary life; thirdly, a student may find it useful to surround his 
astral body
with a special shell during the time which he devotes to meditation, 
if he has
been troubled with the intrusion of thoughts of a low type, which 
bring with
them astral matter and are calculated to provoke undesirable emotion. 
In any or all
of these cases the effort of the will should be directed to the 
surface of
the astral body-- not to that counterpart of denser astral matter 
which is
exactly the shape and size of the physical vehicle, but the egg of 
surrounding
aura, as depicted in the illustrations in Man Visible and Invisible. 
In this, and
in all other cases of forming shell, a clear mental picture must be 
made, and the
whole of the person' s will-power must be concentrated for at 
least some
minutes upon the definite effort to create the necessary shape. It 
must also be
remembered that such densifications are to a certain extent 
unnatural;
that is to say, they are an arrangement of matter which is not that, 
normally
contemplated in the scheme of things, and consequently there is a 
constant
tendency in the vehicle concerned to resume its normal condition, 
which, of
course, means a constant tendency to disintegration in the shell. The 
effort of
will, therefore, must make a definite impression, sufficient to resist 
for at least
some hours this gentle but persistent effort at disintegration, 
otherwise the
shell will gradually become pervious and ragged, and so fail to 
fulfil its
object. A shell which is required for any length of time should be 
frequently
renewed, as without that process it will soon collapse. 
In connection
with the astral body we must bear in mind the same consideration 
to which I
referred in the case of the etheric body-- that if a shell will keep 
out
vibrations it will also keep them in. The student who makes an astral shell 
round himself
should therefore be careful to build it only of the material of 
the lower
sub-divisions of the astral, as it is exclusively this matter which 
responds to
the low and undesirable vibrations connected with sensuality, 
malice,
hatred, envy and all other such ignoble passions. The finer emotions, on 
the contrary,
always express themselves through the matter of the higher 
subdivision.
It is unnecessary that any matter of this kind should be used in a 
shell.
Indeed, the effects if such matter were used would be eminently 
unsatisfactory,
as, first, a man would keep away from himself any currents of 
friendly
feeling which might be sent to him, and secondly, he would render 
himself for
the time incapable of sending out similar currents of affectionate 
feeling to
others. 
It may be
asked how it is possible for the ordinary man or even for the younger 
student to
know what kind of astral matter he is employing in the making of his 
shell. The
answer is that that is after all no more difficult than the 
conception of
making a shell at all. If he is to make the shell of astral matter 
he must first
think of the limits of his aura, and then proceed to densify the 
matter at all
those points. The process may therefore be described as an 
intelligent
use of the imagination; and this imagination may just as well be 
directed with
a little more trouble to the conception that the astral body 
consists of
seven degrees of matter, differing in density. The will should be 
directed to
sorting out these, selecting only the material of (let us say) the 
three lower
sub-planes, and forming the shell exclusively of that; and though 
the student
may be unable to see clairvoyantly the result of his effort, he need 
not doubt
that it will produce its effect, and that no types of matter but those 
of which he
thinks will be directly influenced by the currents which he is 
enabled to
send forth. 
THE MENTAL
SHELL 
The shell
made round the mental body differs from that in the astral world in 
that the
object is no longer to prevent undesirable emotion, but undesirable 
thought. Once
more, there are three principal occasions on which such a shell 
may be
useful: first, in meditation; secondly, when sleep is approaching; 
thirdly,
under special conditions where without its help lower thoughts would be 
likely to
obtrude themselves. 
The office of
the mental shell in meditation is to exclude the mass of lower 
thought which
is perpetually playing about in the atmosphere. No shell can 
prevent
wandering thoughts from arising within the man' s own mind; but most of 
our
thought-wandering is caused by the impact from without of casual floating 
thoughts
which have been left about by other people, and the intrusion of these 
at least can
be prevented by a shell. But here again it is advisable that only 
the lower
mental matter should be employed in the making of such a shell, as 
otherwise
helpful thought might be kept out, or the man' s own thought might be 
hampered as
he poured it forth towards the Master. 
Many people
find themselves troubled with streams of wandering thought when they 
are trying to
fall asleep; a mental shell will deliver them from such of these 
thoughts as
come from without. Such a shell need only be temporary, since all 
that is
required is peace for an interval sufficient to allow the man to fall 
asleep. The
man will carry away with him this shell of mental matter when he 
leaves his
physical body, but its work will then be accomplished, since the 
whole object
of making it is to permit him to leave that body. The stream of 
idle thoughts
or mental worry will probably reassert itself when the shell 
breaks up,
but as the man will then be away from his physical brain this will 
not interfere
with the repose of the body. So long as he is in his physical body 
the mental
action will affect the particles of the brain and produce there such 
activity as
may easily make it impossible for the man to quit the physical 
vehicle; but
when once he is away from the latter, the same worry or wandering 
thought will
not bring him back to it. 
The third
case to which reference has been made is less simple. It occurs not 
infrequently
that certain groups of thought, some wholly desirable, and some 
equally
undesirable, are closely linked together. To take the first example 
which comes:
it is well known that deep devotion and a certain form of 
sensuality
are frequently almost inextricably mingled. A man who finds himself 
troubled by
this unpleasant conjunction may reap the benefit of the devotion 
without
suffering from the ill effects of the sensuality, by surrounding his 
mental body
with a rigid shell so far as its lower subdivisions are concerned, 
for in this
way he will effectually shut out the lower influences while still 
allowing the
higher to play upon him unhindered. This is but one example of a 
phenomenon of
which there are many varieties in the mental world. 
THE BEST USE
OF A SHELL 
When a shell
has to be made, the method which I have indicated above is probably 
the easiest
by which to make it, but there still remains a further 
consideration--
the question as to whether on the whole the shell is an 
undesirable
thing. It has its uses-- indeed it is eminently necessary as applied 
to other
people. The Invisible Helper frequently finds it invaluable when he is 
trying to
relieve some poor harassed soul who has not as yet the strength to 
protect
himself, either against definite and intentional attacks from without, 
or against
the ever-present swirl of the wearisome wandering thought. But to 
think of
using a shell for oneself is to a certain extent a confession of 
weakness or
of defect, for there seems little doubt that, if we were all that we 
ought to be,
we should need no protection of this nature. 
A BEAUTIFUL
STORY 
A beautiful
little story from the traditions of the Christian Church illustrates 
this very
happily. It is recorded that somewhere in the desert at the back of 
Alexandria
there was once a monastery whose abbot possessed the power of 
clairvoyance.
Among his monks there were two young men who had an especial 
reputation
for purity and holiness-- qualities which ought to be common to all 
monks, but
sometimes are not. One day when they were singing in the choir it 
occurred to
the abbot to turn his clairvoyant faculty upon these two young men, 
in the
endeavour to discover how they contrived to preserve this especial purity 
amidst the
temptations of daily life. So he looked at the first young man and 
saw that he
had surrounded himself with a shell as of glittering crystal, and 
that when the
tempting demons (impure thought-forms we should call them) came 
rushing at
him, they struck against this shell, and fell back without injuring 
him, so that
he remained inside his shell, calm and cold and pure. Then the 
abbot looked
at the second young monk, and he saw that he had built no shell 
round
himself, but that his heart was so full of the love of God that it was 
perpetually
radiating from him in all directions in the shape of torrents of 
love for his
fellow men, so that when the tempting demons sprang at him with 
fell intent
they were all washed away in that mighty outpouring stream, and so 
he also
remained pure and undefiled. And it is recorded that the abbot said that 
the second
monk was nearer to the kingdom of heaven than the first. 
THE BETTER
WAY 
It may be
that many of us have not yet reached the level of this second young 
monk; but at
least the story sets before us a higher ideal than that of mere 
self-protection,
and we may learn something of a lesson from him. We must, 
however,
carefully guard ourselves against the feeling of superiority or 
separateness.
We must avoid the danger of thinking too much about the self. We 
must keep
ourselves constantly in a condition of outpouring; we must be active, 
not passive.
When we meet a person our attitude surely should be not: “How can I 
guard myself
against you?” but rather: “What can I do for you?” It is this 
latter
attitude which calls into play the higher forces, because it reflects the 
attitude of
the Solar Deity. It is when we give that we become fit to receive, 
that we are
channels of the mighty force of the Deity Himself. 
We need not
even think too much about personal progress. It is possible to be so 
exclusively
occupied with the idea: “How can I get on?” as to forget the even 
more
important question: “What can I do to help?” And there are some good 
brothers,
even among the best that we have, who are so perpetually examining 
themselves as
to their progress as to remind one forcibly of those children who, 
when special
plots of garden-ground are given to them, are constantly pulling up 
their plants
to see how the roots are growing. This over-anxiety is a real 
danger; I
know many who, while doing the most beautiful altruistic actions, can 
yet never
feel quite sure that their intentions are truly unselfish, since they 
always doubt
whether it is not perhaps a selfish desire to avoid the discomfort 
caused by
seeing pain in others which moves them to action! 
Such brothers
should remember that self-examination may degenerate into morbid 
introspection,
and that the main object is that they should point themselves in 
the right
direction and then simply go ahead and do the best they can-- that, to 
quote our
Christian story, they should first fill their hearts with the love of 
God and then
(without spending all their time in weighing that love, to see 
whether it is
increasing or diminishing) should turn their whole attention to 
the practical
expression of it in love of their fellow men. Not only is such 
outpouring of
love a better defence than any number of shells, but it is also an 
investment
producing stupendous results. For the man who thinks nothing of 
result is
precisely he who is producing the greatest of all results. 
We have read
of the splendid self-sacrifice of the Nirmanakayas, who, having won 
the right to
untold ages of rest in bliss unspeakable, yet have chosen to remain 
within touch
of earth, in order that they may spend their time in the generation 
of incalculable
streams of spiritual force, which are poured into a mighty 
reservoir, to
be spent in helping on the evolution of their less developed 
fellows. The
great Hierarchy of Adepts is entrusted with the dispensing of this 
force for the
good of the “great orphan” humanity, and it is upon this that They 
(and even
Their pupils, under Their direction) draw when necessity arises. 
Needless to
say, nothing that we can do can come within measurable distance of 
the
marvellous achievement of the Nirmanakaya; yet it is in the power of every 
one of us to
add some tiny drops at least to the contents of that mighty 
reservoir,
for whenever we pour out from ourselves love or devotion which is 
utterly
without thought of self, we produce results which lie far beyond our 
ken. 
All affection
or devotion, however noble, which has in it the least thought of 
self (as in
the case of one who desires the return of his affection, or a reward 
of protection
or salvation for his devotion-- one who thinks not: “How much I 
love so-and-so!”
but: “I wonder how much so-and-so loves me ”)-- all such 
affection or
devotion sends its force in closed curves which return upon those 
who generated
it, and the karma which such force makes binds a man and brings 
him back to
birth, that he may receive the result of it, just as surely as if 
the karma
were evil. 
But when self
has been absolutely forgotten, when such thought has neither part 
nor lot in
the stream which is outpoured, when the curve is no longer closed but 
open, then
the karma does not bind the man nor bring him back to earth. Yet the 
effect is
produced-- an effect far transcending any imagination of ours, for 
that open
curve reaches up to the Solar Deity Himself, and it is from Him that 
the response
comes; and though that response inevitably brings as its result 
something of
advancement to the man whose love and devotion have called it into 
existence,
yet it also at the same time pours spiritual force into the great 
reservoir of
the Adepts. So it comes to pass that every thought, which has no 
slightest
taint of self in it, is a thought which directly helps the world, and 
thus the
outpouring of love is a better defence than the strongest of shells, 
and the man
who is filled with the powers of that Divine Love needs no 
protection,
because he lives within the heart of God Himself. 
THIRD SECTION
HOW WE
INFLUENCE OURSELVES 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XIV 
BY OUR HABITS
FOOD 
A SAYING is
attributed to the Christ to the effect that not what is put into the 
mouth but
what comes out of the mouth really defiles a man. Whether He ever made 
that remark
or not, there can be no possible question that a man may be most 
decidedly
defiled by what he puts into his mouth. 
The food
which we eat is taken into the body and we actually make it part of 
ourselves, so
it is clearly evident that the magnetism with which it is charged 
is a matter
of great moment to us. Both its physical and its magnetic purity are 
important,
yet some people neglect one and some the other. In India, for 
example,
great weight is attached to magnetic purity, and a man will not eat 
food which
has been subjected to the magnetism of some one of lower caste. On 
the other
hand he is much less careful than we are in the West as to the 
physical
cleanliness of the preparations, forgetting that nothing which is 
physically
dirty can ever be magnetically pure. We are usually particular as to 
the physical
cleanliness, but we never think of the question of magnetic purity. 
The fact
which most seriously affects the magnetism of food is that it is 
touched so
much by the hands of the cook in the course of its preparation. Now 
the special
magnetism of a person flows out most strongly through the hands, and 
consequently
food which is touched by the hands cannot but be highly charged 
with that
magnetism. This is specially true in the case of pastry and bread, 
which are
kneaded by hand in countries which are too backward to have learnt the 
use of
machinery for these purposes. All food made in that way would be 
absolutely
unfit to be eaten at all, were it not for the fact that fortunately 
the action of
fire in the baking or the cooking removes the traces of most kinds 
of physical
magnetism. Still it is eminently desirable that the cook should 
touch the
food as little as possible, and so ladles and spoons, which can 
readily be
demagnetised, should always be used in cooking and serving 
everything;
and they should be kept rigorously clean. 
In order to
prevent any avoidable mixture of magnetism many an occult student 
insists upon
always using his own private cup and spoon. Madame Blavatsky 
strongly
advised this, and said that when it could not be done the cup and the 
spoon that
were used should be demagnetised before each meal. The ordinary man 
pays no
attention whatever to matters such as these, but the student of 
occultism who
is trying to enter upon the Path must be more careful. It is 
possible to
demagnetise food by a firm effort of the will, and with a little 
practice a
mere wave of the hand coupled with a strong thought will do the thing 
almost
instantaneously. But it must be remembered that demagnetisation removes 
neither
physical dirt nor its astral counterpart, though it may take away other 
astral
influence; and therefore every precaution must be taken to see that 
cleanliness
is perfect in all culinary arrangements. 
Food also
absorbs the magnetism of those who are in close proximity to us when 
we are
eating. It is for that reason that in India a man prefers to eat alone, 
and must not
be seen eating by one of lower caste. The mixture which arises from 
eating in
public amidst a crowd of strangers, as in a restaurant, is always 
undesirable,
and should be avoided as much as possible. The magnetism of one' s 
own family is
usually more sympathetic, and at any rate one is accustomed to it, 
so that it is
much less likely to be harmful than the sudden introduction of a 
combination
of entirely strange vibrations, many of which are most likely quite 
out of
harmony with our own. 
There are,
however, always two kinds of magnetism in every article of food-- the 
internal and
the external-- the former belonging to its own character, the 
latter
impressed upon it from without. The magnetism of the merchant who sells 
it and of the
cook are both of the latter kind, and can therefore be removed by 
the action of
the fire; but the magnetism which is inherent in it is not at all 
affected by
that action. No amount of cooking of dead flesh, for example, can 
take away
from it its inherently objectionable character, nor all the feelings 
of pain and
horror and hatred with which it is saturated. No person who can see 
that
magnetism and the vibrations which it sets up can possibly eat meat. 
INTOXICATING
LIQUORS 
Indeed, many
of the pernicious habits of life of the ignorant would become 
instantly
impossible for them if they could see the hidden side of their selfish 
indulgences.
Even the undeveloped specimens of humanity who cluster round the 
bar of a
public-house would surely shrink back with terror, if they could see 
the class of
entities by which they are surrounded-- the lowest and most brutal 
types of a
rudimentary evolution, a bloated, livid fungus growth of 
indescribable
horror; and far worse even than they, because they are degraded 
from
something that should be so much better, are the ghastly crowds of dead 
drunkards--
drink-sodden dregs of humanity, who have drowned the divine image in 
depths of
direful debauchery and now cluster round their successors, urging them 
on to wilder
carousals with hideous leers and mocking laughter, yet with a 
loathly lust
awful to behold. 
All this is
entirely apart from the unquestionable deterioration which is 
brought about
in both astral and mental bodies by the indulgence in intoxicating 
liquors. The
man who is eagerly seeking for excuses for the gratification of 
ignoble
cravings frequently asserts that food and drink, belonging as they do 
purely to the
physical world, can have but little effect upon a man' s inner 
development. This
statement is obviously not in accordance with common sense, 
for the
physical matter in man is in exceedingly close touch with the astral and 
mental-- so
much so, that each is to a great extent a counterpart of the other, 
and
coarseness and grossness in the physical body imply a similar condition in 
the higher
vehicles. 
There are
many types and degrees of density of astral matter, so that it is 
possible for
one man to have an astral body built of exceedingly coarse and 
gross
particles, while another may have one which is much more delicate and 
refined. As
the astral body is the vehicle of the emotions and passions, it 
follows that
a man whose astral body is of the ruder type will be chiefly 
amenable to
the lower and rougher varieties of passion and emotion; whereas a 
man who has a
finer astral body will find that its particles most readily 
vibrate in
response to higher and more refined emotions and aspirations. Thus a 
man who is
building for himself a gross and impure physical body is building for 
himself at
the same time coarse and unclean astral and mental bodies as well. 
This effect
is visible at once to the eye of the trained clairvoyant, and he 
will readily
distinguish between a man who feeds his physical vehicle with pure 
food and another
who contaminates it by intoxicating drink or decaying flesh. 
There can be
no question that it is the duty of every man to develop all his 
vehicles as
far as possible in order to make them perfect instruments for the 
use of the
soul, which in itself is being trained to be a fit instrument in the 
hands of the
Solar Deity, and a perfect channel for the divine love. The first 
step towards
this is that the man himself should learn thoroughly to control the 
lower bodies,
so that there shall be in them no thought or feeling except those 
he approves. 
All these
vehicles, therefore, must be in the highest possible condition of 
efficiency;
they must be pure and clean and free from taint; and it is obvious 
that this can
never be, so long as the man puts into the physical body 
undesirable
constituents. Even the physical vehicle and its sense perceptions 
can never be
at their best unless the food is pure, and the same thing is true 
to a much
greater extent with regard to the higher bodies. Their senses also 
cannot be
clear if impure or coarse matter is drawn into them; anything of this 
nature clogs
and dulls them, so that it becomes far more difficult for the soul 
to use them.
Indulgence in alcohol or carnivorous diet is absolutely fatal to 
anything like
real development, and those who adopt these habits are putting 
serious and
utterly unnecessary difficulties in their own way. 
Nor is the
effect during physical life the only point which is to be borne in 
mind in
connection with this matter. If, through introducing impure particles 
into his
physical body, the man builds himself an unseemly and unclean astral 
body, we must
not forget that it is in this degraded vehicle that he will have 
to spend the
first part of his life after death. Just as, here in the physical 
world, his
coarseness draws into association with him all sorts of undesirable 
entities who,
like parasites, make his vehicles their home, and find a ready 
response within
him to their lower passions, so also will he suffer acutely from 
similar
companionship after death, and from the working out in astral life of 
the
conditions which he has here set in motion. 
FLESH-EATING 
All this
applies not only to indulgence in intoxicating liquor, but also to the 
prevalent
practice of feeding upon corpses. This habit also, like the other, 
produces a
consistent effect; this also, like the other, draws round its 
votaries all
kinds of undesirable entities-- horrible gaping red mouths, such as 
those that
gather round the shambles to absorb the aroma of blood. It is indeed 
strange and
pitiable to a clairvoyant to see a lady, thinking herself dainty and 
refined
(truly refined and dainty she cannot be, or she would not be there) 
surrounded by
an incongruous nightmare of such strange forms in a butcher' s 
shop, where
she goes to examine the corpses left by the grim, ceaseless 
slaughter on
the battle-field between man' s bestial, tigerish lust for blood 
and the
divine Life incarnated in the animal kingdom. Little she realises that 
there will
come a time when those who by their support make possible this 
ghastly blot
on the record of humanity, this daily hecatomb of savage, useless 
murder of the
forms through which the Deity is patiently trying to manifest, 
will find
themselves face to face with His ineffable Majesty, and hear from the 
Voice that
called the worlds into existence the appalling truth: “Inasmuch as 
you have done
this unto one of the least of these My little ones, you have done 
it unto Me.” 
Surely it is
time, with all our boasted advance, that this foul stain upon our 
so-called
civilisation should be removed. Even if it were only for selfish 
reasons, for
the sake of our own interests, this should be so. Remember that 
every one of
these murdered creatures is a definite entity-- not a permanent 
reincarnating
individual, but still an entity that has its life in the astral 
world.
Remember that every one of these remains there for a considerable time, 
to pour out a
feeling of indignation and horror at all the injustice and torment 
which have
been inflicted; and perhaps in that way it may be possible faintly to 
realise
something of the terrible atmosphere which hangs over a slaughter-house 
and a
butcher' s shop, and how it all reacts at many points upon the human race. 
Most of all,
these horrors react upon those who are least able to resist them-- 
upon the
children, who are more delicate and sensitive than the hardened adult; 
and so for them
there are constant feelings of causeless terror in the air-- 
terror of the
dark, or of being alone for a few moments. All the time there are 
playing about
us tremendous forces of awful strength, which only the occult 
student can
understand. The whole creation is so closely interrelated that we 
cannot do
horrible murder in this way upon our younger brothers without feeling 
the effect
upon our own innocent children. 
The pitiable
thing about it is that a lady is actually able to enter a butcher' 
s shop-- that
because of the indulgence of her forefathers in this shocking form 
of food, her
various vehicles have become so coarsened that she can stand amidst 
those
bleeding carcasses without being overcome by loathing and repulsion, and 
can be in the
midst of the most ghastly astral abominations without being in the 
slightest
degree conscious of it. If we take into such a place any person who 
has never
corrupted himself with such carrion, there is no doubt that he will 
shrink in
disgust from the loathsome, bleeding masses of physical flesh, and 
will also
feel stifled by the actively and militantly-evil astral entities which 
swarm there.
Yet here we have the sad spectacle of a lady who ought, by her very 
birthright,
to be delicate and sensitive, whose physical and astral fibre is so 
coarsened
that she neither observes the visible nor senses the invisible horrors 
which
surround her. 
The pity of
it is, too, that all the vast amount of evil which people bring upon 
themselves by
these pernicious habits might so easily be avoided. No man needs 
either flesh
or alcohol. It has been demonstrated over and again that he is 
better
without them. This is a case in which actually all the arguments are on 
one side and
there is nothing whatever to be said on the other, except the man' 
s assertion:
“I will do these horrible things, because I like them.” 
With regard
to flesh-eating, for example, it cannot be questioned that: (1) the 
right kind of
vegetables contain more nutriment than an equal amount of dead 
flesh; (2)
many serious diseases come from this loathsome habit of devouring 
dead bodies;
(3) man is not naturally made to be carnivorous and therefore this 
abominable
food is not suited to him; (4) men are stronger and better on a 
vegetable
diet; (5) the eating of dead bodies leads to indulgence in drink and 
increases
animal passions in man; (6) the vegetable diet is in every way cheaper 
as well as
better than flesh; (7) many more men can be supported by a certain 
number of
acres of land which are devoted to the growing of wheat than by the 
same amount
of land which is laid out in pasture; (8) in the former case healthy 
work upon the
land can be found for many more men than in the latter; (9) men 
who eat flesh
are responsible for the sin and degradation caused in the 
slaughter-men;
(10) carnivorous diet is fatal to real development, and produces 
the most
undesirable results on both astral and mental bodies; (11) man' s duty 
towards the
animal kingdom is not to slaughter it recklessly, but to assist in 
its
evolution. 
These are not
points about which there can be any question; the fullest evidence 
in support of
each of them will be found in my book, Some Glimpses of Occultism. 
No man needs
these things, and to take them is just a matter of selfish 
indulgence.
Most men commit this act in ignorance of the harm that it is doing; 
but remember,
to continue to commit it when the truth is known is a crime. 
Widely spread
as they are, these are nothing but evil habits, and with a little 
effort they
can be laid aside like any other habit. 
SMOKING 
Another
custom, also pernicious and equally widely spread, is that of smoking. 
In this, as
in so many other cases, a man at once resents any suggestions that 
he should
give up his bad habits, and says: “Why should I not do as I like in 
these
matters?” With regard to flesh-diet the answer to this is perfectly clear, 
for that is a
practice which not only seriously injures the man who adopts it, 
but also
involves terrible crime and cruelty in the provision of the food. In 
the case of
alcohol also a clear answer can be given, quite apart from the 
effect upon
the drinker himself, for by buying this noxious fluid he is 
encouraging a
pernicious trade, helping to create a demand for a liquor which 
tempts
thousands of his fellow-creatures to excess and lures them to their own 
destruction.
No man who buys alcohol for drinking purposes can escape his share 
in the
responsibility of that. 
It may be
said that with regard to smoking the position is somewhat different, 
since no
cruelty is necessary in obtaining tobacco, nor are lives destroyed by 
it as by
alcohol. This is true, and if the smoker can entirely shut himself away 
from any
contact with his fellow-men, and if he has no desire to make anything 
in the nature
of occult progress, his argument may, so, far, hold good. If, not 
being
actually a hermit, he has sometimes at least to come into touch with his 
fellowmen, he
can have no possible right to make himself a nuisance to them. 
There are
many people who, being deeply steeped in the same pollution 
themselves,
have no objection to the nauseating odour of tobacco; but all who 
have kept
themselves pure from this thing know how strong is the disgust which 
its coarse
and fetid emanations inevitably arouse. Yet the smoker cares little 
for that. As
I have said elsewhere, this is the only thing that a gentleman will 
deliberately
do when he knows it to be offensive to others; but the hold which 
this noxious
habit gains upon its slaves appears to be so great that they are 
utterly
incapable of resisting it, and all their gentlemanly instincts are 
forgotten in
this mad and hateful selfishness. 
Anything
which can produce such an effect as that upon a man' s character is a 
thing that
all wise men will avoid. The impurity of it is so great and so 
penetrating
that the man who habitually uses it is absolutely soaked in it, and 
is most
offensive to the sense of smell of the purer person. For this purely 
physical
reason no one who comes into contact with his fellows should indulge in 
this most
objectionable practice, and, if he does, he thereby brands himself as 
one who
thinks only of his own selfish enjoyment and is willing in taking it to 
inflict much
suffering upon his fellow-creatures. And all this is quite apart 
from the
deadening effect which it produces, and from the various diseases-- 
smoker' s
throat, smoker' s heart, cancer in the mouth, indigestion and others-- 
which it
brings in its train. For nicotine, as is well known, is a deadly 
poison, and
the effect of even small quantities of it can never be good. 
Why should
any man adopt a custom which produces all these unpleasant results? 
To this there
is absolutely no answer except that he has taught himself to like 
it; for it
cannot be pretended that it is in any way necessary or useful. I 
believe it to
be quite true that in certain circumstances it soothes the nerves; 
that is part
of its deadening effect as a poison, but that result can be equally 
well achieved
by other and far less objectionable means. It is always evil for a 
man to adopt
a habit to which he becomes a slave-- evil for himself, I mean; it 
is doubly
evil when that habit brings with it the bad karma of inflicting 
constant
annoyance upon others. 
No child by
nature likes the loathsome taste of this evil weed but, because 
others older
than himself indulge in it, he struggles painfully through the 
natural
nausea which it causes him at first-- the protest of his healthy young 
body against
the introduction of this polluting matter-- and so gradually he 
forces
himself to endure it, and eventually becomes a slave to it, like his 
elders. It
stunts his growth; it leads him into bad company; but what of that? 
He has
asserted his dawning manhood by proving himself capable of a ` manly' 
vice. I know
that parents frequently advise their children not to smoke; perhaps 
if they set
them the example of abstention, their sage counsels would produce a 
greater
effect. This is another habit with evil results which could so easily be 
avoided-- all
that is needed being simply not to do it. 
The impurity
produced by this obscene practice is not only physical. It may be 
taken as an
axiom that physical filth of any sort always implies astral filth as 
well, for the
counterpart of that which is impure cannot itself be pure. Just as 
the physical
nerve-vibrations are deadened by the poison, so are both astral and 
mental
undulations. For occult progress a man needs to have his vehicles as 
finely strung
as possible, so that they may be ready at any moment to respond in 
sympathy to
any kind of vibration. Therefore he does not want to have his 
thought-waves
deadened and his astral body weighed down with foul and poisonous 
particles.
Many who call themselves students still cling to this unpleasant 
habit, and
try to find all sorts of weak excuses to cover the fact that they 
have not the
strength to break away from its tyranny; but facts remain facts, 
for all that,
and no one who can see the effects on the higher vehicles of this 
disastrous
custom can avoid the realisation that it does serious harm. 
Its effect in
the astral world after death is a remarkable one. The man has so 
filled his
astral body with poison that it has stiffened under its influence, 
and has
become unable to work properly or to move freely. For a long period the 
man is as
though he were paralysed-- able to speak, yet debarred from movement, 
and almost
entirely cut off from all higher influences. In process of time he 
emerges from
this unpleasant predicament, when the part of his astral body which 
is affected
by this poison has gradually worn away. 
DRUGS 
The taking of
opium or cocaine, though happily less common, is equally 
disastrous,
for from the occult point of view it is entirely ruinous and fatal 
to progress.
These drugs are sometimes a necessity in order to relieve great 
pain; but
they should be taken as sparingly as possible, and on no account be 
allowed to
degenerate into a habit. One who knows how to do it, however, can 
remove the
evil effect of the opium from the astral and mental bodies after it 
has done its
work upon the physical. 
Nearly all
drugs produce a deleterious effect upon the higher vehicles, and they 
are therefore
to be avoided as much as possible. There are definite cases in 
which they
are clearly required, when they are really specifics for certain 
diseases; but
these are few, and in far the greater number of cases nature 
herself will
work a rapid cure if the surroundings are pure and healthy. 
With regard
to the treatment of the body, prevention emphatically better than 
cure, and
those who live rationally will rarely need the services of a doctor. 
Under all
circumstances animal serums and products in any way connected with or 
obtained by
means of vivisection should be absolutely avoided. It should be 
remembered
that tea and coffee contain as their essence drugs called 
respectively
theine and caffeine, which are poisonous, so that an excess of 
these
beverages is a bad thing, especially for growing children; indeed, I 
incline to
the opinion that, while in moderation they do no serious harm, those 
who find
themselves able to avoid them are all the better for it. 
CLEANLINESS 
Doctors are
usually agreed as to the necessity for physical cleanliness, but the 
requirements
of occultism are far more stringent than theirs. The waste matter 
which is
constantly being thrown off by the body in the shape of imperceptible 
perspiration
is rejected because it is poisonous and decaying refuse, and the 
astral and
mental counterparts of its particles are of the most undesirable 
character.
Dirt is often more objectionable in the higher worlds than in the 
physical,
and, just as in the physical world, it is not only foul and poisonous 
in itself but
it also inevitably breeds dangerous microbes, so in these higher 
worlds it
attracts low-class nature-spirits of a kind distinctly prejudicial to 
man. Yet many
people habitually carry a coating of filth about with them, and so 
ensure for
themselves the possession of an unpleasant retinue of astral and 
etheric
creatures. 
The thorough
daily bath, therefore, is even more an occult than a hygienic 
necessity,
and purity of mind and feeling cannot exist without purity of body 
also. The
physical emanations of dirt are unpleasant, but those in the astral 
and mental
worlds are much more than merely unpleasant; they are deleterious to 
the last
degree, and dangerous not only to the man himself, but to others. It is 
through the
pores of the body that the magnetism of the person rushes out, 
bearing with
it what remains of the vital force. If therefore these pores are 
clogged with
filth, the magnetism is poisoned on its way out, and will produce a 
pernicious
effect upon all those around. 
We must
remember that we are constantly interchanging the particles of our 
bodies with
those about us, and that our bodies therefore are not wholly our 
own; we
cannot do just as we like with them, because of the fact that they thus 
constantly
influence those of our brothers, the children of our common Father. A 
comprehension
of the most rudimentary idea of brotherhood shows us that it is an 
absolute duty
to others to keep our bodies healthy, pure and clean. If the 
person be
perfectly clean, his emanations will carry health and strength, and so 
when we make
ourselves purer we are helping others also. 
OCCULT
HYGIENE 
This radiation
is strongest of all from the ends of the fingers and toes, so 
that even
more than usual care should constantly be lavished upon the strictest 
cleanliness
in the case of these channels of influence. A careless person who 
allows filth
to accumulate under his finger-nails is all the time pouring forth 
from the ends
of his fingers what in the astral world exactly corresponds to a 
torrent of
peculiarly noisome sewage in the physical-- an effect which makes his 
neighbourhood
exceedingly unpleasant to any sensitive person, and causes him to 
do harm in
many cases where, but for that, he might be doing good. 
For a similar
reason special care of the feet is desirable. They should never be 
encased in
boots too tight for them, and thick, heavy walking boots should never 
be worn an
instant longer than is absolutely necessary, but should be replaced 
by something
soft, loose and easy. Indeed it is far better that whenever 
possible the
feet should be left uncovered altogether, or when that is 
considered
impossible, that a light sandal should be used without stockings or 
socks. This
plan could hardly be adopted out-of-doors amidst the horrible filth 
of our large
towns, but it surely ought to be possible in country houses and at 
the seaside.
It could be done indoors everywhere, and would be healthier and 
more
comfortable physically, as well as correct from the occult point of view. 
But while we
are all such slaves of fashion that any man who lived and dressed 
rationally
would probably be regarded as insane, I suppose that it is hopeless 
to expect
people to have sufficient strength of mind to do what is obviously 
best for
them. 
From the
point of view of occult hygiene great care should be taken also with 
regard to the
head, which should be left uncovered whenever possible, and never 
allowed to
get hot. A hat is an utterly unnecessary article of clothing, and 
people would
be much better in every way without it; but here again probably the 
foolishness
of fashion will, as usual, stand in the way of common sense. The 
folly of
wearing a hat becomes immediately obvious when we remember that even in 
the coldest
weather we habitually leave the face entirely uncovered, even though 
there is
usually but little hair on it, whereas we are careful to put a 
considerable
and most insanitary weight upon the upper part of the head, which 
nature has
already abundantly covered with hair! Think, too, how much money 
might be
saved by discarding all unnecessary and positively harmful articles of 
dress-- hats,
boots, stockings, collars, cuffs, corsets. 
But people
never use their own brains with regard to such matters; they think 
only of what
some one else is doing, and they never realise that their boasted 
liberty is
the merest sham, since they do not feel themselves free to follow the 
plainest
dictates of their reason, even with regard to a matter which is so 
clearly their
own private business as the clothing that they shall wear. Future 
and more
enlightened generations will look back with wonder and pity upon the 
dreary
monotony of ugliness to which this senseless thraldom condemns us. 
Another of
the objectionable customs of our modern civilisation is that of 
hair-cutting.
It is outrageous that we should be expected to submit to have our 
heads pawed
about for a quarter of an hour or so by a person who is not usually 
of the higher
classes, who generally smells offensively of tobacco or onions or 
pomatum, who
breathes in our faces and worries us with a stream of inane 
chatter-- and
in any case has been promiscuously pawing the heads of a score of 
others of His
Majesty' s lieges without any intermediate process of 
purification.
Considering the fact that the head is precisely the part of the 
human body
where unpleasant alien magnetism will produce the greatest effect, 
and that it
is through the hands that magnetism flows most easily, one sees at 
once what a
peculiarly unscientific abomination this is. I do not suggest that 
every man
should let his hair grow to its full length; that is a matter entirely 
for his
private taste; but I do say that the person who cuts it should be his 
wife or his
mother, his brother or his sister, or at least somebody of the same 
family or in
close friendship, whose magnetism is likely to be on the whole 
harmonious
and reasonably pure. It may be that until we all have had a certain 
amount of
practice, the hair would not be quite so well cut as by the 
professional
person; but we should be far more than compensated by freedom from 
headache, from
unpleasant smells and from foreign influences. 
PHYSICAL
EXISTENCE 
In order that
its reaction upon higher vehicles should be satisfactory, it is 
necessary
that the physical body should be regularly exercised. This, which 
doctors tell
us is so desirable from the point of view of physical health, is 
still more
desirable from the point of view of health in other worlds. Not only 
do unused
muscles deteriorate and become feeble, but their condition produces a 
congestion of
magnetism, a check to its proper and healthy flow; and that means 
a weak spot
in the etheric double, through which a hostile influence can easily 
penetrate. A
man who keeps his physical body thoroughly well exercised also 
keeps his
etheric body in good order, which means in the first place that he is 
far less
liable to the penetration of unpleasant physical germs, such as those 
of infection,
for example. And in the second, because of the reaction of this 
upon the
astral and mental bodies, thoughts of depression or of animal passion 
will find it
almost impossible to seize upon him. Therefore we see that due and 
regular
physical exercise has great importance from the occult standpoint; 
indeed we may
say that all such practices as have been found by experiment to 
promote the
health of the physical body are also found to react favourably upon 
the higher
vehicles. 
READING AND
STUDY 
There is an
occult side to ever act of daily life, and it often happens that if 
we know this
occult side we can perform these daily actions more perfectly or 
more
usefully. Take, for example, the case of reading. Broadly speaking, we read 
for two
purposes, for study and for amusement. If one watches with clairvoyant 
vision a
person who is reading for the purpose of study, one is often surprised 
to see how
little the real meaning of what is written penetrates into the mind 
of the
reader. In a book that is carefully written, in order that it may be 
studied, each
sentence or paragraph usually contains a clear statement of a 
certain definite
idea. That idea expresses itself as a thought-form, the shape 
or size of
which varies according to the subject. But whether it is small or 
large,
whether it is simple or complicated, it is at least clear and definite of 
its kind. It
is usually surrounded with various subsidiary forms, which are the 
expressions
of corollaries or necessary deductions from the statement. Now an 
exact
duplicate of this, which is the author' s thought-form, should build 
itself up in
the reader' s mind, perhaps immediately, perhaps only by degrees. 
Whether the
forms indicating corollaries also appear; depends upon the nature of 
the student'
s mind-- whether he is or is not quick to see in a moment all that 
follows from
a certain statement. 
As a general
rule, with a good student the image of the central idea will 
reproduce
itself fairly accurately at once, and the surrounding images will come 
into being
one by one as the students revolves the central idea in his mind. But 
unfortunately
with many people even the central idea is by no means properly 
represented.
Less developed mentally, they cannot make a clear reflection at 
all, and they
create a sort of amorphous, incorrect mass instead of a 
geometrical
form. Others manufacture something, which is indeed recognisable as 
the same
form, but with blunted edges and angles, or with one part of it 
entirely out
of proportion to the rest-- a badly drawn representation, in fact. 
Others
succeed in making a kind of skeleton of it, which means that they have 
grasped the
outline of the idea, but are as yet quite unable to make it living 
to
themselves, or to fill in any of its detail. Others-- perhaps the most 
numerous
class-- touch one side of the idea and not the other, and so build only 
half the
form. Others seize one point in it and neglect all the rest, and so 
generate a
figure which may be accurate as far as it goes, but is not 
recognisable
as a copy of that given in the book. Yet these people will all 
assert that
they have studied the book in question, though if they were asked to 
reproduce its
contains from memory, the resulting essays would have little in 
common. 
This means in
the first place a lack of attention. These people presumably read 
the words,
but the ideas expressed by those words do not effect a lodgment in 
their minds.
Often it is easy for the clairvoyant to see the reason for this, 
for if he
watches the mental body of the student he sees it to be occupied with 
half a dozen
subjects simultaneously. Household cares, business worries, 
thoughts of
some recent pleasure or expectations of an approaching one, a 
feeling of
weariness and repulsion at having to study and a longing for the time 
when the
half-hour of study shall be over; all such feelings as these are 
seething in
the man' s brain, and occupying between them nine-tenths of the 
matter of his
mental body, while the poor remaining tenth is making a despairing 
effort to get
hold of the thought-form which he is supposed to be assimilating 
from the
book. Under these circumstances, naturally enough, it is hopeless to 
expect any
real benefit, and it would probably, on the whole, be better for such 
a man of he
did not attempt to study at all. 
From the
examination of this hidden side of study, then, certain definite rules 
emerge which
it would be well for the intending student to follow. First, he 
must begin by
emptying his mind of all other thoughts and must see to it that 
they are not
permitted to return until his time of study is over. He must free 
his mind from
all cares and perplexities, and then he must concentrate it wholly 
on the matter
in hand. He should read through his paragraph slowly and 
carefully,
and then pause to see whether the image is clear in his mind. Then he 
should read
the passage over again with equal care, and see whether any 
additional
features have been added to his mental image; and he should repeat 
this until he
feels that he has a thorough grasp of the subject, and that no new 
idea upon it
will immediately suggest itself. When that is done he may usefully 
see whether
he can pick out any of the corollaries, whether he can surround his 
central
thought-form with planets depending on it. 
All this
while, a mass of other thoughts will have been clamouring for 
admission;
but if our student is worthy of the name he will sternly refuse them 
and keep his
mind fixed exclusively on the question in hand. The original 
thought-form
which I have described represents the author' s conception as he 
wrote, and it
is always possible by earnest study to get thus into touch with 
the mind of
the author. Often through his thought-form he himself may be 
reached, and
additional information may be obtained or light may be gained on 
difficult
points. Usually the student, unless highly developed, cannot come into 
conscious
touch with the author, so as actually to interchange ideas with him; 
any new
thought will probably appear to the student as his own, because it 
always comes
into his physical brain from above, just as much when it is 
suggested
from outside as when it originates in his own mental body; but that 
matters
little so long as he gets a clear conception of his object. 
SYSTEM AND
THOROUGHNESS 
All this the
occult student does as a matter of course, and he does it daily 
with the most
exemplary regularity, for he recognises its importance, first 
because he
knows the necessity of systematic work or training, and secondly 
because one
of the duties most strongly impressed upon him is that of 
thoroughness.
His motto must be: “Whatsoever thy hand findeth to do, do it with 
thy might.”
He knows that whatever he does he ought to do better than the man of 
the world
does it, that nothing will suffice but the best that is possible to 
him, and that
he must try ceaselessly to attain perfection in all his work, 
developing
all his vehicles to the utmost, in order that he nay gain that 
perfection. 
NOVEL AND
NEWSPAPER-READING 
Even when we
read for amusement it is still eminently desirable that we should 
form a habit
of concentration upon what is read. After much study or hard mental 
labour of any
kind, it is often a great relief to turn to a good novel, and 
there is no
harm whatever in doing so, so long as moderation is observed. The 
person who
gives up his whole life to novel-reading is yielding to mental 
dissipation,
and if he continues to treat his mind in that way he will probably 
soon find
that it is of little use to him as an instrument for serious study. 
But, as I
have said, occasional novel-reading for relief is harmless and even 
beneficial. 
Even then it
is well not to read carelessly, but to try to form a clear 
conception of
each character, to make the people live and move before one. When 
the author
wrote his story he made such a series of thought-forms. Many other 
readers since
have come into touch with them and strengthened them, (though some 
prefer to
construct a fresh set of their own), and it is frequently possible to 
see with the
mind the author' s original set, and so to follow his story exactly 
as he meant
it. 
Of some
well-known stories there are many renderings in the mental and astral 
worlds. Of
the biblical stories, for example, each nation has usually its 
special
presentation, and generally with the characters all dressed in its 
particular
national garb. Children have vivid and capable imaginations, so books 
much read by
them are sure to be well represented in the world of thought-forms; 
we find many
excellent and life-like portraits of such people as Sherlock 
Holmes,
Captain Kettle, John Silver, or Dr. Nikola. 
On the whole,
however, the thought-forms evoked from the novels of to-day are by 
no means so
clear as those which our forefathers made of Robinson Crusoe or of 
the
characters in Shakespeare' s plays. That comes largely from the fact that we 
rarely give
more than half our attention to anything, even to a good story, and 
that in turn
is the consequence of the curious literary conditions of our modern 
life. In the
older days, if a man read at all, he read earnestly and fixed his 
mind upon
what he was doing. If he took up any subject, he read serious books 
upon that
subject. In these days a large number of people dependent for almost 
all the
information they possess upon newspapers and magazines. The magazine or 
newspaper
article conveys in a handy form for easy assimilation a certain amount 
of
superficial information upon its subject, whatever that may be; it gives 
enough to
enable a man to talk lightly about the matter at a dinner-table, but 
not enough to
tax his intellect or to give him a sense of mental effort. It is 
an age of
information by snippets, and the ultimate expression of its spirit is 
shown by the
enormous circulation of such papers as Tit-Bits and Answers. The 
mind which
gains its information in this way has no real grasp of any subject-- 
no solid
foundation; and because it has accustomed itself to feeding upon 
highly-spiced
fragments it finds itself incapable of digesting a more satisfying 
meal. 
An unpleasant
feature of the newspaper press of the present day is the great 
prominence
given to murders and divorce cases, and the wealth of sickening 
detail about
them which is put before the public, day after day. This is bad 
enough from
any point of view, but when, we add to ordinary considerations those 
which are
shown to us by the study of the hidden side of all these things, we 
are fairly
appalled. The result of this prurient publicity is that all over the 
country great
masses of vivid and most objectionable thought-forms are 
constantly
being generated; people picture the horrible details of the murder, 
or gloat
libidinously over suggestive facts or remarks connected with the 
divorce case,
and the resulting thought-forms in the first case are of a 
terrifying
character to any nervous person who can be influenced by them, and in 
the second
case constitute a distinct temptation towards evil thought and action 
for those who
have in them germs of sensuality. This is no mere supposition as 
to what must
occur-- it is a definite chronicle of what constantly does occur. 
No
clairvoyant can avoid noticing the great increase in unpleasant thought-forms 
during the
progress of any of these sensational cases. 
On the other
hand, it is only fair to remember that the curious fragmentary 
literature of
to-day reaches a multitude of people who in the old days did not 
read at all.
A man who is at heart and by disposition a reality serious student 
still studies
just as of old. A certain number of people who in the older days 
might have
studied seriously, are now diverted from doing so by the facility 
with which
they can obtain superficial information in small doses; but a much 
greater number
of people who would never under any circumstances have taken up 
serious study
are now beguiled into acquiring at least a certain amount of 
information
by the ease with which it can be done. Many a man buys a magazine on 
a
railway-journey, for the purpose of reading the stories in it; finishing them 
before the
journey is over, he fills up his time by imbibing the other contents 
of his
periodical, and in that way learns many things which he did not know 
before, and
may even have his attention attracted to some subject which appeals 
to him-- in
which presently he will learn to take serious interest. 
So these
curious basketfuls of miscellaneous information may be said to do good 
as well as
harm, for though the taste for desultory reading and bad jokes may 
not in itself
be a great gain to the errand-boy or the shop assistant, it is 
nevertheless
for him the beginning of literature, and it occupies a certain 
amount of his
time which might easily be worse spent in public-houses or in 
doubtful company.
In days before the school-board, the place of the cheap 
magazine was
largely taken by the spoken story, and it is to be feared that many 
of the
stories told by young men when they were alone together were often of a 
nature that
would certainly not be admitted into our weekly papers. So we must 
not
altogether despise these things, though the serious student does well to 
avoid them,
just because they fill the mental body with a mass of little 
unconnected
thought-forms like pebbles, instead of building up in it an orderly 
edifice. 
SPEECH 
It is
emphatically necessary to remember that speech must be absolutely true. 
Accuracy in
speech is a quality rarely shown in these days, and careless 
exaggeration
is painfully common. Many people are habitually so loose in their 
statements
that they lose all sense of the meaning of words; they constantly say 
` awfully'
when they mean ` very,' or describe something as ` killing' when they 
are trying to
convey the idea that it is mildly amusing. The occultist must not 
be led away
by custom in this matter, but must be meticulously exact in all that 
he says.
There are people who consider it allowable to tell a falsehood by way 
of what they
call a joke, in order to deceive another and then to laugh at his 
credulity-- a
credulity which is surely in no way blameworthy, since the victim 
has simply
given the narrator credit for being enough of a gentleman to speak 
the truth! I
need hardly say that such falsehood is absolutely unpermissible. 
There can
never under any circumstances be anything amusing in telling a lie or 
deceiving
anyone, and the word or the action is just as definitely a wicked 
thing when
spoken or done for that purpose as for any other. 
The wise man
will never argue. Each man has a certain amount of force, and is 
responsible
for using it to the best possible advantage. One of the most foolish 
ways in which
to fritter it away is to waste it in argument. People sometimes 
come to me
and want to argue about Theosophy. I invariably decline. I tell them 
that I have
certain information that I can give, certain testimony that I can 
offer as to
what I have myself seen and experienced. If this testimony is of 
value to
them, they are more than welcome to it, and I am glad to give it to 
them, as indeed
I have done over and over again in this and in other books; but 
I have not
time to argue the matter with people who do not believe me. They have 
the full
right to their own opinion, and are at perfect liberty to believe or 
disbelieve as
they choose. I have no quarrel with those who cannot accept my 
testimony;
but I have also no time to waste over them, for that time may be far 
better
occupied with those who are prepared to accept such message as I have to 
give. 
Whistler is
credited with having once remarked in the course of a conversation 
on art: “I am
not arguing with you; I am telling you the facts.” It seems to me 
that that is
the wisest position for the Theosophical student. We have studied 
certain
things; so far as we have gone we know them to be true, and we are 
willing to
explain them; if people are not yet prepared to accept them, that is 
exclusively
their affair, and we wish them good speed in whatever line of 
investigation
they wish to take. Argument leads constantly to heated feelings 
and to a
sense of hostility-- both things by all means to be avoided. When it is 
necessary to
discuss any subject in all its bearings, in order to decide upon a 
course of
action, let it be done always gently and temperately, and let each man 
state his own
case kindly and deliberately, and listen with all politeness and 
deference to
the opinions of others. 
MEDITATION 
Just as a man
who wishes to be strong finds it advisable to use definite, 
prescribed
exercises to develop his physical body, so the student of occultism 
uses definite
and prescribed exercises to develop his astral and mental 
vehicles.
This is best done by meditation. Of this there are many kinds, and 
each teacher
enjoins that which he thinks most suitable. All the religions 
recommend it,
and its desirability has been recognised by every school of 
philosophy.
This is not the place to suggest any particular system; those who 
belong to the
Theosophical Society know that within it there is a school for 
such
practices, and those who wish for further information are referred to it. 
All systems
alike set before themselves certain objects, which are not difficult 
to
comprehend. They all direct that a man should spend a certain time each day 
in thinking
steadily and exclusively of holy things, and their objects in doing 
so are:
first, to ensure that at least once each day a man shall think of such 
things, that
his thoughts shall at least once in twenty-four hours be taken away 
from the
petty round of daily life, from its frivolities and its troubles; 
secondly, to
accustom the man to think of such matters, so that after a time 
they may be
present always at the back of his mind, as a kind of background to 
his daily
life-- something to which his mind returns with pleasure when it is 
released from
the immediate demands of his business; thirdly, as I began by 
saying, as a
kind of astral and mental gymnastics, to preserve these higher 
bodies in
health, and to keep the stream of divine life flowing through them 
(and for
these purposes it should be remembered that the regularity of the 
exercises is
of the first importance); fourthly, because this is the way, even 
though it be
only the first halting step upon the way, which leads to higher 
development
and wider knowledge, the gate of the road which through many a 
struggle and
many an effort leads to the attainment of clairvoyance, and 
eventually
into the higher life beyond this world altogether. 
Although the
man in his daily meditation may see but little progress, and it may 
seem to him
that his efforts are altogether unsatisfactory and without result, a 
clairvoyant
watching him will see exactly how the astral and mental bodies are 
slowly coming
out of chaos into order, slowly expanding and gradually learning 
to respond to
higher and higher vibrations. He can see, though the experimenter 
cannot, how
each effort is gradually thinning the veil that divides him from 
that other
world of direct knowledge. He can see how the man' s thought-forms 
grow day by
day more definite, so that the life poured into them from above 
becomes
fuller and fuller, and reacts more and more strongly upon their 
originator,
even though that originator may be entirely unconscious of it; and 
so, speaking
from his knowledge of the hidden side of things, the clairvoyant 
advises all
aspirants to meditate, to meditate regularly, and to continue their 
meditation
with the certain conviction that (quite irrespective of their own 
feelings)
they are producing results, and steadily drawing nearer and nearer to 
their goal. 
Old Dr. Watts
is alleged to have perpetrated a hymn which said that “Satan finds 
some mischief
still for idle hands to do”. He probably referred exclusively to 
the physical
world; but the wise man knows that that is true at any rate with 
regard to the
mind. The time when an evil thought springs up in the mind is the 
time when it
is lying fallow and unoccupied. Therefore the surest way to avoid 
temptation is
to keep steadily at work, and since even the most indefatigable of 
mortals
cannot work always, it is well that for those dangerous moments of 
leisure he
should have a safeguard in the shape of a definite subject upon which 
his mind
always instinctively falls back when not otherwise occupied. Most men 
have some
such background, but often its nature is trivial or even undesirable. 
There are men
who have impure thoughts at the back of their minds all the time, 
and others
have jealousy or hatred. Many mothers are thinking all the time of 
their
children, and the man in love usually has a portrait of his charmer always 
on view,
often indeed occupying the foreground as well as the background of his 
mind. 
When a man has
attained to the dignity of having the right sort of background to 
his life, he
is in a position of far greater security. For some natures religion 
provides such
a background; but these natures are rare. For most men only the 
study of the
great truths of nature can provide it-- only that knowledge of the 
scheme of
things which in these modern days we call Theosophy. When that great 
plan is once
grasped, the mind and the higher emotions are both engaged on it, 
and the man'
s whole nature is so filled with it that no other thought, no other 
attitude is
possible to him but that of the intense desire to throw himself and 
all that he
has into that mighty plan, and to become, as far as in him lies, a 
fellow-worker
together with the Deity who conceived it. 
So this
becomes the background of his mind-- the dominating thought from which 
he has to
turn away in order to attend to the details of outer life-- to which 
he gladly and
instantly returns when his duty to those details is done. When he 
can attain to
this condition he is in a position of far greater safety from evil 
thought, and
he need have no fear that this constant preoccupation with higher 
things will
in any way mar his efficiency down here. He will do his daily work 
better, not
worse, because he is constantly going behind it to something far 
greater and
more permanent; for it is precisely the men with this higher 
stimulus for
a background who have been the most efficient workers of the world. 
As Keble puts
it 
There are, in
this loud stunning tide 
Of human care
and crime, 
With whom the
melodies abide 
Of the
everlasting chime. 
And then he
speaks of them as 
Plying their
daily task with busier feet 
Because their
secret souls a holy strain repeat. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XV 
BY PHYSICAL
ENVIRONMENT 
HOUSES 
IT is the
fashion, and not unreasonably, to attach great importance to the 
influence of
environment. When that expression is used people generally mean an 
environment
into which they are born, or one which is imposed upon them from 
without and
is in no way dependent upon their own will. There is, however, 
another
environment which is often forgotten: that which we create for 
ourselves--
the great influence produced upon us in daily life by the place in 
which we
choose to live and the objects with which we voluntarily surround 
ourselves.
One may often judge from the outside of a house something of the 
disposition
of those who inhabit it, and a man' s room is to a certain extent an 
expression of
him, for it shows his taste in books, pictures, statues, 
furniture,
wall-paper and flowers; and every one of all these things is 
constantly
reacting upon him, even though he never thinks of it. 
One who is a
student of occultism will be guided in choosing a house for himself 
by a number
of considerations which would not be likely to occur to the ordinary 
man, who
probably bases his decision principally on such facts as the size and 
the rent of
the house, whether its drains are in order, and how far it is from 
the tramway
or railway station. Such points as these naturally define the area 
of his
choice; the study of the hidden side of things, while not interfering 
with these,
suggests some additional considerations. From our point of view it 
is material
to have as much room as possible about the house-- to have it as far 
removed as
possible from its neighbours. Once more, this means no reflection 
upon the
neighbours. They may be all that can possibly be desired, yet it is 
always better
to avoid the mixture of varying vibrations. One may earnestly wish 
sometimes for
the society of one' s neighbour, and when that happens it is 
always
possible to visit him or to invite him to call. But to be always in such 
close
proximity to him as to feel every change in his aura-- that is a condition 
of affairs
which ought never to exist, although unfortunately it too often does. 
In all those
long lines of houses which are so common in our great towns, it is 
impossible,
from the occult point of view, to escape from one' s neighbour. 
Whenever he
walks up to the dividing wall, his aura must project through it, and 
it will be
seen that, with a neighbour in close contact on each side, we are 
practically
in the room with two families, whose tastes and interests may be 
absolutely
different from our own, who may have all sorts of thoughts and 
aspirations
which clash entirely with those to which we wish to devote 
ourselves.
Even a semi-detached house is better than these, for at least in that 
we share our
quarters with only one family, but the truth is that there ought to 
be no houses
but detached houses, however valuable the ground may be. Certainly 
no one who
understands the power of the unseen influences would take a house 
which is one
of a row, if he could by any possibility avoid it. The same 
difficulty
occurs with our modern flats and apartment houses. They may have many 
advantages
and their fittings may be all that can be desired, but they are 
always open
to this most serious objection. If, however, a man' s circumstances 
are such that
he must thus live in common with others, he will at least do all 
that lies in
his power to secure that these others shall be reasonably 
harmonious. 
Another
weighty matter from the occult point of view is the aspect of the house. 
Considerations
of physical health prescribe that a sunny rather than a dark 
house should
be chosen, and these are emphatically reinforced when we think of 
the higher
worlds. I have already said something as to the imperious necessity 
of sunshine
and of all that it brings with it. Not only physical disease, but 
irritability
and depression fly before the direct rays of the sun; so plenty of 
sunlight and
fresh air are the first and most prominent desiderata. 
The
influences of the immediate neighbourhood must also be taken into account. 
Under no
circumstances whatever ought a man to take a house which is near to a 
public-house,
a slaughter-house, a prison, or a butcher's shop. It is also 
eminently
undesirable to be in close proximity to the office of a pawnbroker or 
a
moneylender, or to any place where violent and acrimonious debates and 
arguments are
frequently held-- in the latter case because of the wearing effect 
of constant
jarring and angry vibrations, and in the case of the usurer because 
radiations of
sorrow and despair are always connected with his business, and 
often there
is bitter hatred as well. A club, too, should be avoided, if it 
permits
gambling. 
The type of
the previous tenants may make a great difference in the comfort of a 
house. If
they have been spendthrifts, if they have been quarrelsome, or if they 
have suffered
deeply from long-continued depression, the place may be so 
impregnated
with thought-forms of those varied types as to be a dwelling quite 
unsuitable
for any sensitive family. This difficulty, however, can be overcome 
by an
elaborate demagnetisation, if the student knows how to do it. 
Not only the
aspect of the house, as regards the points of the compass, but its 
aspect in the
other sense of the word is also worth noticing. No one should take 
a house which
is ugly, gloomy-looking, or depressing in appearance-- not only 
because of
its effect upon himself when he looks at it, but because it is 
constantly
surrounded by a cloud of thought-forms made by neighbours or passing 
strangers who
are disgusted with its appearance. Even though the house outside 
be pretty, if
there is squalid ugliness in the immediate neighbourhood, it is 
unsuitable.
Above all things to be avoided are those long and monotonous lines 
of mean and
sordid-looking houses which one may see in some London suburbs. A 
garden of
some sort is a most valuable asset. In fact, a little cottage in the 
midst of a
large garden is better than the most magnificent house which stands 
close upon
the road in the midst of a row of others. 
STREETS 
If the house
be in a street, the nature of that street is a matter of great 
importance.
If the road be paved with granite blocks or in any other way 
conducive to
noise, it should be avoided at all costs; whereas a quieter form of 
paving, such
as asphalt or wood, would count much in its favour. A street 
infested by
yelling fiends in the shape of hawkers is also unfit for the 
habitation of
anyone possessing the usual allowance of nerves-- so long as our 
government
neglects to protect us against so flagrant a nuisance. It goes 
without
saying that one should avoid a street in which there is constant heavy 
traffic or
one in the immediate neighbourhood of a railway or tram line-- near 
enough, I
mean, to suffer from the noise; for noise, as I have already 
explained, is
one of the greatest defects of our defective civilisation. 
Although
after a time a man gets used to the noise, and hardly notices it, 
nevertheless
every fresh outburst is a blow to his astral and mental bodies, and 
the effect of
this is precisely that of constantly repeated blows upon the 
physical
body-- each one may be no great matter, but after a time the cumulative 
effect hurts
exceedingly. In the physical body this would mean pain, and we 
should at
once understand it and refer it to its source; in the case of the 
astral body
it means irritability; and in the case of the mental body a feeling 
of fatigue
and inability to think clearly. But when these supervene we do not so 
readily
understand them, nor do we always assign them to their true cause. 
Consequently
the neighbourhood of any building which is either noisy or noisome 
with smoke or
chemicals (as a factory might be) is to be sedulously avoided. 
Many of my
readers may be so situated that it is impossible for them to take all 
these
recommendations into consideration, and I offer them only as a guide to 
what is
desirable when it can be had. If a man who is entirely unfettered is 
about to
choose a house or a site for a house, I should advise him to be 
governed in
his selection by what I have said above; but I know well that most 
people are
practically limited as to the range of their choice by the question 
of rent,
convenient access to their work, and a number of other personal 
reasons. In
such cases a man must simply balance the advantages and 
disadvantages,
and do the best that he can, taking it as the result of his own 
actions in
the past that he cannot do better. 
PICTURES 
A matter in
which a man has usually much greater liberty is the decoration of 
his room, and
it is one of considerable importance to him. For example, the 
pictures
which we hang on the walls of our homes are exercising all the while an 
unnoticed
influence upon us, not only because they keep the expression of 
certain ideas
constantly before our eyes, but also because the artist puts a 
great deal of
himself, of his inmost thought and feeling, into his work, and the 
effect of all
that thought and feeling inheres in the picture and radiates from 
it just as
surely as scent inheres in and radiates from a rose. There is a 
hidden side
to every picture-- the conception which was in the artist' s mind 
and heart.
That conception, when he formed it, expressed itself clearly in 
astral and
mental matter, even though he may have succeeded but partially in 
bringing his
idea down to the physical world. 
Every true
artist will acknowledge that, however excellent his work may be, it 
invariably
falls short of what he intended and expected. Yet the conception, as 
he thought it
out, exists really and vividly in the mental world, and the 
feelings and
emotions which he endeavoured to express exist in the astral realm, 
and these,
which we may call the unseen counterparts of the picture, are always 
radiating
vibrations of their own character, whatever that may be, and are 
therefore
producing a never-ceasing effect upon those who live within their 
influence. 
Manifestly, therefore,
it behoves us to be careful as to the nature of the 
objects of
art which we gather around us. We must avoid all pictures whose 
subjects are
mean, sordid or terrible, however accurately or powerfully those 
subjects may
be delineated. It is well also to avoid even those which, though 
harmless in
themselves, are likely to suggest impure thought to undeveloped 
minds,
because such thought-forms will hang about the picture and act as a 
constant and
baneful influence. The modern craze for inane representations of 
the female
face and figure is from this point of view distinctly to be 
deprecated.
So also is that form of artistic realism which sees only the darkest 
side of life,
and recognises nothing as natural unless it be decadent and 
depraved. 
Pictures of
sordid scenes of low life, of peasants drinking in an ale-house, of 
battle scenes
or of huntsmen gathered together to slaughter an unfortunate fox: 
all these
will be avoided by the wise man. He will be careful to surround 
himself only
with such pictures as are ennobling, soothing, helpful, those which 
shed upon him
and his an influence tending ever to happiness and peace. 
Beautiful
landscapes and sea-views are usually best of all; pictures also of 
grand old
cathedrals-- magnificent buildings with peaceful associations; 
sometimes a
portrait or imaginary figure, if the face be really a fine one, but 
never under
any circumstances one which suggests sorrow, anger or pain. 
In religious
pictures, for example, the crucifixion, and the garden of 
Gethsemane
must never appear, but the risen and radiant Christ or a reasonably 
attractive
presentment of the Virgin and Child are admissible. In the same way 
with statues;
only those should find a place which are of exquisite beauty, in 
connection with
which there could never be the least thought of impurity. A man 
should think
not only of himself, but of servants and possible visitors. No 
decent person
could have thoughts other than the purest in connection with any 
picture or
statue whatever; but if such a thing hangs or stands where others may 
see it, it is
useless to ignore the fact that low-class minds will form 
low-class
images, and so an object which to us is noble and beautiful may come 
to radiate
abominable influences. 
Care must be
exercised with regard to photographs. Private friends are of course 
admissible,
or a public man whom one admires; but on no account should the 
figures of
actresses be introduced, as they always attract the most undesirable 
thought-forms
from hosts of impure-minded people. A praiseworthy custom is to 
have in a
prominent position the best available portrait of the ruler of the 
country, and
to surround it constantly with waves of affectionate and loyal 
thought, for
in this way it will radiate an influence of loyalty and devotion 
upon all who
enter the room. 
CURIOSITIES 
Many people
like to surround themselves with all sorts of curious little 
objects--
figures, pieces of pottery, carvings in ivory and ebony and so on. 
Most of these
things are harmless enough, though it means a great deal of 
trouble to
keep them scrupulously clean, and unless they are so kept, they 
become a
nuisance of an aggravated type. But with regard to some of these little 
mementos a
certain amount of caution is desirable. Many of such things are old, 
and some of
them have a history attached to them-- sometimes a terrible history. 
It is widely
known, for example, that a lady in London had in her house for some 
time an
Egyptian mummy-case, the influences connected with which were of so 
serious a
character that she was speedily forced to get rid of it altogether, 
because of a
series of disasters which overtook all who came into contact with 
it. That is
an extreme case, but other kinds of curiosities also have 
undesirable
or mischievous auras. 
Many such
objects tell their own story, though the owner is often unaware of it. 
A sensitive
person sometimes finds landscapes which are entirely unknown to him 
or scenes
from some foreign land starting up unbidden in his mind. These may 
come from
various sources. They may be mere pictures formed by the imagination, 
his own or
that of some other person in the neighbourhood, either dead or 
living; they
may be examples of casual clairvoyance at a distance; but they may 
be, and often
are, instances of unintentional psychometry, and can be traced to 
some object
in the room. 
For every
body, of whatever nature it may be, carries within it the power of 
showing, to
those who can see, pictures of its past history, and sometimes these 
come to the
surface unexpectedly. Some are good and some are bad; some are 
harmless and
others are actively unpleasant. When a man acquires some ancient 
object of
unknown history, he has usually no means of telling immediately 
whether it
will prove helpful, harmful or negative, but if he watches carefully 
he will soon
see. Certain types of curiosities are obviously undesirable from 
the outset--
such things, for example, as spears, swords, daggers, or anything 
which may
have been connected with bloodshed. 
BOOKS 
To a
discerning eye a man shows his nature in his choice of books-- a choice 
which is of
great importance to him. A man reads a book; he lays it aside and 
perhaps
forgets it; but nevertheless it lies there on his table or his 
book-shelf
and it continues to pour upon him a steady influence, whether for 
good or for
evil. Many books, it is true, have no pronounced influence, and may 
therefore be
considered as neutral. But if a book has done us good, its 
influence
will usually continue to be for good, unless indeed it happens that we 
outgrow it
altogether, and in that case its influence might possibly be a kind 
of
retardation. 
The main
thing is to avoid definitely evil books-- horrible, neurotic studies of 
characters
which are better left unstudied, tales of unnatural and most 
unpleasant
women who are always hovering as near as they dare to the edge of 
impropriety
of some sort, stories of doubtful morality, of shady transactions, 
or of blank
inanity. All these are things for which a sensible man will spare no 
room on his
book-shelves, because they are not worth reading in the first place, 
and they
certainly radiate an impure and unwholesome influence in the second. 
The great
criterion in the formation of a library is that only sane and healthy 
books should
be admitted, for books are specially strong centres of 
thought-forms,
and their unnoticed influence in a man' s life is often a 
powerful one.
They should be not too many, but emphatically good of their kind. 
FURNISHING 
There is
hidden side to even so homely a question as that of furniture and 
colour
decoration, since every colour has its own special rate of vibration, and 
some of these
rates are helpful to man, while others are distinctly a hindrance. 
Broadly
speaking, light and delicate tints are good, while heavy, coarse and 
dark colours
are usually to be avoided. Some consideration should also be given 
to the
purpose for which the room is intended; for example, certain shades of 
red might be
not out of place in a dining-room, but would be far from desirable 
in a room
consecrated to sleep or to meditation. 
JEWELLERY 
Another
adjunct of ordinary life, in which the hidden side is of great 
importance,
is jewellery. On the whole, the wearing of jewellery is to be 
discouraged,
because, though every stone has its own special property and 
influence,
the most prominent effect of nearly all of them is to excite bitter 
envy and
covetousness in the hearts of others. Quite a number of women seem to 
be unable to
contemplate a jewel without becoming filled with an inordinate 
greed to
possess it, so that there is scarcely a stone of any beauty or value 
which is not
the centre for many converging streams of jealous longing. 
In the case
of the great historical jewels we have the additional complication 
that all
kinds of ghastly crimes have been committed in connection with them, 
and they are
therefore usually objects of horror rather than of beauty to any 
sensitive person.
The jewel represents the highest development of the mineral 
kingdom, and
consequently its power of receiving and retaining impressions is 
much greater
than is the case with almost any other object. The Gnostic gems 
employed in
initiation ceremonies two thousand years ago still remain vigorous 
centres of
magnetic influence, as may be seen and felt by any sensitive person 
who will take
the trouble to examine some of those in the British Museum. 
At the spot
where any great crime has been committed, or where vivid emotions of 
fear, anger,
hatred or revenge have been in action, an astral impression is made 
which is
immediately obvious in its full horror to the clairvoyant, and is 
frequently
sensed to some extent even by persons in whom the higher senses are 
entirely
undeveloped. This is true to a still greater extent of a jewel which 
has been the
cause of many crimes, has been present at them and has absorbed the 
effect of all
the passions which prompted them. Such a jewel retains these 
impressions
with unimpaired clearness for thousands of years, and continues to 
radiate out
from itself the vibrations appropriate to them; and the psychometer 
sees around
it all these pictures of indescribable horror. The wearer of the 
jewel
frequently does not see them, but nevertheless their pernicious effect is 
constantly
exercised upon her. 
It is not
only in connection with great historical gems that this unpleasantness 
exists, for I
have come across several instances in which ordinary stones have 
been the
occasion of a terrible crime among the miners who discovered them. I 
know of one
such, in which the finder was murdered by another man, but lived 
long enough
to attach a fearful curse to the gem for the sake of which he had 
lost his
life. This curse was acting so definitely upon various wearers of the 
jewel fifty
years later, that it seemed the safest and best course to throw the 
stone into
the sea-- which was accordingly done. 
TALISMANS 
In a general
way, therefore, the occultist avoids all jewellery, and he 
certainly
never wears it for the sake of show. At the same time the fact that a 
precious
stone will retain magnetism so perfectly for so long a time, and will 
store so much
power in such a small compass, makes it a convenient object when a 
talisman is
required for any purpose. For a talisman is not, as is often 
supposed, a
mere relic of mediaeval superstition; it may be a definite and very 
effective
agent in daily life. It is some small object, strongly charged with 
magnetism for
a particular purpose by someone who knows how to do it, and when 
properly made
it continues to radiate this magnetism with unimpaired strength 
for many
years. The purposes to which such things can be applied are almost 
infinite in
number. 
For example,
many a student at the beginning of his career is much troubled by 
impure
thoughts. Naturally he sets himself to struggle against them, and 
maintains a
constant watch against their advance; but nevertheless thought-forms 
of an
objectionable nature are numerous and insidious, and sometimes one of them 
contrives to
obtain a lodgment in his mind and causes him much trouble before be 
can finally
shake it off. He may perhaps have been in the habit of yielding 
himself to
such thoughts in the past without realising the evil of it, and if 
that is so,
his thought has acquired a momentum in that direction which is not 
easy to
overcome. A talisman, strongly charged with the powerful magnetism of 
thoughts of
purity, may be an invaluable help to him in his efforts. 
The rationale
of its action is not difficult to understand. An impure thought 
expresses
itself as a certain definite set of undulations in the astral and 
lower mental
bodies, and it can find entrance into a man' s vehicles only when 
they are
either comparatively at rest or vibrating so feebly that its impact can 
readily
overpower the existing rate of motion, and take its place. The talisman 
is heavily
charged with an exactly contrary rate of oscillation, and the two 
cannot
co-exist. One of them must overpower the other and bring it into harmony 
with itself.
The impure thought has probably been made by some casual person, 
not usually
with any definite intent; it is generally simply a suggestion or 
reminiscence
of lower passions. It is not therefore a thing of great power in 
itself; but
it is likely to produce an effect quite out of proportion to its 
intrinsic
strength, because of the readiness with which the average person 
accepts it
and responds to it. 
The talisman,
on the other hand, has been intentionally charged for a definite 
purpose by
some one who knows how to think; and this is a matter in which 
definite
training makes so much difference that the lightest thought of a man 
who has
learnt how to think is far more powerful than a whole day' s desultory 
musings on
the part of an ordinary man. So, when the two streams of thought come 
into contact,
there is not the slightest doubt as to which will vanquish the 
other. If we
can suppose that the wearer of the amulet forgot his good 
resolutions,
and actually wished for a time for the impure thought, no doubt he 
could attract
it in spite of the talisman, but he would be conscious all the 
time of great
discomfort arising from the discord between the two sets of 
vibrations. 
In most cases
the man who is really trying to do better falls only because he is 
taken off his
guard. The impure thought creeps in insidiously and has seized 
upon him
before he is aware of it, and then he quickly reaches the condition in 
which for the
moment he does not even wish to resist. The value of the talisman 
is that it
gives him time to recollect himself. The disharmony between its 
undulations
and those of the wandering thought, cannot but attract the man' s 
attention,
and thus while he wears it he cannot be taken unawares, so that if he 
falls he
falls deliberately. 
Again, some
people suffer much from apparently causeless fear. Often they are 
quite unable
to give any reason for their feelings; but at certain times, and 
especially
when alone at night, they are liable to be attacked by extreme 
nervousness,
which may gradually increase to positive terror. There may be 
various
explanations for this. Perhaps the commonest is the presence of some 
hostile
astral entity who is persecuting the victim-- sometimes in the hope of 
obtaining
through him some sensations which he desires, sometimes in the 
endeavour to
obtain control over him and obsess him, sometimes for sheer 
mischief and
impish love of demonstrating his power over a human being. Here 
again is a
case in which the mediaeval remedy has a distinct practical value. 
Naturally,
the talisman against impurity would not avail in this case, for quite 
a different
sort of motion is required. What is wanted in this case is a centre 
strongly
charged with vibrations expressive of courage and self-reliance-- or, 
if the wearer
is of the devotional type, with thoughts of the protective power 
of his
special deity. 
For an amulet
has a double action. Not only does it operate directly by means of 
the waves
which it radiates, as we have just described in the case of impurity, 
but also the
knowledge of its presence usually awakens the faith and courage of 
the wearer.
In the case of a talisman against fear, such as we are now 
considering,
the two lines of action will be clearly marked. Courage expresses 
itself in the
mental and astral bodies by the strength and steadiness of their 
striations,
and by the calm, steadfast shining of the colours indicating the 
various
higher qualities. When fear overpowers a person all these colours are 
dimmed and
overwhelmed by a livid grey mist, and the striations are lost in a 
quivering
mass of palpitating jelly; the man has for the time quite lost the 
power of
guiding and controlling his vehicles. 
The
vibrations of strength and courage steadily radiating from the talisman are 
quite
unaffected by the feelings of the wearer, and when the first tremblings of 
fear begin to
manifest themselves they find a difficulty in their way. If 
unopposed,
they would steadily increase, each augmenting and strengthening the 
other until
their power became irresistible. What the talisman does is to 
prevent them
from reaching this condition of irresistible velocity. It deals 
with them at
the commencement, while they are still weak. The resistance which 
it opposes to
them is precisely the same in kind as that which a gyroscope 
opposes to
any effort to turn it aside from its line. It is so determinedly set 
in motion in
one direction that it will sooner fly to pieces than allow itself 
to be turned
into any other. Suddenly to bring such a power as this into 
conflict with
unreasoning panic would probably result in the complete shattering 
of the astral
body concerned; but if the gyroscopic force of the talisman is 
already
working before the alarm is felt, its determined persistence along its 
own lines
checks the first beginnings of fear, and so makes it impossible for 
the person
ever to reach the later stages of panic terror. 
That is its
direct operation; but it works also indirectly upon the mind of the 
wearer. When
he feels the first beginnings of fear stirring within him he 
probably
recollects the amulet and clutches at it, and then there arises within 
him the
feeling: “Why should I fear so long as I have with me this strong centre 
of
magnetism?” And so, instead of yielding to the vibrations and allowing them 
to lengthen
themselves until they become unmanageable, he calls up the reserve 
strength of
his own will and asserts himself as master of his vehicles, which is 
in truth all
that is necessary. 
There is a
third possibility in connection with a talisman, which is in some 
cases even
more powerful than the other two. The object, whatever it may be, has 
been strongly
magnetised by some individual, by the hypothesis a person of power 
and
development, and therefore also probably highly sensitive. That being so, 
the talisman
is a link with its creator, and through it his attention may be 
attracted.
Under ordinary conditions its connection with its originator is of 
the
slightest, but when the wearer is in desperate circumstances he sometimes 
actually
calls upon the maker, much in the way in which the mediaeval devotee 
when in
difficulties invoked the assistance of his patron saint; and that call 
will
unquestionably reach the maker of the amulet and evoke a response from him. 
If he is
still living in the physical world, he may or may not be conscious of 
the appeal in
his physical brain; but in any case his ego will be conscious, and 
will respond
by reinforcing the vibration of the talisman by a strong wave of 
his own more
powerful thought, bearing with it strength and comfort. 
Many ignorant
men would scoff at such an idea as relic of mediaeval 
superstition,
yet it is an actual scientific fact which has been demonstrated on 
hundreds of
occasions. So far as its direct action goes, a talisman will work 
only in the
direction in which it is made to work; but its indirect action on 
the faith of
the possessor may sometimes take unexpected forms. I remember once 
making a
charm for a certain noble lady, in order to protect her against spasms 
of extreme
nervousness and even positive fear which occasionally swept over her 
when alone at
night. She told me afterwards that this amulet had been of the 
greatest
assistance to her in an emergency which I certainly did not contemplate 
when I made
it. 
It appears
that on a certain occasion she was driving an exceptionally spirited 
horse (I
believe that her husband made it a sort of boast that he never used 
horses which
anybody else could drive) in a dog-cart, through a forest. The 
horse took
fright at something or other, got the bit between its teeth and 
dashed madly
off the road, and started at a wild gallop among the tree trunks. 
The groom on
the back seat was so certain that they were all destined to 
immediate
death that he threw himself off as best he could, and was sorely 
injured by
the fall; but the lady declares that her thought at once flew to the 
charm which
she was then wearing, and she says that she knew absolutely that she 
could not be
killed while, as she expresses it, under its protection. This utter 
certainty
kept her perfectly cool and collected, and she steered that dog-cart 
through the
forest with consummate skill. She declares that on the whole she was 
certainly in
the air more often than on the ground as the wheels bounded over 
roots and
crashed through the bushes. But nevertheless she held on bravely until 
the horse
became tired, and she was able to regain control of it. She thanked me 
enthusiastically
for saving her life by means of the charm; but the truth is 
that it was
not the direct action of the talisman, but the strength of her faith 
in it, which
enabled her to gain so splendid a victory. That was undoubtedly the 
main factor;
there may have been a certain amount of direct action also, because 
the stilling
effect of the strong vibration of the talisman would catch any 
dawning
feeling of fear and calm it, though I had prepared it to deal rather 
with first
symptoms gradually arising than with so sudden an emergency as that. 
There are
various articles which are to a large extent natural amulets. All 
precious
stones may be said to belong to this category, for each has a distinct 
influence
which can be utilised in two ways. First, the influence necessarily 
attracts to
it elemental essence of a certain kind, and also all such thoughts 
and desires
as naturally express themselves through that essence; and secondly, 
the fact that
it has these natural peculiarities makes it a fit vehicle for 
magnetism
which is intended to work along the same line as those thoughts or 
emotions.
Suppose, for example, it is desired to drive away impure thought. 
Impure
thought means usually a complex set of vibrations, but set on the whole 
in a certain
definite key. In order to resist them a stone should be chosen 
whose natural
undulations are inharmonious with that key, so that they may offer 
to the impure
impulses the greatest possible obstacle. If it is intended to make 
a talisman
against those impure thoughts, a stone which naturally offers 
resistance to
them is the vehicle which can most easily be loaded with the 
opposing
influence. 
The
vibrations of the particles of the stone are on the physical level, while 
those of the
emotions are on the astral level, several octaves higher; but a 
stone, the
particles of which move naturally on the physical plane in a key 
which is
identical at this level with the key of purity on higher levels, will 
itself, even
without magnetisation, operate as a check upon impure thought or 
feeling by virtue
of its overtones; and furthermore, it can be readily charged 
at astral or
mental levels with the undulations of pure thought or feeling which 
are set in
the same key. 
There are
instances of decided magnetism of this kind in the vegetable kingdom 
also. A good
example of this is the rudraksha berry, of which necklaces are so 
frequently
made in India. The oscillations connected with it, especially in its 
small and
undeveloped state, render it specially suitable for magnetisation 
where
sustained holy thought or meditation is required, and where all disturbing 
influences
are to be kept away. The beads made from the tulsi plant are another 
example,
although the influence which they give is of a somewhat different 
character. 
An interesting
set of natural talismans are those objects which produce strong 
scents. It
has already been mentioned that incense produces a strong effect 
along these
lines, the gums of which it is composed being specially chosen 
because the
radiations which they give forth are favourable to spiritual and 
devotional
thought, and do not harmonise with any form of disturbance or worry. 
It is
possible so to combine ingredients as to make an incense which will have 
the opposite
effect; this was sometimes done by the mediaeval witches, and is 
done to-day
in Luciferian ceremonies. On the whole, it is generally desirable to 
avoid coarse
and heavy scents, such as that of musk or of sachet powder, as many 
of them are
closely in tune with sensual feelings of various kinds. 
An object not
intentionally charged for that purpose may sometimes have the 
force of a
talisman. A present received from some loved one, if it be of a 
nature that
can be worn or carried about by the recipient, constantly serves to 
him as a reminder
of the donor, and often so far gives the sense of the donor' s 
presence as
to prevent him from doing things that he would not do if that donor 
were looking
on. I have heard of more than one case in which a man, wearing a 
ring or a
chain given to him by his mother, was thereby saved from committing 
some
questionable act, or indulging in some improper pleasure, because, just as 
he was about
to yield to the temptation, his glance fell upon the object, and 
that brought
to him so strongly the thought of his mother and of what she would 
feel if she
could see him, that he at once abandoned his project. A letter 
carried about
in the pocket has been known to serve the same purpose, for a man 
feels: “How
can I do this thing with her very letter in my pocket-- how can I 
take that
into surroundings where I should be ashamed that she should see me?” I 
remember one
case in which such a struggle ended in the man tearing up the 
letter and
throwing it away in order that he might be able to indulge himself; 
but usually
the opposite result is produced. 
THINGS WE
CARRY ABOUT 
Thus it will
be seen that the objects which we carry about with us in our 
pockets may
have decided influence upon us. A man' s watch, for example which he 
has always
with him, becomes strongly charged with his magnetism, and if after 
wearing it
for some years he gives it or lends it to another, that other person, 
if he be at
all sensitive, will be constantly reminded of his friend, and 
conscious of
a feeling as though he were present. I remember that a prominent 
member of the
Theosophical Society, long since dead, used often to make presents 
of watches to
those disciples in whom he was specially interested, charging them 
strongly
before he gave them with whatever quality he thought that the recipient 
most needed.
As his young friends naturally wore those watches, he succeeded in 
several cases
in effecting in them considerable changes of character. 
MONEY 
One
unpleasant thing (from one point of view) which we all have to carry about 
with us is
money. It will naturally occur to the humorist to say at this point 
that he could
do with a good deal of that kind of unpleasantness. I quite 
understand
that point of view, and I recognise that in our present civilisation 
it is
desirable to possess a certain amount of filthy lucre, and even necessary 
to carry at
least a little of it about with one, so as to be prepared for 
unexpected
emergencies. Nevertheless, the fact remains that while money in the 
abstract is
no doubt a good thing to have if one knows how to use it wisely, 
money in the
concrete form of coins and notes is frequently charged with the 
worst
possible magnetism. New notes and new coins are harmless enough, but after 
they have
been in circulation for a little time they acquire not only all sorts 
of physical
dirt but also many varieties of influences, nearly all of them 
exceedingly
unpleasant. 
The reason
for this is not difficult to understand, for the magnetism 
surrounding
the coin is produced by the thoughts and feelings of those who have 
handled it or
carried it. First and as a general principle, without taking any 
special
feeling into consideration, any coin which has been handled and carried 
by a large
number of people must inevitably be charged with a great mixture of 
different
kinds of magnetism. It is, therefore, from the point of view of 
vibrations, a
centre of discord around which all kinds of warring influence are 
boiling up in
the wildest confusion. The influence of such a thing as this is 
disturbing
and irritating, and it has, though to a much stronger degree, exactly 
the same
effect upon the astral and mental bodies as has the continued 
bombardment
of radium emanations upon the physical body. 
Several
scientific people have discovered by painful experience that to carry a 
fragment of
radium in one' s waistcoat pocket presently produces a peculiarly 
obstinate
sore upon the skin underneath it; just like that, but larger in 
proportion,
is the effect produced on the higher vehicles by the presence of a 
much-used
coin. Copper and bronze coins are in this respect the worst of all-- 
except
perhaps old and dirty bank-notes. Gold and silver coins absorb the 
influences
which surround them, but their qualities make them somewhat less 
receptive to
the worst characteristics. From all this it emerges that it is 
better not
perpetually to have in one' s pocket more money than is actually 
necessary. I
have known students who partially met the difficulty by carrying 
copper or
bronze coins only in a purse so strongly magnetised as to be 
practically
impervious to the unpleasant vibrations. Many countries have 
realised the
unsuitability of those metals for daily use, and are adopting 
nickel as a
substitute; and nickel, while not so ` noble' a metal as gold or 
silver, is
much less receptive to evil influence than copper. A noble metal, in 
alchemical
parlance, is one which answers readily to the wave-lengths of the 
higher
thought, but is resistant towards the lower kinds. 
CLOTHING 
We come now
to a subject upon which all the considerations dictated by the sight 
of the higher
worlds, and the additional knowledge which occultism gives, are in 
direct
contradiction in nearly every way to the fashions at present prevailing 
in the West.
In a course of researches, extending over many years, it has 
happened to
me to see clairvoyantly a large number of the civilisations of the 
world, in all
parts of it and at widely diverging periods, and it has also come 
within my
duty to examine the inhabitants of at least two other planets. The 
various races
have differed widely in customs and costumes, but never in any of 
them at any
time have I seen anything approaching in hideousness the dress which 
is at present
the fashion in Europe for males. 
It is
supremely ugly, ungainly and unhealthy, and the only point (so far as I 
can see)
which can be urged in its favour is a certain measure of practical 
convenience.
It is tight-fitting, whereas all clothing ought to be loose. It is 
made
principally of materials which are from the inner point of view most 
undesirable,
and the only colours (or lack of colours) which custom permits are 
precisely the
worst that could possibly be chosen. Our outer garments are black, 
or brown, or
grey (and one has only to study Man Visible and Invisible in order 
to see what
those hues signify), or if a shade of blue is sometimes permitted, 
it is so dark
that one can scarcely distinguish that it is blue at all. 
There are
certain practical reasons for all these unpleasant features. Our 
clothes are
tight-fitting because we wish to be ready at any moment to exhibit 
activity in
running, jumping or riding. They are made of heavy woollen materials 
in order to
keep out the cold; and they are made in these ugly dark colours in 
order to
disguise the dirt which accumulates upon them after even a single day' 
s wear, owing
to the facts that we are not yet sufficiently civilised to make 
all kinds of
fires consume their own smoke, and that we have not yet learnt to 
make a road
that shall be free from dust and mud. If anyone desires to know what 
a load of
unspeakable filth he is carrying about with him, let him take any old 
coat or other
outside garment which he has discarded, and wash it thoroughly in 
a tub of
water, as underclothing is washed; the colour of the water will be a 
revelation to
him. 
From the
occult point of view nothing will justify a man for existing in such a 
condition of
filth. Clothing which is not only washable but frequently washed is 
absolutely
the only kind that is permissible from the standpoint of the thinker. 
I know quite
well that, as things stand in Europe or America, it is practically 
impossible
for the most earnest student to do in this respect what he knows he 
ought to do;
for the slavery of custom is so absolute that a man cannot live 
among his
fellows unless he follows it. It is strange that this should be so, 
and it is
most discreditable to those nations; it absolutely disposes of their 
claim to be
considered liberal or free-minded people; but so it is. Information 
as to what
ought to be done in these matters is therefore unfortunately useless 
to our
Western brothers, because they simply cannot do it; but fortunately there 
are other
countries in the world which, though perhaps equally under the slavery 
of custom
along other lines, happen to have a better custom in regard to this 
particular
matter, and so information about it may be of use to their 
inhabitants. 
A man dresses
primarily for decency and for the sake of his own comfort; but he 
ought surely
also to consider the aspect which he presents to his 
fellow-creatures,
and even for that reason alone the superlative ugliness of our 
present
costume is a positive sin. 
I am aware
then that, for the Westerner at least, I am suggesting counsels of 
perfection
which cannot be followed, when I say what occultism prescribes in the 
matter of
dress. I am not speaking of the customs of any race or religion, or of 
what any man
or set of men happens to approve. I am simply prescribing what is 
dictated by a
scientific consideration of the higher side of life and the unseen 
elements
which are all the time entering into it. The prescription then is as 
follows: 
All dress
should be loose and flowing, never under any circumstances exercising 
pressure upon
any part of the body, and no part of it which touches the skin 
should ever
be composed of wool or leather. How then are we to keep ourselves 
warm? Well,
the Chinese, who at least in the North of their country suffer under 
a most
appalling climate, contrive to solve the difficulty by using garments of 
padded silk
or cotton, something like eiderdown quilts; and it is quite certain 
that it is
within the resources of science to supply us with a number of 
efficient
substitutes for wool, if there were only a demand for them. 
Old-fashioned
doctors in England used to have a craze for recommending the 
wearing of
wool next to the skin-- the very last thing that ever ought to be 
allowed to
touch it; for, as has been well said by a doctor: “It is an animal 
product which
can never be properly cleaned; it creates unnatural heat; it 
becomes
felted and chokes the pores; it absorbs moisture very slowly and dries 
very slowly,
therefore retaining the moisture of the body; it enervates and 
enfeebles the
system, encourages chills and colds, and promotes rheumatism; it 
often causes
(and always irritates) rashes and other skin diseases; it cannot be 
boiled
without destroying the fabric, and it always shrinks.” From the occult 
point of view
the condemnation of it is even more emphatic, and includes various 
other
reasons. 
Clothes ought
to be of brilliant colours, not only for the sake of giving 
pleasure to
the eyes of our neighbours, but also because of the effect of the 
colours upon
ourselves. The present system of dressing entirely in subfusc hues 
is
undoubtedly productive of a vast amount of depression and stagnation of 
thought, and
by it we entirely lose the different effects which may be produced 
upon the
disposition by the wearing of different colours. When we have advanced 
sufficiently
for a reasonable costume to become possible, it will be of interest 
to discuss
the qualities of the colours, and which are most suitable for 
particular
types of people; at present it would be of little use. 
In many
oriental countries the customs in these matters are far more rational. 
In Burma, for
example, when lecturing on a festival day at the Great Golden 
Pagoda in
Rangoon, I have seen my audience stretch before me glowing like a 
splendid
flower-bed with variegated colours. The delicately-coloured satins worn 
by the
Chinese there on festive occasions produce in the glowing tropical 
sunlight an
effect not easy to be surpassed, and one cannot but wonder how it is 
that we, who
certainly belong to a later race than these people, and may not 
unreasonably
claim to have advanced distinctly beyond them in many of the 
departments of
civilisation, should yet have fallen so utterly and lamentably 
behind them
in this particular of dress. 
The worst
features of it are really quite recent. I myself can remember in my 
childhood
seeing a few survivals of the ordinary costume of a century ago, when 
brilliant
colours were still worn by gentlemen on other occasions than in the 
hunting-field.
It has really taken us only about a century to reach the lowest 
possible
level in these matters; how long will it take us to rise again to 
beauty and
gracefulness and dignity? 
The subject
of clothing leads us to bed-clothing; but there is not much to be 
said upon
this, save that from the occult standpoint feather-beds or thick and 
heavy
mattresses are always undesirable, and that if it be necessary that wool 
should form
part of the covering, at any rate precautions should be taken that 
it does not
touch the skin of the sleeper; for if at other times it is 
inexpedient
to bring into close contact with ourselves that which is saturated 
with animal
influences, and is indeed animal in its very essence, it is a 
thousandfold
more serious to do this when the body is asleep and so specially 
amenable to
such influences. A bed made of interlaced webbing, such as is 
commonly used
at Adyar, is one of the best from the occult point of view. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XVI 
BY MENTAL
CONDITIONS 
THOUGHT-FORMS
MAN clothes
himself in other worlds than this, though in a somewhat different 
way. For in
the astral world he draws round himself a veritable garment of the 
feelings
which are habitual to him, and in the mental world a similar garment of 
the thoughts
in which he commonly indulges. I should like to make it thoroughly 
clear that in
saying this I am not speaking symbolically, but am describing an 
objective
fact-- objective as far as those higher levels are concerned. It has 
been repeatedly
explained that our feelings and thoughts generate definite forms 
in the matter
which they respectively affect, and that these forms follow the 
thoughts and
feelings which made them. When those thoughts and feelings are 
directed
towards another person, the forms actually move through space to that 
person and
impinge upon his aura, and in many cases blend themselves with it. 
When,
however, the thoughts and feelings are self-centred (as I fear we must 
admit that
the majority of many people' s are) the forms do not pass away, but 
remain
clustering round the man who has given birth to them. 
Thus we find
that every man has built for himself a shell of such thought-forms, 
a veritable
clothing at their level; thus all this thought and feeling is 
constantly
reacting upon the man himself. He gave it birth; he made it out of 
himself; and
now it is external to him and capable of reacting upon him, though 
he knows
nothing of its propinquity and its power. Floating thus around him, the 
forces which it
radiates seem to him to come altogether from without, and he 
often regards
as a temptation from some external source, a thought which is in 
reality only
a reflection of one of his own of yesterday or of yesterweek. “As a 
man thinketh,
so is he.” And this is largely because his own thoughts are the 
nearest to
him and are constantly playing upon him, so that they have a better 
opportunity
than any others to act upon him. 
The constant
radiations which pour forth from his thought-forms impregnate the 
inanimate
objects round him, so that even the walls and furniture of his room 
reflect upon
him the thoughts and feelings to which he is accustomed. If a man 
sitting in a
certain chair in a certain room devotes himself for many days to 
some train or
type of thought, he fills the surrounding objects, the chair, the 
desk, the
very walls of the room, with vibrations which express that type of 
thought. He
unconsciously magnetises these physical objects, so that they 
possess the
power of suggesting thoughts of the same type to any other person 
who puts
himself in the way of their influence. Many striking instances of this 
may be found
among the collections of stories which refer to such matters. I 
have already
given one of a number of persons committing suicide, one after 
another, in
the same prison-cell, because the place was reeking with that idea, 
and they felt
it acting upon them as a force from without, which they thought 
themselves
compelled to obey. 
From these
considerations emerge two main ideas on the subject of our feelings, 
which at
first sight appear absolutely contradictory: first, that we must be 
most careful
about our feelings; secondly, that they do not matter at all. But 
when we come
to seek for the explanation of this apparent contradiction, we see 
that it lies
in the fact that we are not using the word ` feelings' in quite the 
same sense in
the two statements. We must be careful what feelings we allow to 
arise within
us; we need pay no attention to the feelings which press upon us 
from outside.
True; but in the first case we mean original feelings-- thought 
-feelings
which emanate from our own minds; in the second case we mean moods, 
which come
without any volition on our part. These latter we can afford to 
disregard
utterly. The mood is the result of our thought of yesterday, and we 
cannot alter
that thought or affect it in any way; our business is with the 
original
thought of to-day, for that thought is within our control, and when it 
suggests
itself we can receive it and adopt it, or we can reject it. And the 
same is true
with our feelings. You say you cannot help your feelings; that is 
what the
ordinary uncomprehending person thinks, but it is not in the least 
true. You can
help them and control them if you will. 
MOODS 
We have all
had the experience of feeling moods of different sorts coming over 
us. On one
occasion we feel joyful without knowing why, and on another occasion 
depressed and
pessimistic. There may be many reasons for this latter feeling; 
indigestion
in some shape or other is the commonest. It comes often, too, from 
lack of
exercise, lack of sunlight, lack of open air; and too much night-work; 
but also
sometimes it is simply the reaction upon us of previous thoughts of our 
own-- and
sometimes of the previous thoughts of someone else. It may be due to 
the presence
of an astral entity who is in a condition of depression, and 
contrives to
communicate his vibration to our astral bodies. But whatever may be 
its cause,
the depression must be thrown aside, and we must endeavour to go on 
with our work
precisely as though it did not exist. 
This is
largely a matter of feeling, and that makes it difficult to take a 
coldly
scientific view of it; yet it is precisely that which we must endeavour 
to do. These
moods of ours make no difference whatever to the facts of life. Why 
therefore
should we allow them to influence us? Our future destiny lies before 
us, and is
entirely unaffected by the fact that we take at one time an 
optimistic
and at another a pessimistic view of it. Why then should we allow 
ourselves to
be worried to-day merely because we were worried yesterday, or 
because some
astral entity feels worried? The hidden side of all these moods 
shows them to
come from various causes; but it also shows us clearly that, 
whatever the
causes may be, our duty is to go on with our work, and pay 
absolutely no
attention to them. 
RECURRENT THOUGHTS
In yet
another way, too, we must carefully watch the action of recurring 
thoughts.
What at first was merely an unfounded suspicion-- perhaps an unworthy 
suspicion--
may presently solidify itself into a prejudice; not because there is 
any additional
evidence for it, but simply by virtue of its own recurrence. We 
adopt, often
without due reason, a certain attitude towards some person or 
thing, and
then, merely because we have taken it up, we persist in it; and even 
though we may
be quite aware that at first it was nothing but the merest 
suspicion, by
virtue of having thought it over and over again we believe it to 
be
well-founded, and proceed to reason from it as though it were a fact. Thus 
often
prejudices are born, and we have already explained that prejudices are 
fatal to
progress. 
Again, this
reaction of thought-forms tends to set up in us certain qualities. 
Many a man
has begun by being, quite rightly, careful as to the expenditure of 
his money;
but the anxious thought which he has devoted to the consideration as 
to how he
should economise has reacted upon him again and again until it has 
become the
dominant idea in his mind-- until it has generated within him the 
quality of
avarice. It is not only inward upon its maker that the thought-form 
pours its
influence; it is also radiating outwards. And the effect of that 
outward
vibration is to attract other similar thought-forms which strengthen the 
action of the
original. It is therefore necessary for us to be on our guard in 
these
matters, to watch carefully the thoughts and feelings which arise within 
us, and to
distinguish between those which come from above, from the ego, and 
those which
merely flow in at lower levels. 
FALLING IN LOVE
Another
instance of the repeated action of a thought-form is what is commonly 
called
falling in love. Of this there are at least two clearly marked varieties, 
which are
commonly defined by novelists as “gradually growing into love” and as 
“falling in
love at first sight”. This latter phenomenon (if it ever really 
occurs, as I
am inclined to think that it does) must mean the recognition by the 
ego of one
who was well known in previous incarnations; but the former and more 
ordinary
variety is usually due to the intensified action of repeated thought. 
To speak with
any degree of common sense on this subject is likely to render one 
unpopular,
because each man regards his lady-love as the only woman in the world 
who is really
an epitome of all the virtues, and is prepared to maintain that 
proposition
at the sword-point if necessary. Yet if it were possible for him to 
take an
unimpassioned and reasonable view of the matter (which of course it is 
not), he
would have to admit that, while she is all this to him, there are other 
ladies in the
world who appear to occupy the same position in the minds of other 
people--
people who are, in the abstract, just as intelligent and as capable of 
forming an
opinion on such a matter as he himself is. 
Why then, where
there is no question of a tie formed in a previous incarnation, 
should he
select a certain young woman out of all the rest of the world, to be 
for him an
embodiment of all that is noble and beautiful? The truth is 
unromantic; it
is largely a question of propinquity. The normal young man, 
thrown by
circumstances into close relations with the normal young woman, is 
likely to
fall in love with her; and though be would never believe it, if he had 
been thrown
into similar intimate relations with any one of a hundred other 
equally
normal young women, he would have fallen in love with that other just as 
easily! 
In the first
place a young lady makes upon him an agreeable passing impression; 
if he did not
meet her again, it is probable that after a few days he would 
cease to
think of her; but if he sees her often, his thought-form of her becomes 
strengthened
and he begins, though he does not know it, to see more deeply into 
her than he
did at first. And this process continues until he learns to see in 
her the
divine reality which lies behind us all. It lies behind all equally, but 
he has learnt
to see it only in her, and therefore for him it takes her form; 
and when once
he has seen it through that form, to him at any rate it can take 
no other. And
so he dowers her in his imagination with all sorts of virtues and 
all splendid
qualities-- which are in her, as they are in us all, yet may not be 
manifested
through her to other eyes than his. They are in her, because her ego, 
like all
others, is a spark of the Divine Fire; and in Him these qualities 
inhere and
exist in perfection. The manifestation of them in this physical world 
may be no
greater in her than in a hundred others, but he sees them in her 
because it
was through her that he first learnt to realise them at all. 
And so in
truth, from the occultist' s point of view the rhapsodies of thousands 
of lovers
about the respective objects of their adoration are all true, even 
though they
seem mutually exclusive; for the truth is that that which they all 
love is One,
though for each It manifests through a different vehicle, and 
because they
with their partial vision cannot separate the One from Its 
manifestation,
they endow that special manifestation with qualities which belong 
not to it but
to That which shines through. So all are right in the qualities 
which they
see, and wrong only in claiming exclusive manifestation through the 
form through
which they have learnt to see them. 
Often the
impartial outsider finds it difficult to understand, looking at it 
from the
point of view of the physical world, what a certain man saw in a 
certain woman
to induce him to desire to make her his wife. The answer is that 
the husband
saw in her something which is not visible on the physical level; 
something
which is to be discerned only by looking much deeper than that, and 
his
attraction to her was that it was through her that that aspect of the Divine 
was revealed
to him. 
People often
say that the lover' s imagination gives to his prospective bride 
qualities
which in truth she does not possess. The occultist would say that the 
lover is
right; she does possess them, because God, of whom she is a part, 
possesses
them. And for her lover she is a channel through which he can see Him. 
But others
for whom she is not the channel cannot see those qualities through 
her, but may
at the same time be seeing them through someone else. 
One great
advantage of this is that, if the woman be a good woman, she tries to 
live up to
the level of her lover' s thought-form of her. She is fully conscious 
that he is
idealising her, that he endows her with qualities which she does not 
believe
herself to possess; but in order that he may not be disappointed, in 
order that
she may be worthy of his love and trust, she tries hard to develop 
these
qualities in herself-- to be what he thinks her to be. And because in 
essence she
is what he thinks her, because in the Monad behind her those 
qualities do
exist, she is often successful, at least to some extent, in 
bringing them
down into manifestation, and thus the confidence of the lover is 
justified,
and his faith in her brings forth her higher self and helps her on 
the path of
evolution. 
All this, be
it observed, works both ways, and the woman tries to find her ideal 
through a man
just as does a man through a woman. The human being as at present 
constituted
usually finds his ideal most readily through some one of the 
opposite sex,
but this is not invariably so. Sometimes a younger man adores an 
elder one,
and through his admiration and affection for him obtains his glimpse 
of that true
world which we call the ideal; and sometimes the same feeling 
exists
between a younger woman and an experienced matron. 
Since that
real ideal is behind us all alike, the mystic who lives wrapped in 
solitary
contemplation may find it just as perfectly within himself. It is the 
tendency of
every man to seek it, whether through his own self or through 
another, and
the feeling which moves him to seek it is the divinely implanted 
force of
evolution, the desire to find and to return to the Divine from whom we 
came. For the
force which at this early stage can only manifest itself in this 
way is the
very same that later on will bring the man to final union. As Saint 
Augustine
beautifully put it: “God, Thou hast made us for Thyself, and our 
hearts are
ever restless till they find their rest in Thee.” 
UNSET BLOSSOM
A beautiful
variant of this, which is often misunderstood, is the “falling in 
love” of
children. Unsympathetic adults often ridicule it, because they know 
that in nine
cases out of ten its object is quite unsuitable, it does not last, 
and it comes
to nothing. All that is true, yet in essence it is the same feeling 
as that which
comes in later life, and it is usually a far purer and more 
unselfish
form of it. If you could penetrate the secret heart of a young lover 
of ten or
twelve, you would find that often he does not even dream of marrying 
his
prospective bride and settling down comfortably to be happy for ever after; 
his idea is
rather to sacrifice himself for her, to exhibit splendid heroism in 
her defence,
and die at her feet. Absurdly romantic, no doubt, yet not without 
its good
effect upon that young heart-- indeed, upon both the young hearts 
concerned. 
To pour out
such thought-forms as these is indeed well, both for their creator 
and their
recipient, and they are preparing both for the maturer but not more 
beautiful feeling
which comes in later life. Have you ever seen the vast amount 
of unset
blossom on our cherry-trees or plum-trees? One might think of all that 
as a useless
waste of Nature' s energy, because it never comes to fruit. Yet the 
botanist tells
us that it is by no means useless-- that it has an important 
purpose to
serve in drawing up the sap and thereby strengthening the tree, and 
so preparing
the way for finer fruit in the autumn than could have existed 
without it.
These innocent young love-affairs of childhood have precisely the 
same effect;
they strengthen the nature and prepare it for the fuller 
development
which comes later. 
OCCULTISM AND
MARRIAGE 
Yet in spite
of all that I have said above-- in spite of the beauty and 
exaltation of
the love affair-- can we from the point of view of occultism 
advise our
students to marry? I think the best answer is to be found in the 
words of our
great founder, Madame Blavatsky: 
It depends on
the kind of man you mean. If you refer to one who intends to live 
in the
world-- one who, even though a good, earnest Theosophist and an ardent 
worker for
our cause, still has ties and wishes which bind him to the world-- 
who, in
short, does not feel that he has done for ever with what men call life, 
and that he
desires one thing and one thing only-- to know the truth, and to be 
able to help
others-- then for such a one I say there is no reason why he should 
not marry, if
he likes to take the risk of that lottery where there are so many 
more blanks than
prizes. ( The Key to Theosophy, Section xiii, “Theosophy and 
Marriage”.) 
But if the
man means to be more than this, if he intends to devote his whole 
life to
Theosophical work, and aspires to become a pupil of one of the great 
Masters of
the Wisdom, then we cannot advise him to divide his attention between 
that world
and this. Again Madame Blavatsky tells us: 
Practical
occultism is far too serious and dangerous a study for a man to take 
up, unless he
is in the most deadly earnest, and ready to sacrifice all , 
himself first
of all , to gain his end. I am only referring to those who are 
determined to
tread the path of discipleship which leads to the highest goal. ( 
Ibid.,
Section xiii. ) 
There is
nothing to prevent a man from loving his ideal as much as he will; the 
mistake is in
the desire for sole possession, in the animal passion which 
prevents him
from being satisfied to worship at a distance, in the jealousy 
which is
annoyed that others should love and worship also. The student who 
wishes to
devote himself even to the uttermost must keep himself free from all 
entanglement--
free for the work; and let him not, as has been the case with 
many, be
deceived by the specious reasoning of his passion, and fall under the 
delusion that
he can work better in chains. But, remember once more, this is 
only for the
man who is absolutely determined to go on to the end. Short of such 
high resolve,
there is a vast amount of good work that may be done-- and even of 
progress that
may be made-- by taking advantage of the troubles and trials of 
the ordinary
worldly life, and endeavouring to live one' s highest, even though 
it be in
chains. 
Another
excuse which is sometimes put forward is that it is necessary that 
bodies should
be provided for the high-class in-coming egos who will be needed 
to do the
work; it is argued that students can surely provide these better than 
the good
people of the outer world. This is probably so, and therefore in 
certain rare
cases students have been ordered to marry for this very purpose; 
but it is
surely wisest to wait for such an order from a source that cannot be 
questioned.
Meanwhile we have plenty of good married members who are perfectly 
capable of
providing bodies for the occult workers of the future. Truly there 
can be no
greater honour than to be selected by the karmic Deities to provide 
those, except
the still greater honour of training them when they are provided. 
Let it be the
work then of the student who still retains his ties with the world 
to provide
those bodies, and let those who feel themselves capable of the higher 
life help in
their training. For verily no man can serve two masters, and the 
path of
occultism demands the whole energies of body, soul and spirit. 
CHANGES IN
CONSCIOUSNESS 
The human
consciousness has wonderful possibilities, and what we commonly call 
by that name
is only the fragment of it which we can use for the moment. We may 
perhaps take
an analogy from the action of our physical senses. There is an 
enormous
gamut of possible vibrations. One little group of those at a certain 
level appeals
to us as light; another little group at a much lower level appeals 
to us as
sound. We are conscious in various ways of other intermediate groups. 
But we are
fully aware from our knowledge of science that the gamut extends at 
both ends far
beyond our possibilities of dealing with it. 
We may
suppose the human consciousness to be like that gamut, and the part of it 
now in action
in the physical brain to correspond, let us say, to the block of 
oscillations
which we call sound. Following out the same analogy, we might 
suppose our
block of astral consciousness to be equivalent to the wave-lengths 
which we call
light; but here again there are many undulations capable of 
carrying
light which we cannot see-- undulations both below and above our limit 
of vision. In
just the same way, below our physical consciousness and above it, 
and below our
astral consciousness and above that, are further sets of 
vibrations to
which our consciousness might be adapted, but is not. 
There are two
ways in which it can be adapted; permanently and intentionally, by 
the
development of that consciousness so that it can receive more of those waves 
which are
above and below its normal possibilities; or temporarily, by some 
disease or
abnormality which shifts our octave of consciousness either upwards 
or downwards.
An example of the first way is the development of psychic powers 
of all sorts.
But it is unnecessary for me to take up the consideration of those 
here, as I
have already done it in other books-- Clairvoyance, The Other Side of 
Death and
Some Glimpses of Occultism. Various drugs have the power of 
temporarily
changing or widening the scope of consciousness, and therefore they 
enable us to
see things normally unseen by us, sometimes at the sacrifice of our 
ordinary
power of vision for the time, and sometimes without robbing us of that. 
What we call
our physical consciousness is not a fixed and determinate amount 
which has
always been the same. It has gradually grown to be what it is, and 
many things
which were formerly within its purview have now passed below it-- or 
more
accurately, it has so developed itself as to rise above them. Its level is 
gradually
rising; our descendants will be able to see colours which at present 
are invisible
to us-- higher, purer and more delicate colours. Whether they will 
at the same
time lose the possibility of appreciating some of the coarsest of 
the colours
which we now know, is uncertain. 
Delirium
shifts the place of this consciousness, and often altogether shuts out 
from us the
everyday world which we know, giving us sometimes in its place 
memories of
our past-- not only of the past of this life but of the 
longer-forgotten
part of the human race. Such sight as delirium gives often 
includes the
power to see the sufferer' s own thought-forms, or those of others, 
and sometimes
also to see the astral and etheric creatures which are around him. 
In the case
of delirium-tremens, for example, the snakes and other horrors are 
almost
invariably creatures of low type which are feasting upon the fumes of 
alcohol
exuding from the body of the drunkard. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XVII 
BY OUR
AMUSEMENTS 
CHILDREN' S
GAMES 
THERE is a
hidden side even to a thing usually considered so unimportant as the 
games of
children. If the parents think of these at all, it is probably chiefly 
from the
physical point of view. They either disapprove of games in a general 
way as
causing destruction of clothes or enticing the boy away from his school 
work, or they
grant them a qualified approval as at any rate keeping the boy out 
of their way
for a certain number of hours, or as affording him physical 
exercise
which they recognise as a necessity for the development of his body. 
Sometimes
also they are particular as to his associations from a social point of 
view, and
occasionally also from a religious or moral standpoint; but it is 
probable that
most parents regard play as a sort of necessary evil. 
They do not
in the least realise that a game, if played as all games ought to 
be, is a
lesson whose value can hardly be overestimated, for it inculcates as 
nothing else
can the virtues of honour, unselfishness and chivalry. Honour 
first,
because of the necessity of abiding with uttermost loyalty by the rules 
of the game,
because of the realisation that a seeming success gained by an 
infringement
of them, no matter how slight, would be dishonestly gained, and so 
would be no
success at all, but the deepest disgrace, whether the delinquency 
were known to
others or only seared into the memory of the culprit himself. 
Unselfishness,
because for success in many games it is absolutely necessary that 
the unit
shall be subordinated to the whole, and that each player shall seek not 
his own
glorification, but the benefit of the side upon which he plays. No one 
who watches
the instant, unhesitating obedience so willingly given in any good 
school to the
captain of an eleven at cricket, or to the coach of a boat' s 
crew, can
fail to perceive that this is a most valuable discipline, teaching 
each to
accept loyally and to perform thoroughly the duty assigned to him, 
looking to
the good of the club rather than to his personal desires. Chivalry, 
because of
the rule, invariable among all gentlemanly boys, of giving the 
opponent the
benefit of any doubtful point, and of declining to profit by an 
accidental
advantage. Evil indeed is it for a country when such honour, such 
unselfishness,
such chivalry are not to be found among its children, for the 
child is
father to the man, and as the twig is bent so the tree inclines. 
The great
thing to impress upon the child is that though he must always do his 
best for his
own side, in reality it does not matter who wins, as the exercise 
obtained and
the pleasure of the game are the same in any case. It should be 
explained to
him that he must act not only fairly, but also graciously and 
hospitably in
his play; that he must always be ready to applaud good play on the 
other side,
that he must never exult over those who are defeated, but must 
always
endeavour to find excuses for them and minimise the disappointment which 
they will
naturally feel. 
True, others
will not always do this for him, but he need not be in any way 
disturbed or
annoyed by that, since it simply shows that they have not yet 
reached the
level at which they can put themselves mentally in the place of 
their
opponents. It is natural that a boy should take pleasure in the victory of 
his school or
his side, but he must learn not so to show that pleasure as to 
hurt in any
way the feelings of another. 
Never for a
moment must he find pleasure or amusement in anything that hurts or 
annoys
another living creature, whether it be a school-fellow or an animal. The 
tendency
which some ill-taught children show to tease an animal or another child 
is a
manifestation of cruelty, and it must be explained to the child that 
cruelty of
any sort is one of the worst of crimes. The child must remember 
always to put
himself in thought in the place of the other, and so to manifest 
the uttermost
brotherhood, kindliness and love, to be willing always to put 
aside what he
wants in order to give pleasure to other children, and to do what 
they like. 
I noticed an
interesting example of chivalry some time ago when attending the 
College
boat-races at one of our great Universities. A certain College had held 
unquestioned
for some years the chief place in aquatic affairs, but on this 
occasion
another College succeeded in gaining several places and finally 
attained the
coveted position of Head of the River, defeating its previous 
holders.
Naturally there was great rejoicing, and a triumphal procession was 
formed in
which not only the banner of the winning boat, but also its oars and 
rudder were
carried home in exultant ovation. In their jubilant march the crowd 
of
undergraduates of the victorious College had to pass along the river and in 
front of the
long line of boat-houses, and suddenly I observed that the cheering 
mob fell
silent, furled its flag and lowered its oars and obviously endeavoured 
to efface
itself and hastily assume as unobtrusive a demeanour as possible. 
Asking what
was the matter, I was told that they were approaching the boat-house 
of the
College which had so long held supremacy, and that it would of course be 
in bad taste
to seem to glory over them by parading the conquest before them. 
Therefore our
victors for the time tried to look as much as possible like 
ordinary
students going quietly home; but their magnanimous attempt was at least 
partially
defeated, for before they could steal past they were observed by the 
defeated crew
and their fellow-members, who immediately rushed out from their 
boat-house to
cheer them lustily, while the captain of the defeated boat ran to 
the great
flagstaff of the boat-house and hauled down his College flag in token 
of cheerful
submission to fate. As a spontaneous expression of good feeling on 
the part of
these young fellows just fresh from school, this pleased me greatly, 
and I could
not but see that the public opinion among them was a healthy and 
enviable one.
SPORT 
Unfortunately
the amusements of adults are not always as harmless and wholesome 
as those of
children. There is nothing to be said against cricket or golf; and 
rowing and
swimming are always admirable, as bringing the etheric, astral and 
mental bodies
into closer contact with the nature-spirits of the water and their 
influences,
which make an agreeable contrast with those to be found upon land. 
Still more is
this true if the swimming is done in the sea, for the variety 
there is
greater. Such change of impressions is always good, as it sets in 
vibration new
parts of the various bodies, and so adds greatly to their general 
health. 
But it is
impossible to reprobate too strongly the revolting cruelty that is 
sometimes
misnamed sport. Needless to say, the crime connected with the murder 
of
defenceless animals far outweighs any benefit that may be incidentally 
derived from
fresh air and exercise. The whole thing is horrible beyond words, 
and it is
difficult to understand how it is possible for civilised and otherwise 
kind-hearted
people to take part in such abomination-- and not only to take part 
in them, but
even apparently to enjoy the bloodshed and the cruelty, and to vie 
with one
another in the diabolical work of destruction. No country in which such 
things happen
can claim to be really civilised, and we cannot doubt that when 
our
descendants look back on this period they will find it incredible that we 
actually
indulged in such wholesale and gratuitous barbarities. 
All forms of
hunting incur similar reprobation. Even apart from the pain, misery 
and death
inflicted upon the fox, the deer, the hare, or the otter, there is the 
whole
question of the wickedness incurred in the training of dogs for such 
purposes. The
dog is one of the domestic animals which are given into man' s 
care in order
that he may advance their evolution. He does not help it, but 
fatally
hinders it, when he trains the animal to be more ferocious than the wolf 
or the
tiger-- when he teaches it to kill not for food, as do the wild beasts, 
but for the
mere lust and pleasure of killing. This wanton destruction of the 
wonderful
gift of life, “which all can take but none can give,” will surely 
bring a heavy
retribution on the individuals who take part in it, and on the 
country whose
public opinion permits it. 
One terrible
thing connected with this is that our children imitate our 
thoughtless
cruelty, and so young souls who would naturally be kind and helpful 
are led into
the commission of these crimes. We can hardly wonder that a boy 
fishes or
hunts, or sets his dog to kill some living creature, when he 
constantly
sees his father doing the same thing. We so engrain cruelty into the 
young that
even after their death it persists in the astral world, and we find 
the same
tendency in the dead boy as in the living-- to hunt something about, 
and to cause
it pain and terror. True, unless the shameful example set before 
him has made
him thoroughly wicked, it is easier in the astral world to invoke 
the boy' s
good feelings than it is on the physical, because there we can show 
him in a
moment exactly what is the real sensation of the hunted creature, for 
it is
apparent in changings and flashings of colour. So we can appeal directly 
to the boy' s
better nature by showing him precisely what he has been doing. In 
the astral
world we have also the advantage that we can deflect the cruel 
hunting
instinct and the passion for destruction into the safe and useful 
channel of
breaking up horrible thought-forms, such as those of devils, which 
are made by
the unfortunate people who suffer under the curse of Calvinistic or 
similarly
blasphemous religious teaching. These thought-forms, though not 
dangerous
when understood, are often a source of great terror to the ignorant, 
and as they
have no real evolving life in them, there is no sin involved in 
destroying
them. Such work develops both chivalry and courage in the boy, 
inducing him
to go about as a knight-errant, helping and protecting the weak, 
and facing
for their sake what appear to him the most formidable odds. 
FISHING 
Fishing is
another manifestation of the lust for slaughter, and many people 
indulge in
this who would recoil from other forms of enjoyment in which the 
bloodshed is
more obvious, for here, instead of killing or crippling a bird by a 
shot, they
only take the creature out of its element and leave it to die slowly 
by
suffocation. Difficult though it is to understand how it can be so, I really 
believe that
most of this atrocious cruelty is simple thoughtlessness, and the 
baneful
effect of the collective thought-forms clustering round a custom which 
has come down
to us from the barbarous times of the Dark Ages. 
HORSE-RACING 
Horse-racing,
again, is another so-called sport for which there can be nothing 
but
condemnation. The mere running of horses against one another, if they are 
not struck or
otherwise ill-treated, is no more objectionable than a race 
between boys,
or men; but as matters stand now, the whole mass of ideas which 
cluster round
the turf is objectionable to the highest degree, and from the 
occult point
of view the atmosphere of a race-course is a veritable hell. All 
the cheating
and trickery, all the mad anxiety and avarice, all the hatred and 
deliberate
falsehood, make the whole scene an indescribable nightmare of 
horrors. Yet
decent men will show themselves in such a place and, even worse 
still, will
subject their wives and daughters to its appallingly evil magnetism. 
Ignorance
again, of course, and thoughtlessness; in intention nothing worse than 
that; but the
results are serious nevertheless. 
GAMBLING 
Everyone who
takes part in horse-racing has his share of the responsibility of 
all the
wickedness of the gambling connected with it, and of the ruin to 
thousands
which it brings in its train. Even on the physical level the evils of 
gambling and
of betting are surely obvious enough; but with the added sight of 
higher worlds
they are a hundred times more objectionable. Men plunge into this 
foolishness
presumably for excitement; but this is a form of excitement which 
arouses all
the worst passions of men, and can do nothing but harm to them, for 
the moral
effect on the man who wins is usually at least as evil as upon him who 
loses. 
Readers of
Thought-Forms will remember the awful pictures there given of the 
thought-forms
of the winner and of the loser; those who can see such things for 
themselves
will need no one to inform them of the evils of gambling. It can 
never be
anything but evil in any of its forms; but, if one must pronounce 
between them,
the kind which is pursued at the notorious Casino of Monte Carlo 
is decidedly
the less objectionable of the two, for there the gambling is at 
least fair,
and the victim knows his chances beforehand; also, he wins or loses 
to an
impersonal entity-- the bank, and, so does not obviously and intentionally 
ruin his
fellow-men. 
From the
occult point of view, betting, alcohol-drinking, corpse-eating and the 
slaughter of
living creatures in sport, are the great blots upon the fair fame 
of the
English nation. If those could be removed we should have made several 
long steps on
the way towards civilisation. 
Although
occultism has nothing but unequivocal condemnation for all forms of 
so-called
sport, which in any way whatever injure any living creature, it has 
not a vestige
of the puritan point of view that everything which gives pleasure 
is
necessarily wrong. On the contrary, the promotion of pleasure ranks in the 
mind of the
occultist next to the promotion of progress. It is good to give 
pleasure to
anyone; it is far better still to help him on the path of progress; 
but it is
best of all when it is possible to combine the two. So the occultist 
welcomes
harmless amusement; his only proviso is that it shall be harmless-- 
that it shall
not involve pain or suffering or even discomfort or ridicule for 
any living
being. 
THE THEATRE 
The hidden
side of a performance at the theatre depends entirely upon the nature 
of the
performance. The passions portrayed by the actors, not being in any sense 
real, produce
practically no effect on higher matter, but unfortunately there 
seems to be
not infrequently a great deal of conceit connected with acting, and 
a great deal
of jealousy of other actors. So far as these exist they represent 
undesirable
influences. The principal effect to be seen at a theatre is the 
result of the
feelings excited in the audience, and these again depend upon the 
character of
the play. 
There seems
almost always to be an undercurrent of sensuality directed towards 
the principal
actresses, but the people who make-up the majority of the audience 
usually
follow the plot of the play and feel a mild amount of hatred for the 
villain and a
sort of gentle pleasure when the hero succeeds in over-throwing 
his
machinations. There are some ingenuous people who really throw themselves 
heart and
soul into the play-- to whom it is for the time exactly like real 
life. These
send out strong emotions of various kinds as the play progresses, 
but usually
their number is not sufficient to count for much in the general aura 
of the
theatre. There are unfortunately many modern plays which are in 
themselves of
a highly objectionable nature, and the thought-forms of those who 
patronise
them are naturally unpleasant in character. 
One may sum
up the matter by saying that to many people a visit to the theatre 
is like the
reading of a novel, but it presents the different characters to them 
in a manner
which makes them more real to them. There are others, on the other 
hand (perhaps
more imaginative people), who when they read a story make for 
themselves
thought-forms of all the characters, and these forms seem to them far 
more vivid
and suitable than any representation in the theatre can be. Such 
people are
always disappointed when they go to see a dramatised representation 
of one of
their favourite stories. 
Others who
have not the power of imagination to clothe the characters with 
definite
forms for themselves are very glad to have this done for them by the 
dramatist' s
art. For these-- and they are the majority of theatre-goers-- a 
visit to the
theatre is no more harmful than the reading of a novel, except for 
the necessary
unpleasant surroundings-- the tinge of sensuality in the audience, 
and of
conceit and jealousy in the actors, to which I have previously referred, 
and the
spending of a couple of hours in a vitiated atmosphere and in the midst 
of a more or
less excited crowd. From the occult point of view these latter 
considerations
usually rather outweigh the advantage of any possible enjoyment 
that may be
obtained from the performance. 
FOURTH
SECTION 
HOW WE
INFLUENCE OTHERS 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XVIII 
BY WHAT WE
ARE 
THE
INTERRELATION OF MEN 
WE have been
examining the influences to which we are liable, and we have also 
considered
how, by reactions which we do not notice, we are constantly 
influencing
ourselves. Now we come to the third great branch of our subject, the 
question of
how we influence others. What has been already said is sufficient to 
show us that
invariably we must influence them, whether we wish to do so or not; 
for if, as we
have already seen, all these varied influences are constantly 
playing upon
and affecting us, it is quite clear that what we do in our turn 
must be part
of the influence which is acting on those near us. We are all so 
closely interrelated
that no man can live his life to himself alone, and every 
thought or
action is producing its result on others-- not only because people 
see our
actions in the physical world and imitate them, but because they are 
affected by
the unseen radiation of the vibrations of our thoughts and feelings. 
We influence
people in three ways: by what we are; by what we think and desire; 
by what we
say and do. 
First by what
we are; because what we are expresses itself in our various 
vehicles, and
they are constantly pouring out waves of influence which tend to 
reproduce
themselves-- that is, to infect other people. So whatever we wish 
other people
to be, we ourselves must be first of all. What then is the idea 
which we
should set before ourselves in this matter? Many would say “To be 
good,” and of
course that is the first consideration; but surely we may take 
that for
granted. Anyone who has got so far as even to think about the duty of 
influencing
the world, must by the hypothesis be trying his best to live a good 
life. Let us
then assume the good intention and the earnest endeavour, and let 
us see what
we can do to improve the world around us by our example. I think the 
first point
is the duty of happiness and peace. 
THE DUTY OF
HAPPINESS 
Let us take
happiness first. Unquestionably the Deity means man to be happy. 
Happiness is
a duty; I do not mean merely philosophical calm, though assuredly 
that is a
good thing; I mean active happiness. It is a duty, not only to the 
Divine Power
and to ourselves, but also to others, as I shall presently show; 
and it is a
duty not difficult of accomplishment, if we will only exercise the 
inestimable
faculty of common sense. Yet the majority of men and women are 
obviously
often unhappy; why? 
Unhappiness
is a mental condition, so the suffering which comes from sickness or 
accident is
not strictly part of our subject, yet there is often a mental side 
even to that,
which may be greatly minimised by the application of reason. 
Eternal Justice
rules the world, and therefore nothing can, by any possibility, 
happen to us
that we have not deserved; and as that eternal Justice is also 
eternal Love,
everything that happens to us is intended to help us forward in 
our
development, and is capable of doing so, if we will only take it in the 
right way and
try to learn the lesson which it is meant to teach. Since this is 
true-- and
those who have probed most deeply into the mysteries of life and 
death know
that it is-- to grumble or to repine at suffering is manifestly not 
only to waste
much force uselessly, but also to take an entirely inaccurate and 
foolish view
of life, and to lose what is designed as an opportunity. 
Let us
consider some of the more frequent causes of this prevalent unhappiness, 
in order to
see how it can be avoided. Man has displayed exceeding ingenuity in 
inverting
reasons for being miserable, but most of them can be classed under one 
or other of
four heads-- desire, regret, fear and worry. 
Desire --
Much unhappiness arises because people are perpetually yearning for 
what they
have not-- for riches, for fame, for power, for social position, for 
success in
all sorts of undertakings. I do not forget that contentment may 
sometimes
denote stagnation, and that what has been called “divine discontent” 
is a
prerequisite to progress. That we should unceasingly endeavour to improve 
ourselves, to
better our position, to augment our power of helpfulness to 
others-- all
this is good and estimable, and tends to our evolution; but most of 
our
discontent is anything but divine, because it is not a desire for 
improvement
and usefulness, but rather a mere selfish craving for the personal 
enjoyment
that we expect to derive from riches or from the exercise of power; 
and that is why
so much misery results from it. Press forward, indeed, as 
ardently as
you will; but be happy in your pressing, be cheery under failure, 
and never be
too busy to hold out a helping hand to your fellow-pilgrim. 
Among the
most poisonous of the manifold forms of this great weed desire, are 
those called
envy and jealousy. If men would only learn to mind their own 
business and
leave other people alone, many fertile sources of unhappiness would 
disappear. What
is it to you that another man has more money or a larger house, 
that he keeps
more servants or owns better horses, or that his wife is able to 
indulge in
more astonishing vagaries of millinery and dressmaking? All these 
things afford
him a certain kind of opportunity-- a test of his capacity for 
using them
aright; he may be succeeding or he may be failing, but in any case 
you are not
his judge, and your business is clearly not to waste your time in 
criticising
and envying him, but to be quite sure that you yourself are 
fulfilling to
the uttermost the duties which appertain to your own state of 
life. 
Perhaps of
all the passions which poor human nature cherishes, jealousy is the 
most
ridiculous. It pretends to love fervently, and yet objects that any other 
should share
its devotion; whereas unselfish affection but rejoices the more 
when it finds
the object of its adoration universally appreciated. Jealousy 
loathes,
above all things, to see evidence of the fondness of for its idol, and 
yet it is
always eagerly watching for confirmation of its suspicions, and will 
take any
amount of trouble to prove to itself the existence of what most it 
hates! See
then how much utterly unnecessary unhappiness is escaped by the man 
who is strong
enough and sensible enough to mind his own business, and refuses 
absolutely to
be drawn into the meshes either of envy or jealousy. 
Curb desire
and cultivate contentment; let your wants be few and simple and your 
ambitions for
progress and usefulness rather than for possessions; and you will 
find that you
have eliminated one of the most fruitful and potent causes of 
misery. 
Regret -- It
is pitiable to think how many thousands every day are suffering 
needless,
hopeless, useless agonies of regret. You had money perhaps, and it is 
gone; you had
a position, and you have lost it. That is no reason why you should 
squander your
strength and your time in unavailing lamentation. Start at once to 
earn more
money, to make for yourself another position. “Let the dead past bury 
its dead,”
and turn your thought to the future. 
Yes, and this
is true even though the loss has been caused by your own fault, 
even though
that which you regret be a sin. You may have failed, as many a man 
before you
has failed, but you have no time to waste in remorse. If you have 
fallen, do
not lie mourning in the mud, but get up at once, and go on your way 
more
circumspectly. Set your face forward, and push resolutely ahead. If you 
fall a
thousand times-- well, get up a thousand times and go on again; it is 
absolutely
useless to sink discouraged by the way. There is just as much reason 
for the
thousandth attempt as there was for the first, and if you persevere 
success is certain,
for your strength grows by repeated effort. A Master once 
said: “The
only repentance which is of the slightest value is determination not 
to commit the
same sin again.” The wise man is not he who never makes mistakes, 
but he who
never makes the same mistake twice. 
The greatest
of all regrets, I know full well, is that for “the touch of a 
vanished
hand, and the sound of a voice that is still”. Yet even that most 
sacred of
sorrows may be dispelled, if we are willing to take the trouble to 
understand.
When those whom we love pass from the sight of our physical eyes, we 
are no longer
left gazing at a blank wall, clinging with desperate faith to 
nebulous
uncertainty, hoping against hope for some far distant reunion, as were 
so many of
our forefathers. 
Science now
treads where ignorance once resigned, and anyone who is ready to 
examine the
available evidence may convince himself that death is but the 
stepping from
one room into another, the gate of a higher and fuller life, and 
that we have
not in any sense lost our friends, as we so often erroneously say, 
but have only
lost for the time the power to see them. A little patient study of 
the facts
soon enables us to turn from a selfish contemplation of this illusion 
of our
bereavement to the glorious certainty which opens out before those who 
are so much
dearer to us than ourselves; and thus one of the saddest of all 
forms of
unhappiness is at least greatly mitigated, even when not entirely 
removed. 
Fear -- I
suppose that only those who, like some of the clergy, have had special 
opportunities
of knowing the inner side of men' s lives, can be aware of the 
extent to
which humanity suffers from the fear of death. Many a man who shows a 
brave front
to the world, and laughs and smiles with the best, is yet groaning 
inwardly all
the while under the oppression of a secret horror, knowing that 
death must
come, dreading lest the sword should fall. Yet all this is quite 
unnecessary,
and comes only from ignorance, as indeed does all fear; for those 
who
comprehend death feel no dismay at its approach. They know that man does not 
die, but
simply lays aside his body as one lays aside a worn-out suit of 
clothes; and
to them one process is no more terrible than the other. The man who 
in this
twentieth century does not yet know the facts about death, is merely the 
man who has
not taken the pains to look into the matter, and if he suffers from 
fear of that
which does not exist, he has only himself to blame. 
Many are
haunted by the apprehension of loss of property, of lapsing into 
poverty.
There are thousands who just manage to live upon such income as they 
can earn, but
they feel that if through sickness or from any other cause 
supplies
should fail them, they would at once be plunged into direct distress. 
Even when
this danger is real, nothing is gained by brooding over it; this 
ever-present
anxiety in no way helps them; they are no whit the safer because 
this terror
hovers over them and darkens all their day. 
These poor
souls also should try to understand life, to grasp the purport of 
this great
scheme of evolution of which they find themselves a part; for when 
once they
comprehend a little of its plan they will realise that nothing comes 
by chance,
but that truly all things work together for good, and so pain and 
trouble and
sorrow cannot come unless they are needed, unless they have their 
part to play
in the development that is to be. So they will look forward with 
hope instead
of with fear, knowing that if they loyally do the best they can 
with each day
as it passes, they will have nothing wherewith to reproach 
themselves,
whatever the future may bring forth. 
Worry -- The
same considerations show us the futility of worry and grumbling. If 
the world be
in God' s hands, and if we are all working under His immutable 
laws,
manifestly our business is to do our duty in our corner, and to try to 
move
intelligently along with the mighty stream of advancement; but to grumble 
at the way in
which it is working, or to worry as to how matters will turn out, 
is obviously
the height of folly. How often we hear men say: “If it were not for 
the
unfortunate circumstances which surround me, I should be a very fine fellow 
indeed; I
would soon show you what I could do along this line or along that; 
but, cramped
as I am, how can you expect anything from me?” 
Now the man
who talks in that way has no conception of the meaning of life. What 
each man
would like best, no doubt, would be a set of circumstances which would 
give him a
chance of using such powers as he already possesses, of showing what 
he can do.
But we must remember that Nature wants to develop us in all 
directions,
not in one only; and to that end we often find ourselves thrown into 
conditions where
we must do the very thing that we would say we cannot do, in 
order that we
may learn that lesson and unfold that power, which at present lies 
latent within
us. 
So instead of
sitting down and grumbling that we are under the control of 
adverse circumstances,
our business is to get up and control the circumstances 
for
ourselves. The weak man is the slave of his environment; the strong man 
learns how to
dominate it, which is precisely what he is intended to do. 
Then again,
see how we worry ourselves about what others think of us, forgetting 
that what we
do is no affair of theirs, so long as it does not interfere with 
them, and
that their opinion is, after all, not of the slightest consequence. 
Our endeavour
must be to do our duty as we see it, and to try to help our 
fellows
whenever occasion presents itself; if your conscience approves your 
action, no
other criticism need trouble you. It is to your Father in Heaven that 
you are
responsible for your deeds, not to Mrs. So-and-so, who is peeping 
through the
blind next door. 
Perhaps the
same worthy lady says something spiteful about you, and half-a-dozen 
kind friends
take care to repeat and exaggerate it. If you are foolish you are 
mightily
offended, and a feud is set on foot which may last for months and 
involve a
host of innocent people; and then you actually try to throw the 
responsibility
for all this silly unpleasantness on the shoulders of the 
neighbour at
whose remark you chose to take offence! Use plain common sense for 
a moment, and
just think how ridiculous that is. 
In the first
place, in nine cases out of ten, your neighbour didn' t say it at 
all, or didn'
t mean it in the sense in which you take it, so that you are 
probably
doing her a gross injustice. Even in the tenth case, when she really 
did say it
and meant it, there was most likely some exasperating cause of which 
you know
nothing; she may have been kept awake all night by a toothache or a 
restless
baby! Surely it is neither kind nor dignified to take notice of a hasty 
word uttered
under the influence of irritation. Of course it was quite wrong of 
her, and she
ought to have exhibited the same angelic charity that you yourself 
always show;
I am not defending her in the least; I am only suggesting that 
because she
has done one foolish thing there is no real reason why you should do 
another. 
After all,
what harm has she done you? It is not she who is responsible for your 
annoyance,
but your own want of thought. What are her words but a mere vibration 
of the air?
If you had not heard of them you would not have felt offended, and 
yet her part
of the action would have been just the same. Therefore, the feeling 
of anger is
your fault and not hers; you have unnecessarily allowed yourself to 
be violently
excited by something which in reality is powerless to affect you. 
It is your
own pride which has stirred up your passion, not her idle words. 
Think, and
you will see that this is so. Simple, plain common sense, and nothing 
more; and yet
how few people see clearly enough to take it in that way! And how 
much
unhappiness might be avoided if we only used our brains more and our 
tongues less!
These
considerations show us that the clouds of unhappiness can be dispelled by 
knowledge and
reason; and it is unquestionably both our interest and our duty 
instantly and
vigorously to set about that dispersion. It is our interest, since 
when that is
done our lives will be longer and more fruitful; “a merry heart 
goes all the
day; a sad one tires in a mile.” Make the best of everything, not 
the worst;
watch for the good in the world, and not for the evil. Let your 
criticism be
of that happy kind which pounces upon a pearl as eagerly as the 
average
atrabilious critic flies at a flaw; and you have no idea how much easier 
and
pleasanter your life will become. There is a beauty everywhere in Nature, if 
we will only
look for it; there is always plenty of reason for gladness, if we 
will but
search for it instead of trying to hunt out causes for grumbling. 
It is our
duty, for it is thoroughly well established that both happiness and 
misery are
infectious. All who have studied these matters know that these waves 
of matter,
finer than we can see, which are continually radiating from us in 
every
direction, carry with them to those around us our feelings of joy or of 
sorrow. So if
you allow yourself to give way to sadness and despondency, you are 
actually
radiating gloom-- darkening God' s sunlight for your neighbours, and 
making your
brother' s burden heavier for him to bear; and you have no right to 
do this. 
On the other
hand, if you are yourself full of happiness, that radiant joy is 
poured upon
all who come near you, and you become a veritable sun, showering 
life and
light and love in your small circle on the earth, even as the Deity 
Himself
floods them forth through all the universe; and so in your tiny way you 
are a
fellow-worker together with Him. 
PEACE 
Behind the
active happiness there must be an abiding peace, and this also we 
must try to
radiate. The lack of peace is one of the most lamentable 
characteristics
of our age. There never was a time when man needed more sorely 
the sage
advice of S. Peter: “Seek peace and ensue it,” but the majority know 
not even in
what direction to begin the search, and so they decide that peace is 
unattainable
on earth, and resign themselves to discomfort. 
Man is living
simultaneously in three worlds, the physical, the astral or 
emotional,
and the mental, and he has in each of these a body or vehicle through 
which he
expresses himself. At all these levels, in all these vehicles, there 
should be
peace; yet with most of us that is very far from being the case. 
On the
physical earth, there is hardly a person who is not complaining of 
something,
who is not frequently ill in some way. One man' s digestion is out of 
order,
another has constant headaches, a third finds his nerves breaking down, 
and so on. In
the world of emotion matters are no better, for people are 
constantly
allowing themselves to be shaken and torn by violent feelings, 
sorrow,
anger, jealousy, envy; and so they are quite unnecessarily miserable. 
Nor are they
at peace mentally, for they are perpetually rushing from one line 
of thought to
another, full of worry and hurry, always desiring new things 
before they
have understood or utilised the old. 
The causes of
this universal unrest are three-- ignorance, desire, and 
selfishness.
Therefore, the path to peace consists in conquering these 
hindrances,
and replacing them by their opposites-- in gaining knowledge, 
self-control
and unselfishness. Men often think that the causes of their 
disquiet are
exterior to themselves, that sorrow and trouble press upon them 
from without,
not realising that nothing outside can affect them unless they 
themselves
permit it to do so. None but ourselves can ever hurt us or hinder us, 
just as no
one else can make our progress for us. As has been beautifully said 
in the East,
the path lies within us. If we take the trouble to consider it, we 
shall see
that this is so. 
To gain peace
we must first gain knowledge-- knowledge of the laws under which 
evolution is
working. When we are ignorant of these laws, we are constantly 
breaking them,
constantly pushing aside from the path of the progress of the 
race in
pursuit of some fancied private and personal advantage or pleasure. The 
steady
pressure of the law of evolution forces us back, for our own good, into 
the path
which we have left, we are restless; we struggle against it; we 
complain of
the pain and the trouble as though they had come upon us by mere 
chance, when
all the time it is our own resistance to the guidance of the law 
that causes
us to feel its constraining power. 
Our health
suffers because we so often live unhealthily; we eat the wrong food, 
we wear
unsuitable clothing, we ignore ventilation and exercise, we pass our 
lives amidst
unsanitary conditions, and then we wonder why our heads ache or why 
our nerves
and digestion fail us. The man who knows the laws of hygiene and 
takes the
trouble to obey them avoids these evils. 
Precisely the
same is true with regard to the worlds of thought and emotion; 
these have
their natural laws, and to break those laws means suffering. 
Unfortunately,
many people have the idea that all rules relating to these realms 
of thought
and emotion are arbitrary; religious teachers have made the 
disastrous
mistake of talking about the imposition of punishment for the breach 
of them, and
so have obscured the plain fact that they are just as much laws of 
nature as
those with which we are familiar in physical life, and that what 
follows upon
any infraction of them is not punishment, but merely the natural 
result. If a
man seizes a red-hot bar of iron with the naked hand, he will be 
burnt; but it
would not occur to us to describe the burn as a punishment for 
taking hold
of the bar. Yet we often do so describe results which are just as 
natural and
just as inevitable. 
Knowledge of
the great scheme of evolution and its laws not only shows us how to 
live so as to
earn peace in the future; it also gives us peace here and now in 
the present,
because it enables us to understand the object of life, to see the 
unity through
all its diversity, the glorious final triumph through the mist of 
apparently
hopeless misery and confusion. For when once the scheme is 
comprehended,
its end is no longer a matter of blind faith, but of mathematical 
certainty;
and from that certainty comes peace. 
To our
knowledge we must add self-control-- control, not merely of actions and 
words, but of
desires, emotions and thoughts. 
For all
thoughts and emotions show themselves as waves in the matter of the 
mental and
astral bodies respectively; and in both cases the evil or selfish 
thoughts are
always comparatively slow vibrations of the coarser matter, while 
the good
unselfish thoughts are the more rapid undulations which play only in 
the finer
matter. But a sudden rush of anger or envy or fear overwhelms for a 
moment the
whole of the astral body, and forces it all to swing for that moment 
at a special
rate. This soon calms down, and the body returns to its normal 
rates of
oscillation. But ever after it is a little more ready to respond to the 
particular rate
which expresses that evil passion. 
Long ago the
great Lord Buddha taught His followers that the life of the 
ordinary man
is full of sorrow, because he attaches himself to earthly things 
that decay
and pass away. He desires wealth and power or position, and he is 
discontented
because he does not gain them, or because, having gained them, he 
finds them
slipping from him. Even to his friends he attaches himself wrongly, 
for he loves
the physical body which must change and fade, instead of the real 
man who lives
on through the ages, and so when his friend lays aside the outer 
vehicle he
mourns him as ` dead' and thinks that he has lost him. 
The whole
tendency of our civilisation is to increase desire, to multiply our 
requirements.
Things which were regarded as luxuries by one generation are 
considered
necessities of life by the next, and our desire is ever reaching out 
in new
directions. If we wish for peace; we must learn to limit these desires, 
to live a
simpler life, to be satisfied with comfort without longing for luxury, 
we must
distinguish necessities from superfluities. It is better to decrease our 
wants and
leave ourselves time to rest, rather than to work ourselves to death 
in the
desperate effort to satisfy constantly increasing wants. If we are to 
have peace,
we must certainly control desire. 
Another
fertile source of disquiet is the habit that we have of interfering with 
other
people-- of perpetually trying to make them see and do things as we see 
and do them.
Many of us seem quite unable to hold a conviction on any subject, 
social,
political or religious, without immediately quarrelling with every one 
whose
convictions happen to be different, and getting up a heated argument about 
the matter.
When we learn ungrudgingly to allow others the same freedom of 
opinion on
every subject that we so unhesitatingly claim for ourselves, when we 
learn to
refrain from criticising them because they differ from us, we shall 
have advanced
far along the path which leads to peace. 
Most of all
is it necessary for peace that we should cast aside the personality 
and acquire
unselfishness. So long as we are self-centred, so long as the ` I' 
is the pivot
round which all our universe turns, we insensibly but inevitably 
expect that
it shall be the centre for others as well, and when we find that 
they are
acting without reference to us-- without recognising our paramount 
claims to
consideration-- we become irritable and self assertive, and peace 
flies far
from us. 
We must
realise that we are souls and not bodies; if we identify ourselves (as 
men usually
do) with the physical vehicle, we cannot avoid giving altogether 
undue
importance to what happens to it, and we become, to a large extent, slaves 
to it and its
perpetually changing feelings. It is to avoid such bondage that 
the Oriental
adopts the habit of thought which leads him to substitute for our 
ordinary
phrases: “I am hungry, I am tired,” the more exact statement: “My body 
is hungry, my
body is tired.” 
It is only
one step farther to see that we are equally in error when we say: “I 
am angry, I
am jealous.” The true ` I' is the self behind or within all these 
vehicles, and
that self cannot be angry or jealous, though its astral body may; 
but it is
just as much a mistake for a man to identify himself with the astral 
vehicle as
with the physical. He must not be the slave of any of his bodies 
mental,
astral or physical; these three together make up his personality, the 
temporary and
partial expression of him, but they are not he, any more than the 
clothes are
the man. 
These four
steps, then, must be taken. We must acquire knowledge by study, and 
having
acquired it, we must put it into practice; we must learn to limit our 
desires and
control our emotions, and we must eliminate the lower personality, 
and identify
ourselves as the self behind. We must substitute altruism for 
egoism; we
must realise the God within us before we can attain “the peace of God 
which passeth
all understanding”. 
That is the
path to peace. May that peace rest upon us all. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XIX 
BY WHAT WE
THINK 
THE REALM OF
THOUGHT 
A STUDENT of
occultism trains himself in the art of thinking, and consequently 
his thought
is much more powerful than that of the untrained man, and is likely 
to influence
a wider circle and to produce a much greater effect. This happens 
quite outside
of his own consciousness, without his making any effort in the 
matter. But
precisely because he has learnt the mighty power of thought it 
becomes his
duty to use it for the helping of others. In order to do this 
effectively
he must understand exactly how it acts. 
One of the
most striking characteristics of the unseen world which lies all 
about us is
the ready response of the finer type of matter of which it is 
constructed
to the influences of human thought and emotion. It is difficult for 
those who
have not studied the subject to grasp the absolute reality of these 
forces-- to
understand that their action is in every respect as definite upon 
the finer
type of matter as is that of steam or electricity upon physical 
matter. 
Every one
knows that a man who has at his disposal a large amount of steam-power 
or electrical
power can do useful work and produce definite results; but few 
people know
that every man has at his disposal a certain amount of this other 
and higher
power, and that with that he can produce results just as definite and 
just as real.
As matters
stand at present in the physical world, only a few men can have at 
their disposal
any large amount of its forces, and so only a few can become rich 
by their
means; but it is a prominent feature of the vivid interest of the 
unseen side
of life that every human being, rich or poor, old or young, has 
already at
his disposal no inconsiderable proportion of its forces, and 
therefore the
riches of these higher worlds, which are obtained by the right use 
of these
powers, are within the reach of all. 
Here, then,
is a power possessed by all, but intelligently used as yet by few; 
it is surely
well worth our while to take up the matter, to enquire into it and 
try to
comprehend it. Indeed, there is even more reason for so doing than has 
yet been
mentioned, for the truth is that to some extent we are all already 
unconsciously
making use of this power, and because of our ignorance we are 
employing it
wrongly, and doing harm with it instead of good. The possession of 
power always
means responsibility, so in order to avoid doing harm 
unintentionally,
and in order to utilise thoroughly these magnificent 
possibilities,
it will clearly be well for us to learn all that we can on this 
subject. 
THE EFFECTS
OF THOUGHT 
What then is
thought, and how does it show itself? It is in the mental body that 
it first
manifests itself to the sight of the clairvoyant, and it appears as a 
vibration of
its matter-- a vibration which is found to produce various effects, 
all of them
quite in line with what scientific experience in the physical world 
would lead us
to expect. 
1. There is
the effect produced upon the mental body itself, and we find that to 
be of the
nature of setting up a habit. There are many different types of matter 
in the mental
body, and each of them appears to have its own special rate of 
undulation, to
which it seems most accustomed, so that it readily responds to it 
and tends to
return to it as soon as possible when it has been forced away from 
it by some
strong rush of thought or feeling. A sufficiently strong thought may 
for the
moment set all the particles of one division of the mental body swinging 
at the same
rate; and every time that that happens it is a little easier for it 
to happen
again. A habit of moving at that rate is being set up in these 
particles of
the mental body, so that the man will readily repeat that 
particular
thought. 
2. There is
the effect produced upon the other vehicles of the man, which are 
above and
below the mental body in degree of density. We know that physical 
disturbances
in one type of matter are readily communicated to another type-- 
that, for
example, an earthquake (which is a movement in solid matter) will 
produce a
mighty wave in the sea (which is liquid matter), and again from the 
other side
that the disturbance of the air (which is gaseous matter) by a storm 
will
immediately produce ripples, and shortly great waves in the ocean beneath 
it. 
In just the
same way a disturbance in a man' s astral body (which we commonly 
call an
emotion) will set up vibrations in the mental body, and cause thoughts 
which
correspond to the emotion. Conversely, the waves in the mental body affect 
the astral
body, if they be of a type which can affect it, which means that 
certain types
of thought readily provoke emotion. Just as the wave in mental 
matter acts
upon the astral substance, which is denser than it is, so also does 
it inevitably
act upon the matter of the casual body, which is finer than it; 
and thus the
habitual thought of the man builds up qualities in the ego himself. 
So far we
have been dealing with the effect of the man' s thought upon himself; 
and we see
that in the first place it tends to repeat itself, and that in the 
second it
acts not only upon his emotions, but also permanently upon the man 
himself. Now
let us turn to the effects which it produces outside of himself-- 
that is, upon
the sea of mental matter which surrounds us all just as does the 
atmosphere. 
3. Every
thought produces a radiating undulation, which may be either simple or 
complex according
to the nature of the thought which gives it birth. These 
vibrations
may under certain conditions be confined to the mental world, but 
more
frequently they produce an effect in worlds above and below. If the thought 
be purely
intellectual and impersonal-- if, for example, the thinker is 
considering a
philosophical system, or attempting to solve a problem in algebra 
or geometry--
the thought-wave will affect merely the mental matter. If the 
thought be of
a spiritual nature, if it be tinged with love or aspiration or 
with deep
unselfish feeling, it will rise upwards into the realm of the higher 
mental, and
may even borrow some of the splendour and glory of the intuitional 
level-- a
combination which renders it exceedingly powerful. If on the other 
hand the
thought is tinged with something of self or of personal desire, its 
oscillations
at once draw downwards and expend most of their force in the astral 
world. 
All these
thought-waves act upon their respective levels just as does a wave of 
light or
sound here on the physical. They radiate out in all directions, 
becoming less
powerful in proportion to their distance from their source. The 
radiation not
only affects the sea of mental matter which surrounds us, but also 
acts upon
other mental bodies moving within that sea. We are all familiar with 
the
experiment in which a note struck on a piano or a string sounded on a violin 
will set the
corresponding note sounding upon another instrument of the same 
kind which
has been tuned exactly to the same pitch. Just as the vibration set 
up in one
instrument is conveyed through the air and acts upon the other 
instrument,
so is the thought-vibration set up in one mental body conveyed by 
the
surrounding mental matter and reproduced in another mental body-- which, 
stated from
another point of view, means that thought is infectious. We will 
return to
this consideration later. 
4. Every
thought produces not only a wave but a form-- a definite, separate 
object which
is endowed with force and vitality of a certain kind, and in many 
cases behaves
not at all unlike a temporary living creature. This form, like the 
wave, may be
in the mental realm only; but much more frequently it descends to 
the astral
level and produces its principal effect in the world of emotions. The 
study of
these thought-forms is of exceeding interest; a detailed account of 
many of them,
with coloured illustrations of their appearance, will be found in 
the book
Thought-Forms. At the moment we are concerned less with their 
appearance
than with their effects and with the way in which they can be 
utilised. 
Let us
consider separately the action of these two manifestations of 
thought-power.
The wave may be simple or it may be complex, according to the 
character of
the thought; but its strength is poured out chiefly upon some one 
of the four
levels of mental matter-- the four subdivisions which constitute the 
lower part of
the mental world. Most of the thoughts of the ordinary man centre 
round
himself, his desires and his emotions, and they therefore produce waves in 
the lowest
subdivision of the mental matter; indeed, the part of the mental body 
built of that
kind of matter is the only one which is as yet fully evolved and 
active in the
great majority of mankind. 
In this
respect the condition of the mental body is quite different from that of 
the astral
vehicle. In the ordinary cultured man of our race the astral body is 
as fully
developed as the physical, and the man is perfectly capable of using it 
as a vehicle
of consciousness. He is not yet much in the habit of so using it, 
and is
consequently shy about it and distrustful of his powers; but the astral 
powers are
there, and it is only a question of becoming accustomed to their use. 
When he finds
himself functioning in the astral world, either during sleep or 
after death,
he is fully capable of sight and hearing, and can move about 
whithersoever
he will. 
In the
heaven-world, however, he finds himself under very different conditions, 
for the
mental body is as yet by no means fully developed, that being the part 
of its
evolution upon which the human race is at the present moment engaged. The 
mental body
can be employed as a vehicle only by those who have been specially 
trained in
its use under teachers belonging to the Great Brotherhood of 
Initiates; in
the average man its powers are only partially unfolded, and it 
cannot be
employed as a separate vehicle of consciousness. In the majority of 
men the
higher portions of the mental body are as yet quite dormant, even when 
the lower
portions are in vigorous activity. This necessarily implies that while 
the whole
mental atmosphere is surging with thought-waves belonging to the 
lowest
subdivision, there is as yet comparatively little activity on the higher 
sub-divisions--
a fact which we shall need to have clearly in mind when we come 
to consider
presently the practical possibility of the use of thought-power. It 
has also an
important bearing upon the distance to which a thought-wave may 
penetrate. 
To help us to
understand this we may take an analogy from the action of the 
voice of a
public speaker. He can make himself heard to a certain distance-- a 
distance
which depends upon the power of his voice. In the case of a 
thought-form
that power corresponds to the strength of the vibrations. But the 
distance to
which a speaker can be understood is quite another matter, and 
depends often
more upon the clearness of his enunciation than the strength of 
his voice.
That clearness of enunciation is represented in the case of a 
thought-form
by definiteness, clearness of outline. 
Many a man
who is not trained in the art of public speaking might send forth a 
shout which
would penetrate to a considerable distance, but would be quite 
unintelligible.
Just in the same way a man who feels strongly, but is not 
trained in
the art of thinking, may send forth a powerful thought-form which 
conveys
strongly enough the feeling which inspires it-- a feeling of joy, of 
terror or of
surprise; and yet it may be so vaguely outlined as to impart no 
idea of the
nature or the cause of the emotion. Evidently, therefore, dearness 
of thought is
at least as necessary as strength of thought. 
Again, the
speaker' s voice may be clear and strong, and his words may be 
perfectly
audible at the place where an auditor is standing; yet the words 
convey no
meaning to that auditor if he is so preoccupied with some other matter 
that he is
not paying attention. This also has its exact correspondence in the 
world of
thought. One may send out a clear, strong thought, and even aim it 
definitely at
another person, but if that man' s mind is entirely preoccupied 
with his own
affairs, the thought-form can produce no impression upon his mental 
body. Often
men in a wild panic do not even hear the advice or orders shouted to 
them; under
the same influence they are equally impervious to thought-forms. 
The majority
of mankind do not know how to think at all, and even those who are 
a little more
advanced than that, rarely think definitely and strongly, except 
during the
moments in which they are actually engaged in some piece of business 
which demands
their whole attention. Consequently, large numbers of minds are 
always lying
fallow all about us, ready to receive whatever seed we may sow in 
them. 
THE
THOUGHT-WAVE 
The action of
the thought-vibration is eminently adaptable. It may exactly 
reproduce
itself, if it finds a mental body which readily responds to it in 
every
particular; but when this is not the case, it may nevertheless produce a 
marked effect
along lines broadly similar to its own. Suppose, for example, that 
a Catholic
kneels in devotion before an image of the Blessed Virgin. He sends 
rippling out
from him in all directions strong, devotional thought-waves; if 
they strike
upon the mental of astral body of another Catholic, they arouse in 
him a thought
and feeling identical with the original; but if they strike upon a 
Christian of
some other sect, to whom the image of the Blessed Virgin is 
unfamiliar,
they still awaken in him the sentiment of devotion, but that will 
follow along
its accustomed channel, and be directed towards the Christ. 
If they touch
a Muhammadan they arouse in him devotion to Allah, while in the 
case of a
Hindu the object may be Krishna, and in the case of a Parsi 
Ahuramazda.
They excite devotion of some sort wherever there is a possibility of 
response to
that idea. If this thought-wave touches the mental body of a 
materialist,
to whom the very idea of devotion in any form is unknown, even 
there it
produces an elevating effect; it cannot at once create a type of 
undulation to
which the man is wholly unaccustomed, but its tendency is to stir 
a higher part
of his mental body into some sort of activity, and the effect, 
though less
permanent than in the case of the sympathetic recipient, cannot fail 
to be good. 
The action of
an evil or impure thought is governed by the same laws. A man who 
is so foolish
as to allow himself to think of another with hatred or envy, 
radiates a
thought-wave tending to provoke similar passions in others, and 
though his
feeling of hatred is for some one quite unknown to these others, and 
so it is
impossible that they should share his feeling, yet the wave will stir 
in them an
emotion of the same nature towards a totally different person. 
THE
THOUGHT-FORM 
The work of
the thought-form is more limited, but much more precise than that of 
the wave. It
cannot reach so many persons-- indeed, it cannot act upon a person 
at all unless
he has in him something which is harmonious with the vibrant 
energy which
ensouls it. The powers and possibilities of these thought-forms 
will perhaps
be clearer to us if we attempt to classify them. Let us consider 
first the
thought which is definitely directed towards another person. 
1. When a man
sends forth from himself a thought of affection or of gratitude 
(or
unfortunately it may be sometimes of envy or jealousy) towards some one else 
such a
thought produces radiating waves precisely as would any other, and 
therefore
tends to reproduce its general character in the minds of those within 
the sphere of
its influence. But the thought-form which it creates is imbued 
with definite
intention, and as soon as it breaks away from the mental and 
astral bodies
of the thinker, it goes straight towards the person to whom it is 
directed and
fastens itself upon him. 
If he happens
at the moment to be thinking of nothing in particular, and is 
consequently in
a passive condition, it at once penetrates his mental and astral 
bodies and is
lost in them, just as a comet might fall into the sun. It tends to 
arouse in
them vibrations similar to its own-- which means that the man will 
begin to
think upon that particular subject, whatever it may be. If he is in a 
condition of
mental activity, and any part of that activity is of the same 
nature as the
arriving thought-form, it enters his mental body through that part 
of it which
is expressing the sympathetic thought, and adds its strength to that 
thought. If
the recipient' s mind is so preoccupied that the thought-form cannot 
find
entrance, it will hover about him until he is sufficiently disengaged to 
give it an
opportunity to gain its object. 
2. In the
case of a thought which is not directed to some other person, but is 
connected
chiefly with the thinker himself (as indeed are the majority of men' s 
thoughts) the
wave spreads in all directions as usual, but the thought-form 
floats in the
immediate neighbourhood of its creator, and its tendency is 
constantly to
react upon him. As long as his mind is fully occupied with 
business, or
with a thought of some other type, the floating form waits, biding 
its time; but
when his train of thought is exhausted, or his mind for a moment 
lies fallow,
it has an opportunity to react upon him, and it immediately begins 
to repeat
itself-- to stir up in him a repetition of the thought to which he has 
previously
yielded himself. Many a man is surrounded by a shell of such 
thought-forms,
and he frequently feels their pressure upon him-- a constant 
suggestion
from without of certain thoughts; and if the thought be evil he may 
believe
himself to be tempted by the devil, whereas the truth is that he is his 
own tempter
and that the evil thoughts are entirely his own creation. 
3. There is
the class of thought which is neither centred round the thinker nor 
specially
aimed at any person. The thought-form generated in this case does not 
hang about
the thinker, nor has it any special attraction towards another man, 
so it remains
idly floating at the place where it was called into existence. 
Each man, as
he moves through life, is thus producing three classes of 
thought-forms:
1. Those
which shoot straight out away from him, aiming at a definite objective. 
2. Those
which hover round him and follow him wherever he goes. 
3. Those
which he leaves behind him as a sort of trail which marks his route. 
The whole
atmosphere is filled with thoughts of this third type, vague and 
indeterminate;
as we walk along we are picking our way through vast masses of 
them, and if
our minds are not already definitely occupied, these vague, 
wandering
fragments of other people' s thoughts often seriously affect us. They 
sweep through
the mind which is lying idle, and probably most of them do not 
arouse in it
any especial interest; but now and then comes one which attracts 
attention,
and the mind fastens upon it, entertains it for a moment or two, and 
dismisses it
a little stronger than it was on arrival. 
Naturally
this mixture of thoughts from many sources has no definite coherence; 
though any
one of them may start a line of associate ideas, and so set the mind 
thinking on
its own account. If a man pulls himself up suddenly as he walks 
along the
street, and asks himself: 
“What am I
thinking about, and why? how did I reach this particular point in my 
train of
thought?” and if he tries to follow back the line of his thoughts for 
the last ten
minutes, he will probably be quite surprised to discover how many 
idle and
useless fancies have passed through his mind in that space of time. Not 
one-fourth of
them are his own thoughts; they are simply fragments which he has 
picked up as
he passed along. In most cases they are quite useless, and their 
general
tendency is more likely to be evil than good. 
WHAT WE CAN
DO BY THOUGHT 
Now that we
understand to some extent the action of thought, let us see what use 
it is
possible to make of this knowledge, and what practical considerations 
emerge from
it. Knowing these things, what can we do to forward our own 
evolution,
and what can we do to help others? Obviously, a scientific 
consideration
of the way in which thought works, exhibits it as a matter of far 
greater
importance, not only for our own evolution but also for that of others, 
than is
ordinarily supposed. 
When we look
at this question of thought with regard to its effects upon others, 
we find
ourselves brought back again from this different point of view to every 
one of the
considerations which we have already emphasised when speaking of the 
reaction of
this force upon ourselves. This is natural, for what tends to our 
progress must
tend also to that of others. So we must touch these subjects 
again, though
but in passing. 
Since every
thought or emotion produces a permanent effect by strengthening or 
weakening a
tendency, and since furthermore every thought-wave and thought-form 
must not only
react upon the thinker, but also influence many other people, the 
greatest care
must be exercised as to the thought or emotion which a man permits 
within
himself. The ordinary man rarely thinks of attempting to check an 
emotion; when
he feels it surging within him he yields himself to it and 
considers it
merely natural. One who studies scientifically the action of these 
forces
realises that it is his interest as well as his duty to check every such 
upwelling,
and consider, before he allows it to sway him, whether it is or is 
not
prejudicial to his evolution and to that of his neighbours. 
Instead of
allowing his emotions to run away with him he must have them 
absolutely
under control; and since the stage of evolution at which we have 
arrived is
the development of the mental body, he must take this matter 
seriously in
hand and see what can be done to assist that development. Instead 
of allowing
the mind to indulge in its vagaries he should endeavour to assert 
control over
it, recognising that the mind is not the man, but is an instrument 
which the man
must learn to use. It must not be left to lie fallow; it must not 
be allowed to
remain idle, so that any passing thought-form can drift in upon it 
and impress
it. The first step towards control of the mind is to keep it 
usefully
occupied-- to have (as has already been said) some definite, good and 
useful set of
thoughts as a background to the mind' s operation-- something upon 
which it
shall always fall back when there is no immediate need for its activity 
in connection
with duty to be done. 
Another
necessary point in its training is that it shall be taught to do 
thoroughly
that which it has to do-- in other words, that the power of 
concentration
shall be acquired. This is no light task, as any unpractised 
person will
find who endeavours to keep his mind absolutely upon one point even 
for five
minutes. He will find that there is an active tendency to wander-- that 
all kinds of
other thoughts thrust themselves in; the first effort to fix the 
mind on one
subject for five minutes is likely to resolve itself into spending 
five minutes
in bringing the mind back again and again from various side-issues 
which it has
followed. 
Fortunately,
though concentration itself is no easy thing, there are plenty of 
opportunities
for attempting it, and its acquisition is of great use in our 
daily life.
We should learn then, whatever we are doing, to focus our attention 
upon it and
to do it with all our might and as well as it can be done; if we 
write a
letter, let that letter be well and accurately written, and let no 
carelessness
in detail delay it or mar its effect; if we are reading a book, 
even though
it be only a novel, let us read it with attention, trying to grasp 
the author' s
meaning, and to gain from it all that there is to be gained. The 
endeavour to
be constantly learning something, to let no day pass without some 
definite
exercise of the mind, is a most salutary one; for it is only by 
exercise that
strength comes, and disuse means always weakness and eventual 
atrophy. 
It is also of
great importance that we should learn to husband our energy. Each 
man possesses
only a certain amount of energy, and he is responsible for its 
utilisation to
the best advantage. The ordinary man wastes his force in the most 
foolish
manner. He is always frittering it away without a shadow of necessity or 
justification.
Sometimes he is full of eager desire for something which is quite 
unnecessary;
or he is full of worry about some fancied evil which he imagines 
may be
impending. At another time he is deeply depressed, but does not know 
exactly why;
but whatever he alleges as the ostensible cause, the fact remains 
that he is
more or less in a condition of excitement and agitation, because he 
will not take
things philosophically, and lay to heart the wise old maxim that, 
as regards
what comes upon us from the outer world, “nothing matters much, and 
most things
don' t matter at all.” The thoughts and emotions of an average crowd 
are like the
inhabitants of a disturbed ant-hill, all rushing wildly and 
aimlessly
about in different directions, but causing a vast amount of disorder 
and tumult;
which is precisely why the occultist invariably avoids a crowd, 
unless duty
takes him into it. It is especially necessary for the student of 
occultism to
learn to avoid this dissipation of his energies. 
One way in
which the average man wastes a great deal of force is by unnecessary 
argument. It
appears to be impossible for him to hold any opinion, whether it be 
religious or
political, or relating to some matter in ordinary life, without 
becoming a
prey to an overmastering desire to force this opinion upon every one 
else, He
seems quite incapable of grasping the rudimentary fact that what 
another man
chooses to believe is no business of his, and that he is not 
commissioned
by the authorities in charge of the world to go round and secure 
uniformity in
thought and practice. 
The wise man
realises that truth is a many-sided thing, not commonly held in its 
entirely by
any one man, or by any one set of men; he knows that there is room 
for diversity
of opinion upon almost any conceivable subject, and that therefore 
a man whose
point of view is opposite to his own may nevertheless have something 
of reason and
truth in his belief. He knows that most of the subjects over which 
men argue are
not in the least worth the trouble of discussion, and that those 
who speak
most loudly and most confidently about them are usually those who know 
least. The
student of occultism will therefore decline to waste his time in 
argument; if
he is asked for information he is willing to give it, but not to 
waste his
time and strength in unprofitable wrangling. 
Another
painfully common method of wasting strength is that worry of which I 
have already
written as so serious an obstacle in the path of peace. Many men 
are
constantly forecasting evil for themselves and for those whom they love-- 
troubling
themselves with the fear of death and of what comes after it, with the 
fear of
financial ruin or loss of social position. A vast amount of strength is 
frittered
away along these unprofitable and unpleasant lines; but all such 
foolishness
is swept aside for the man who realises that the world is governed 
by a law of
absolute justice, that progress towards the highest is the Divine 
Will for him,
that he cannot escape from that progress, that whatever comes in 
his way and
whatever happens to him is meant to help him along that line, and 
that he
himself is the only person who can delay that advance. He no longer 
troubles and
fears about himself and about others; he simply goes on and does 
the duty that
comes nearest in the best way that he can, confident that if he 
does that,
all will be well for him. He knows that worry never yet helped any 
one, nor has
it ever been of the slightest use, but that it has been responsible 
for an
immense amount of evil and waste of force; and the wise man declines to 
spend his
strength in ill-directed emotion. 
So we see
that if it is necessary for his own evolution that man should keep 
mind and
emotion under control, and not foolishly waste his force, it is still 
more
necessary from another point of view, because it is only by such care that 
he can enable
himself to be of use to his fellow men, that he can avoid doing 
harm to them
and can learn how to do good. If, for example, he lets himself feel 
angry, he
naturally produces a grave effect upon himself, because he sets up an 
evil habit
and makes it more difficult to resist the evil impulse next time it 
assails him.
But he also acts seriously upon others around him, for inevitably 
the vibrations
which radiate from him must affect them also. 
If he is
making an effort to control his irritability, so perhaps are they, and 
his action
will help or hinder them, even though he is not in the least thinking 
of them.
Every time that he allows himself to send out a wave of anger, that 
tends to
arouse a similar vibration in the mind or astral body of another-- to 
arouse it if
it has not previously existed and to intensify it if it is already 
present; and
thus he makes his brother' s work of self-development harder for 
him, and
places a heavier burden upon his shoulders. On the other hand, if he 
controls and
represses the wave of anger, he radiates instead, calming and 
soothing
influences which are distinctly helpful to all those near him who are 
engaged in
the same struggle. 
Few people
realise their responsibilities in this matter. It is bad enough 
surely that
any evil thought of ours should communicate itself to the minds of 
any persons
within range of us who may happen to be idle and unoccupied. But the 
truth is much
worse than that. In every man there lie germs or possibilities of 
evil which
have come over from a previous life, but have not as yet been called 
into activity
in this incarnation. If we send out an evil or impure thought, it 
may easily
happen that it arouses into activity one of these germs, and so 
through our
lack of self-control there comes into that man' s life an evil of 
which
otherwise he might have got rid. We revive in him the dormant tendency 
which was in
the act of dying out, and thereby we delay him in his upward 
progress. 
So long as
that germ is dormant the quality is dying out, but when it is aroused 
again it may
increase to any extent. It is like breaking a hole through a dyke 
and letting
out the water. In fact, a man who sends out an evil thought cannot 
tell for what
amount of evil he may make himself responsible; for a man who 
becomes
wicked, in consequence of that thought, may in turn affect other people, 
and those yet
others in turn; so it is actually true that because of one evil 
thought
generations yet to come may suffer. Happily all this is true of good 
thoughts as
well as of evil, and the man who understands this fact uses wisely 
the power
which it gives him, and may have an influence for good which is beyond 
all
calculation. 
THE
RESPONSIBILITY OF THOUGHT 
Possessing
this tremendous power, we must be careful how we exercise it. We must 
remember to
think of a person as we wish him to be, for the image that we thus 
make of him
will naturally act powerfully upon him, and tend to draw him 
gradually
into harmony with itself. Let us fix our thoughts upon the good 
qualities of
our friends, because in thinking of any quality we tend to 
strengthen
its vibrations, and therefore to intensify it. 
From this
consideration it follows that the habit of gossip and scandal, in 
which many
people thoughtlessly indulge themselves; is in reality heinous 
wickedness,
in condemning which no expression can be too strong. When people are 
guilty of the
impertinence of discussing others, it is not usually upon the good 
qualities
that they most insist. We have therefore a number of people fixing 
their thought
upon some alleged evil in another, and calling to that evil the 
attention of
others who might perhaps not have observed it; and in this way, if 
that bad
quality really exists in the person whom they are so improperly 
criticising,
they distinctly increase it by strengthening the undulation which 
is its
expression. If, as is usually the case, the depravity exists only in 
their own
prurient imagination, and is not present in the person about whom they 
are
gossiping, then they are doing the utmost in their power to create that evil 
quality in
that person, and if there be any latent germ of it existing in their 
victim, their
nefarious effect is only too likely to be successful. 
We may think
helpfully of those whom we love; we may hold before them in thought 
a high ideal
of themselves, and wish strongly that they may presently be enabled 
to attain it;
but if we know of certain defects or vices in a man' s character, 
we should
never under any circumstances let our thoughts dwell upon them and 
intensify
them; our plan should be to formulate a strong thought of the contrary 
virtues, and
then send out waves of that thought to the man who needs our help. 
The ordinary
method is for one to say to another. 
“O my dear,
what a terrible thing it is that Mrs. So-and-So is so ill-tempered! 
Why, do you
know, only yesterday she did this and that, and I have heard that 
she
constantly, etc., etc. Isn' t it a terrible thing?” 
And this is
repeated by each person to her thirty or forty dearest friends, and 
in a few
hours several hundred people are pouring converging streams of thought, 
all about
anger and irritability, upon the unfortunate victim. Is it any wonder 
that she
presently justifies their expectations, and gives them yet another 
example of
ill-tempered over which they can gloat? 
A person
wishing to help in such a case will be especially careful to avoid 
thinking
about anger at all, but instead will think with force: 
“I wish Mrs.
So-and-So were calm and serene; she has the possibility of such 
self-control
within her; let me try frequently to send her strong, calm, 
soothing
thought-waves, such as will help her to realise the Divine possibility 
within her.” 
In the one
case the thought is of anger; in the other it is of serenity; in both 
alike it will
inevitably find its goal, and tend to reproduce itself in the 
mental and
astral bodies of the recipient of the thought. By all means let us 
think
frequently and lovingly of our friends, but let us think of their good 
points only,
and try, by concentrating our attention upon those, to strengthen 
them and to
help our friends by their means. 
A man often
says that he cannot control his thoughts or his passions-- that he 
has often
tried to do so, but has consistently failed, and has therefore come to 
the
conclusion that such effort is useless. This idea is wholly unscientific. If 
an evil
quality or habit possesses a certain amount of strength within us, it is 
because in
previous lives we have allowed that strength to accumulate-- because 
we have not
resisted it in the beginning when it could easily have been 
repressed,
but have permitted it to gather the momentum which makes it difficult 
now to deal
with it. 
We have, in
fact, made it easy for ourselves to move along a certain line, and 
correspondingly
difficult to move along another line-- difficult, but not 
impossible.
The amount of momentum or energy accumulated is necessarily a finite 
amount; even
if we have devoted several lives entirely to storing up such energy 
(an unlikely
supposition), still the time so occupied has been a limited time, 
and the
results are necessarily finite. 
If we have
now realised the mistake we made, and are setting ourselves to 
control that
habit and to neutralise that impetus, we shall find it necessary to 
put forth exactly
as much strength in the opposite direction as we originally 
spent in
setting up that momentum. Naturally we cannot instantly produce 
sufficient
force entirely to counteract the work of many years, but every effort 
which we make
will reduce the amount of force stored up. We ourselves as living 
souls can go
on generating force indefinitely; we have an infinite store of 
strength on
which to draw, and therefore it is absolutely certain that if we 
persevere we
must eventually succeed. However often we may fail, each time 
something is
withdrawn from that finite store of force, and it will be exhausted 
before we
shall, so that our eventual success is simply a matter of mechanics. 
The knowledge
of the use of these thought-currents makes it possible for us 
always to
give assistance when we know of some case of sorrow or suffering. It 
often happens
that we are unable to do anything for the sufferer physically; our 
bodily
presence may not be helpful to him; his physical brain may be closed to 
our suggestions
by prejudice or by religious bigotry. But his astral and mental 
bodies are
far more easily impressible than the physical, and it is always open 
to us to
approach these by a wave of helpful thought or of affection and 
soothing
feeling. 
The law of
cause and effect holds good just as certainly in finer matter as in 
denser, and
consequently the energy which we pour forth must reach its goal and 
must produce
it effect. There can be no question that the image or the idea 
which we wish
to put before the man for his comfort or his help will reach him; 
whether it
will present itself clearly to his mind when it arrives depends, 
first upon
the definiteness of outline which we have been able to give to it, 
and secondly
upon his mental condition at the time. He may be so fully occupied 
with thoughts
of his own trials and sufferings that there is little room for our 
idea to
insert itself; but in that case our thought-form simply bides its time, 
and when at
last his attention is diverted, or exhaustion forces him to suspend 
the activity
of his own train of thought, ours will at once slip in and do its 
errand of
mercy. There are so many cases where the best will in the world can do 
nothing
physically; but there is no conceivable case in which either in the 
mental or the
astral world some relief cannot be given by steady, concentrated, 
loving
thought. 
The phenomena
of mind-cure show how powerful thought may be even in the physical 
world, and
since it acts so much more easily in astral and mental matter we may 
realise
vividly how tremendous the power really is, if we will but exercise it. 
We should
watch for every opportunity of being thus helpful; there is little 
doubt that
plenty of cases will offer themselves. As we walk along the street, 
as we ride in
a tram-car or railway train, we often see some one who is 
obviously
suffering from depression or sadness; there is our opportunity, and we 
may
immediately take advantage of it by trying to arouse and to help him. 
Let us try to
send him strongly the feeling that, in spite of his personal 
sorrows and
troubles, the sun still shines above all, and there is still much 
for which to
be thankful, much that is good and beautiful in the world. 
Sometimes we
may see the instant effect of our effort-- we may actually watch 
the man
brighten up under the influence of the thought which we have sent to 
him. We
cannot always expect such immediate physical result; but if we 
understand
the laws of nature we shall in every case be equally sure that some 
result is
being produced. 
It is often
difficult for the man who is unaccustomed to these studies to 
believe that
he is really affecting those at whom his thought is aimed; but 
experience in
a great number of cases has shown us that anyone who makes a 
practice of
such efforts will in time find evidence of his success accumulating 
until it is
no longer possible for him to doubt. The man should make it part of 
his life thus
to try to help all whom he knows and loves, whether they be living 
or what is
commonly called dead; for naturally the possession or the absence of 
the physical
body makes no difference whatever to the action of forces which are 
levelled at
the mental and astral bodies. By steady, regular practice of this 
sort great
good will be done, for we gain strength by practice, and so, while we 
are
developing our own powers and insuring our progress, the world will be 
helped by our
kindly efforts. 
Thus whatever
is truly for our own interest is also for the interest of the 
world, and
what is not good for the world can never in reality be for our 
interest
either. For all true gain is gained for all. To many a man this may 
appear a
strange statement, because we are accustomed to think that what one man 
gains another
loses; yet it enshrines a great truth. Elsewhere I have shown that 
if one party
to a transaction is unfairly treated, and therefore loses, there is 
no true gain
for the other. 
A
straightforward, honest piece of business means gain for both parties. A 
tradesman,
let us suppose, buys his goods wholesale, and then, taking care to 
say of them
only what is strictly true, disposes of them by retail at a 
reasonable
profit. Here all parties gain, for the wholesale merchant and the 
tradesman
make their living, while the purchasers are willing to pay the retail 
price in
order to have the convenience of buying in small quantities. Each 
person gains
what he wishes; no one loses; all are satisfied. 
This is
merely a superficial example from the physical world; it is in the 
higher realms
of thought that we may see most clearly how beautifully this rule 
works.
Suppose that a man gains knowledge. He may impart his gain to a hundred 
others, yet
he himself will have lost nothing. Not only so, but even others, to 
whom he does
not impart it, will gain indirectly from his possession of it. 
Because he
has this added knowledge, he is by so much a wiser and more useful 
man; his
words should be the more weighty, his actions the more sagacious, and 
so others
around him should be the better for his learning. 
We may go
deeper still. Since the man knows more, not only his words and action 
but his
thoughts will be wiser than before. His thought-forms will be better, 
the waves
flowing from his mental body higher and richer; and these must 
inevitably
produce their result upon the mental bodies of others around him. 
Like all
other waves in nature they tend to reproduce themselves, to provoke a 
similar rate
of undulation in anything with which they come into contact. The 
same natural
law, by the action of which in the physical world you are able to 
boil the
water for your tea or to toast your bread at the fire, makes it 
absolutely
certain that the good effects of additional wisdom will influence 
others, even
though the possessor speaks never a word. 
That is why
in all religions so much importance is attached to the company of 
the good, the
wise, the pure. Human qualities are infectious, and it is of the 
greatest
moment that we should be careful to which of them we subject ourselves. 
Take another
instance. Suppose that you gain the valuable power of self-control. 
Perhaps you
were formerly a passionate man, and now you have learnt to check 
that outpouring
of force, and to hold it in subjection. Let us see how that 
affects
others about you. In the physical world it is unquestionably pleasanter 
for them, but
them, but let us consider the effect on their finer vehicles. 
When in
earlier days you allowed yourself to get into a rage, great waves of 
strong wrath
poured out from you in all directions. No one who has seen the 
illustration
of such an outrush as that which appears in Man Visible and 
Invisible ,
will need to be told what disastrous effects such waves must have 
produced upon
the astral bodies of those who were so unfortunate as to be near 
you. Perhaps
one of those men was himself struggling the same evil habit. If so, 
the emanations
of your fury stirred up similar activity in his astral body, and 
so you
strengthened that evil, you made your brother' s task harder, and his 
burden
heavier to bear than it otherwise would have been. And once more I must 
insist that
you have no right to do that. 
But now that
you have gained self-control, all this is most happily changed. 
Still you
radiate vibrations, for that is Nature' s law, but now they are no 
longer the
lurid flashes of anger, but the calm, measured sweep of the strong 
waves of love
and peace. And these also impinge upon the astral body of your 
fellow man,
and tend to reproduce themselves in him; and if he is fighting a 
battle
against passion, their stately rhythm helps him and steadies him. Your 
force is
being exerted on his side instead of against him, and so you lighten 
his burden,
you aid him on his upward path. Is it not true then that in your 
gain he has
gained also? 
Men are so
inextricably linked together, humanity is so truly a unity amidst all 
its marvellous
diversity, that no one can advance or recede without helping or 
hindering the
progress of others. Wherefore it behoves us to take heed that we 
are among the
helpers and not among the hinderers, and that no living being, 
whether man
or animal, shall ever be the worse for any thought or word or deed 
of ours. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XX 
BY WHAT WE DO
WORK FOR THE
POOR 
THE question
of what we can do is one which it is impossible to treat fully, for 
the reason
that each person has his own opportunities, and no two sets of 
opportunities
are alike. We are often asked whether a Theosophist should 
undertake any
of the ordinary charitable lines of work, which are not specially 
connected
with the Theosophical Society. This is a question which each must 
answer for
himself, because the answer to it depends on his special 
circumstances.
I think that it may be laid down as a general rule that when 
there is
specially Theosophical work that he can do, he should devote his time 
to that,
because that is a kind of business that only he can do, whereas many 
other people
can do the ordinary charitable labour as well as he. 
Take for
example a case of what is called slum work, the direct help of the poor 
by visiting
them and carrying to them various small comforts. None can deny that 
this is a
most excellent thing to do, and that it sadly needs doing; but if one 
is to choose
between spending a certain time in this distinctly physical 
occupation
and doing something in a higher world which will tend to bring nearer 
the time when
slums shall no longer exist, then I say that the latter is the 
greater work
to do and the better way of employing the time, for only one who 
has studied
Theosophy can help to spread the Theosophical teaching, whereas any 
good and
kind-hearted person, of whatever class, can undertake the task of 
carrying food
and blankets to the poor. 
It is good
work, surely, to help to make a road, but we should not put to that 
task of
road-making a man who has qualified himself as an engineer or a doctor. 
Any man who
has a talent in a certain direction or has the knowledge necessary 
to enable him
to work in a particular way, should be employed along his special 
line, for
there are only a few who can do that, whereas anyone can do the 
unskilled
labour of the world, and there are vast numbers who can do only that. 
Therefore it
seems to me that when a Theosophist can employ his time in 
spreading and
teaching Theosophy, he should not put this aside in order to take 
up a more
ordinary kind of work for the world. But if he is so situated that he 
cannot do
anything for the Theosophical propaganda which is his speciality, he 
ought
certainly then to employ his spare time in the highest type of charitable 
labour within
his reach. 
What is
required is that he should cultivate a spirit of benevolence, that he 
should be
eagerly watching all day long for opportunities of being helpful. Best 
of course if
he can be useful in the highest way, is guiding people towards 
Theosophy,
but when that is not for the moment possible, he should be helpful in 
a more
ordinary manner. He should employ himself in sending out benevolent 
thoughts, or
in making people happy in the physical world. He should import the 
idea of
helpfulness into every little daily action. Each man must decide for 
himself how
he can best do this, and his study of the hidden side of things will 
offer him
many suggestions; for it makes daily life much more interesting, and 
enables us
much more useful than we could be without it. 
It shows us
that many apparently trivial actions reach further than we think, 
and therefore
impresses strongly upon us the necessity for living carefully and 
recollectedly.
It shows a man that every action has its effect upon those around 
him, even
when it seems on the surface to concern himself alone; that for this 
effect on
others he is responsible, and that it offers him a welcome opportunity 
for doing
good. When this is once grasped, he realises that he must order his 
life from
this new point of view-- that it must be spent, even in small things, 
not for
himself, but for others. Many a man lives for others in the sense that 
he regulates
his life on what he imagines others are thinking about him; but our 
student' s
altruism will be of another sort. He will put before himself for his 
guidance two
stringent rules: 
1. That
everything shall be done unselfishly. 
2. That
everything shall be done with definite purpose, and as perfectly as he 
can do it. 
THE FORCE OF
THE MASTER 
If he does
this, if he lives in this way, the Powers who rule the world will 
soon
recognise him and use him, for by living thus he makes himself a ready 
channel for
the power of the Master, a valuable instrument in His hands. Truly, 
the help of
the Holy Ones is given chiefly upon higher planes; but it is not 
confined to
them; it acts in the physical world as well, if we give it the 
opportunity.
The Master will not waste His strength in forcing a stream of His 
energy down
into the dense matter of this lower world, because to do that would 
not be good
spiritual economics; it would not be utilising that amount of energy 
to the best
advantage. But if a man already living in our lower world so 
arranges his
life as to make himself a fit channel for that energy, the position 
is altered,
and it becomes worth the Master' s while to make an effort which 
would not
otherwise have been remunerative. 
We have to
remember that a channel must be open at both ends, not at one end 
only. The
higher end of our channel consists in the devotion and unselfishness 
of the man,
in the very fact that he is anxious to be used, and is ordering his 
life for that
purpose. The lower end is the man' s physical body, through which 
the influence
must pass out, and this also needs careful attention, in order 
that it may not
befoul the stream which the Master sends. 
Remember that
we are dealing with no vague abstraction, but with a physical 
though
invisible fluid, which permeates the matter of the body and exudes 
through the
pores of the skin, or is projected from the hands or feet. Therefore 
that body
must be pure inside, uncontaminated by flesh-foods, alcohol or 
tobacco; and
it must also be kept scrupulously clean outside by frequent and 
thorough
ablutions, especial attention being paid to the hands and feet. 
Otherwise the
fluid, transmuted with so much care from higher planes, will be 
polluted as
it passes through man, and will fail to achieve the object for which 
it was sent. 
Although this
force radiates from the worthy student at all times, he can also 
gather it up
and pour it out with definite intention upon a particular object. 
In a previous
chapter it was explained how the ordinary man can protect himself 
from evil
influence when shaking hands, or when surrounded by a crowd; but the 
student,
instead of protecting himself, will make out of these unpleasing 
occurrences
opportunities to act upon others. When he shakes hands with a man, 
he will send
the Master' s power rushing through his extended arm. The beginner 
may ask: “How
can I do that? And even if I try, how can I be certain that I have 
succeeded ?” 
All that is
needed here is a firm conviction and an intense resolve-- a 
conviction,
based upon his study, that this is a thing that can be done, and the 
intense resolve
to do it, which comes from his deep devotion to the Master and 
his earnest
desire to do His will. Success in all magical efforts depends upon 
the absolute
confidence of the operator; a man who doubts his own capacity has 
already
failed. So that all that is necessary is that he should mingle with the 
hearty
welcome which he extends to his visitor the strong thought: “I give you 
herewith the
love of the Master.” In the same way, when he finds himself in a 
crowd, he
will spread among the people that same influence of the Master' s 
love; and
that outpouring will be for him a far better protection than any 
shell. 
THE
MANUFACTURE OF TALISMANS 
Another use
which can be made of this force is to charge certain objects with 
it, thereby
converting them into talismans. I have written before of the effects 
producible by
such charms; I speak now of the process of their manufacture. The 
more advanced
branches of this art require definite knowledge, obtainable only 
by an
extended course of study; but any earnest man can make a temporary 
talisman
which will be of great use to one who needs help. 
One who is
accustomed to the work can perform any ordinary process of 
magnetisation
or demagnetisation practically instantaneously by the mere 
exertion of
his will; but the beginner usually finds it necessary to help 
himself in
the concentration of his will by thinking carefully of the various 
stages of the
process and using the appropriate gestures. Suppose, for example, 
that it is
desirable to magnetise some small body (such as a ring, a locket, a 
penholder) in
order to make it an amulet against fear; what is the easiest 
method of
procedure? 
Realise first
exactly what is wanted. We wish to load that body with etheric, 
astral and
mental matter heavily charged with a particular set of undulations-- 
those of
courage and confidence. The trained occultist would gather together 
each of those
levels such types of matter as will most easily receive and retain 
vibrations of
just that character; the beginner, knowing nothing, of that, must 
use whatever
material comes to hand and so will have to expend a greater amount 
of force than
would be exerted by his more experienced brother. 
The making of
an amulet may be likened to the writing of an inscription, and the 
acquisition
of the right kind of matter corresponds to obtaining a perfect 
surface on
which to write. The beginner, who cannot do this must write with 
greater
labour and less perfection of result upon the surface that happens to be 
available.
The first difficulty that confronts him is that his sheet is not even 
a blank one;
his paper already bears an inscription, which must be removed 
before he can
use it. If, the ring or locket has been worn by anyone, it is 
already full
of the magnetism of that person-- magnetism which may be better or 
may be worse
than that of the student, but is at any rate different from it, and 
so is an
obstacle-- just as any kind of writing, however good, which already 
fills a sheet
of paper, stands in the way of its use for further writing. Even 
if the ring
or pen-holder be quite new, it is likely to contain something of the 
special
magnetism either of the maker or of the seller; so in any case the first 
thing is to
remove whatever may be there-- to obtain a clear sheet for our 
inscription.
There are various methods by which this may be done; let me 
describe a
simple one. 
Rest the tip
of the forefinger of the right hand against the end of the thumb, 
so as to make
a ring, and imagine a film of ether stretched across that ring 
like the head
of a drum. Will strongly that such a film should be made, and 
remember that
that very effort of the will does make it, although you cannot see 
it. Remember
also that it is essential to the success of the experiment that you 
should be
quite certain of this fact-- that your previous study should have 
convinced you
that the human will has the power to arrange subtle matter in this 
or any other
way. 
Then, keeping
your attention firmly fixed upon that film, so as to hold it quite 
rigid, pass
slowly through it the object to be demagnetised, and by so doing you 
will cleanse
it entirely of the etheric part of its previous magnetism. I do not 
mean that you
will leave it without etheric matter, but that every particle of 
such matter
will be swept out and replaced; just as, if a tube is filled with 
gas and one
blows strongly into one end of it, all the gas is driven out; but 
the tube is
not therefore empty, as the pressure of the surrounding air 
immediately
refills it. So the specially charged ether is dredged out of the 
locket or
pen-holder, and its place is taken by the ordinary ether which 
interpenetrates
the surrounding atmosphere. 
The next step
is to let the etheric film dissolve, and replace it by one of 
astral
matter, through which the object is again passed. The process may be 
repeated with
a film of mental matter, and we shall then have the object 
entirely free
on all three planes from any sort of specialised magnetism-- a 
clean sheet,
in fact, upon which we can write what we will. After a certain 
amount of
practice the student can make a combined film containing etheric, 
astral and
mental matter, so as to perform the whole operation by passing the 
object once
through the ring. 
The operator
must then exercise all his strength to fill himself with the 
qualities
which he wishes the amulet to convey (in this case fearlessness and 
self-reliance),
excluding for the moment all thought of other attributes and 
becoming the
living incarnation of these. Then, when he has thus wound himself 
up to his
highest level of enthusiasm, let him take the object in his left hand, 
or lay it on
the table in front of him, and pour magnetism on it through the 
fingers of
his right hand, all the time willing with his utmost strength that it 
shall be
filled with the very essence of valour, calmness and intrepidity. 
It will
probably help him in concentration if, while doing this, he repeats to 
himself firmly
again and again such words as: “Courage, confidence, in the Name 
of the
Master,” “Where this object is, may no fear enter,” or any others 
expressing a
similar idea. Let him do this for a few minutes, never allowing his 
attention to
swerve for a moment, and he need have no shade of doubt that he has 
made a really
effective talisman. 
This process
will probably occupy the tyro for some time, but a man who is 
accustomed to
it does it quickly and easily. The trained occultist makes 
constant use
of this power as a means of helping those with whom he comes into 
contact; he
never despatches a letter, or even a postcard, without thinking what 
good gift of
refreshing, consoling or strengthening magnetism he can send with 
it. He has at
his command many other ways of making a talisman besides that 
which I have
described; perhaps it may help towards a fuller comprehension of 
the subject
if I enumerate some of them, even though they are quite beyond the 
reach of the
ordinary student. 
VARIETIES OF
TALISMANS 
Amulets are
of all sorts and kinds-- literally many thousands of kinds-- but 
they may be
arranged for our purposes into four classes, which we will call 
respectively
general, adapted, ensouled and linked. 
1. General.
The method which I have suggested above produces a talisman of this 
description.
The trained man naturally obtains with less labour a better result, 
not only
because he knows how to use his will effectively, but because he has 
learnt to
select the most suitable materials; consequently the influence of his 
amulet is
stronger, and lasts for many years instead of perhaps for a few 
months. This
form of talisman is quite simple; its business is to pour out a 
steady stream
of undulations expressing the quality with which it is charged, 
and it will
continue to do this with undiminished vigour for a period the length 
of which
depends upon the force originally put into it. 
2 . Adapted.
The adapted amulet is one that has been carefully prepared to fit a 
particular
person. Its maker studies the man for whom it is intended, and notes 
carefully the
deficiencies in his mental, astral and etheric bodies. Then he 
culls from
the matter of the various planes the ingredients of his talisman, 
just as a
physician selects the drugs to compound into a prescription, choosing 
a certain
type of essence in order to repress an undesirable astral tendency, 
another in
order to stimulate the sluggish action of some defective department 
of mental
activity, and so on. Thus he produces an amulet accurately adapted to 
the needs of
a particular person, and capable of doing for that person 
enormously
more than a general talisman can do; but it would be of little use to 
anyone else
but the man for whom it is intended. It is like a skillfully-made 
key with many
wards, which exactly fits its lock, but will not open any other; 
while a
general talisman may be compared to a skeleton key, which will open many 
inferior
locks, but does not perfectly suit any. 
3 . Ensouled.
Sometimes it is desired to establish a centre of radiation which, 
instead of
acting for a few score years at most, shall continue its outpouring 
through the
centuries. In this case it is not enough to charge the selected 
object with a
dose of magnetic force-- for, however large that dose may be, it 
must some
time be exhausted; to produce this more permanent result we must bring 
into play
some form of life; and for this purpose one of two methods is usually 
adopted. 
The first is
to include in the physical charm a minute fragment of one of those 
higher
minerals which are sufficiently alive to throw out a ceaseless stream of 
particles.
When that is done, the store of force poured into the amulet will 
last almost
indefinitely longer, for instead of radiating steadily in all 
directions on
its own account, it remains self-contained, and charges only the 
particles
which pass through it. The work of distribution is thus done by the 
mineral, and
a vast economy of energy is thereby secured. 
The second
plan is so to arrange the ingredients of the talisman as to make it a 
means of
manifestation for any one of certain comparatively undeveloped orders 
of
nature-spirits. There are tribes of these creatures which, though full of 
energy and
strongly desirous to do something with it, cannot express themselves 
unless they
can find some sort of outlet. It is possible so to magnetise an 
amulet as to
make it precisely the kind of outlet required, and thus to ensure 
the steady
outflow through it of a stream of energy at high pressure, which may 
last for
thousands of years, to the intense delight of the nature-spirits and 
the great
benefit of all who approach the magnetised centre. 
4. Linked.
The linked talisman differs completely from the other kinds in one 
important
particular. All those previously described are made and set going by 
their
creators, and then left to run their course and live their life, just as a 
clockmaker
constructs a timepiece and then sells it to a customer and knows no 
more about
it. But the clockmaker sometimes chooses to remain in touch with his 
masterpiece,
and undertakes to keep it wound and in order; and this corresponds 
to the
arrangement made in the case of a linked talisman. Instead of merely 
loading the
object with influence of a certain type, the operator when he 
magnetises it
brings it into close rapport with himself, so that it may become a 
kind of
outpost of his consciousness, a sort of telephone-receiver always 
connected
with him, through which he can reach the holder or be reached by him. 
An amulet of
this type does not work mechanically upon the gyroscope principle, 
as the others
do; or perhaps I should rather say it has a slight action of that 
sort, because
it so strongly suggests the presence of it creator that it often 
acts as a
deterrent, preventing the wearer from doing what he would not like the 
maker to see
him do; but its principal action is of quite another kind. It makes 
a link
through which the wearer can at a critical moment send a cry for help to 
its builder,
who will instantly feel the appeal and respond by an outpouring of 
strength of
whatever type may be required. 
Its
manufacturer can also use it as a channel through which he can send periodic 
waves of
influence, and so administer a course of treatment-- a kind of 
emotional or
mental massage. Such a method of handling a case (I believe our 
Christian
Science friends call it “absent treatment”) may be undertaken without 
an amulet,
merely by projecting astral and mental currents; but a talisman makes 
the work
easier, and enables the operator to deal more readily with the etheric 
double of the
subject. 
Usually the
link is made only in the physical, astral and lower mental worlds, 
and is
therefore confined to the personality of its constructor; but there are 
instances
when a Great One has chosen to link a physical talisman to Himself in 
His causal
body, and then its influence lasts through the ages. This was done in 
the case of
the physical objects buried at various points of future importance 
by Apollonius
of Tyana. 
DEMAGNETISATION
It not
infrequently occurs that it is desirable to demagnetise objects which are 
larger than
those instanced above. In such cases one may hold the two hands at 
the requisite
distance apart, and imagine a broad band of etheric matter 
extending
between them, with which the previous magnetism can be dredged out as 
before.
Another plan is to hold the two hands one on each side of the object, 
and send a strong
stream of etheric matter through it from one hand to the 
other, thus
washing away the undesired influence. The same force can often be 
employed in
the same way to relieve pain. A headache, for example, is usually 
either caused
or accompanied by a congestion of etheric matter in the brain, and 
it can often
be cured by that same plan of putting the hands one on each side of 
the sufferer'
s temples and washing away the congested matter by an effort of 
the will. 
Another use
to which the power of demagnetisation can be put is to clear 
objectionable
influences out of a room. One may have a visitor who leaves an 
unpleasant
atmosphere behind him; or one may find uncomfortable astral 
conditions
prevailing in one' s apartment at a hotel; and if such an emergency 
arises, it is
useful to know how to deal with it. One practised in these mild 
forms of
magic would manage the business in a few moments by the exercise of his 
trained will;
but the younger student will probably find it better to employ 
intermediate
means, precisely as the Catholic Church does. 
The cubic
content of even a small room is too great for the employment of the 
dredging
tactics previously recommended, so we must invoke the great principle 
of sympathy
and antipathy, and set up within the room a series of vibrations so 
hostile to
the evil influence that the latter is dominated or driven forth. To 
create such
an undulation is not difficult; but means must be found for 
spreading it
rapidly all over the room. One ready method is the burning of 
incense or
pastilles; another is sprinkling of water; but both incense and water 
must first be
passed through the process recommended for the making of a 
talisman.
Their original magnetism must be removed, and they must be loaded with 
the thought
of purity and peace. If that be thoroughly done, when the incense is 
burned, its
particles (each bearing the desired influence) will quickly be 
disseminated
through every cubic inch of air in the room; or if water be used 
and sprinkled
about the chamber, each drop of it will at once become a centre of 
active
radiation. A vaporiser is an even more effective method of distribution; 
and if
rose-water be used instead of ordinary water, the work of the student 
will be
considerably facilitated. 
The method of
action of these etheric or astral disinfectants is obvious. The 
disturbing
influence of which we desire to rid ourselves expresses itself in 
etheric and
astral waves of a certain length. Our magnetic efforts fill the room 
with another
set of waves, different in length and more powerful, because they 
have been
intentionally set swinging, which probably the others were not. The 
two sets of
inharmonious vibrations cannot co-exist, and so the stronger 
overpowers
and extinguishes the weaker. 
These are
some of the ways in which the force that dwells within man, the force 
that flows
through man, may be used. In this case, as in every other, knowledge 
is power, in
this case, as in every other, additional power means additional 
responsibility
and additional opportunity. If you can readily develop this 
power, if you
can do these things quickly and easily, so much the better for 
you, so long
as you use this advantage unselfishly, and make the world by its 
means a
little happier, a little better, a little cleaner as the result of your 
efforts. 
DO LITTLE
THINGS WELL 
Remember the
second maxim-- that everything shall be done as perfectly as we can 
do it. Charge
your letter with magnetism and make a talisman of it, by all 
means; you
will do great good thereby; but do not forget that the mere physical 
handwriting
must be perfect also-- first, out of courtesy to the recipient, and 
secondly,
because all work done for the Master must be done with the utmost 
care, even to
the minutest detail. And as all our work is work for Him, executed 
in His name
and to His glory, that means that nothing must ever be done 
carelessly.
In this, too, unselfishness may be applied; no one has the right to 
cause trouble
to another by illegible handwriting-- to save a few moments of his 
own time by
wasting many minutes of another' s. 
We must not
think that because we know more of the hidden side of things than 
others, and
so are able to add unexpected blessings to daily acts, we are 
thereby
absolved from doing the ordinary part of those acts to the very best of 
our ability.
Not worse but better than that of others must our work be, in every 
respect and
from every point of view, for the honour of the Master whom we 
serve. What
the work is that He gives us, matters little; that it should be 
nobly done
matters supremely. And the man who, all his life through, does the 
small, daily
details well and carefully, will not be found wanting when some day 
he suddenly
finds himself face to face with a great opportunity. 
The little
things in life weigh more than the big things; there are so many of 
them, and it
is so much more difficult to go on steadily doing them. Saint 
Augustine
remarked: “Many there be who will die for Christ, but few there be who 
will live for
Him.” Many of us would instantly and gladly do some great thing 
for the
Master; but He does not commonly ask for that. He asks us to live our 
daily life
nobly, not for ourselves but for others; to forget ourselves, only to 
remember the
good of mankind. Let us then form the habit of helpfulness-- for it 
soon becomes
a habit, like everything else. It certainly makes life more 
interesting;
and, above all, it brings us every day nearer to Him. 
WRITING A
LETTER 
I mentioned
some pages back that an occultist never despatches a letter without 
putting into
it something of strength and encouragement; but it does not need 
person of a
great advancement to perform so elementary an act of magic as this. 
Anyone may do
it with a little trouble, when be understands how these forces 
work. 
We all know
that when a psychometrist takes a letter into his hand he can 
describe the
personal appearance of the writer, the condition of his mind at the 
time of
writing, the room in which he was sitting, any other people who happened 
to be
present, and even the surrounding scenery. 
It is
manifest, therefore, that a letter brings with it much more than the 
message
written in it, and though only one who is developed as a psychometrist 
may be able
to sense this with sufficient clearness to reduce it to actual 
vision, yet
an effect of some sort must obviously be produced even upon those 
who do not
fully see. The vibrations upon which the psychometrist' s 
observations
are founded are there, whether there is or is not anyone present 
who can see
by their means, and they must affect to some extent anyone with whom 
they come
directly into contact. This being so, we see that here is an 
opportunity
for the person who understands. The student can learn the operation 
of these
forces, and can then direct them intelligently as he will. 
Suppose, for
example, he wishes to write a letter of condolence and consolation 
to some
friend who has, as we mistakenly phrase it, ` lost' some one near and 
dear to him.
We all know the difficulty of writing such a letter. In attempting 
it we put
upon the paper whatever of solace comes into our minds, and we try to 
express it as
forcefully and sympathetically as we can, yet we are conscious all 
the while
that words are impotent in such a case, and that they can bring but 
poor comfort
to the bereaved one. We feel the futility and inefficiency of our 
communication,
though we send it because we wish to express our commiseration, 
and we know
that we ought to do something. 
Such a letter
need not be fruitless and unavailing. On the contrary it may 
produce the
most beneficent effect, and may lead to great alleviation of 
suffering.
Words often fail us, but our thoughts do not; and in the writing of 
such a letter
a man' s heart may be filled with the strong wish to bring 
encouragement
and help, however poorly the written lines may express it. If he 
exercises his
will he may make that letter bear with it his thought and feeling, 
so that they
shall react upon the mind and emotions of the recipient, while his 
eyes are
perusing the manuscript. 
We know that
currents of thought and feeling can be sent to the mourner 
immediately
and without the physical agency of a letter, and one who has no 
other
pressing work could undoubtedly console and strengthen the sufferer by 
pouring upon
him a steady stream of such thought and feeling. The writing of the 
letter by no
means precludes the student from offering efficient help in that 
other way as
well; but it usefully supplements such work, and carries it on 
while the
student is otherwise engaged. 
Those who are
trying on their small scale to help the world soon find that they 
have a
multitude of cases upon their hands, and that they can work best by 
dividing
their time between them. The more advanced student will leave with each 
such case a
puissant thought-form, which will radiate invigoration and 
cheerfulness
until he can again turn his attention to that case. But one who has 
not yet
developed his powers to that extent may readily produce an effect almost 
equivalent,
if he has a physical basis upon which to found the thought-form. A 
letter
furnishes him with exactly such a basis, and into it he can pour healing 
and
strengthening forces until it becomes a veritable talisman. If the writer 
thinks
strongly of his sympathy and affection, and wills earnestly to charge the 
letter with
this thought and feeling, it will assuredly bear this message for 
him. When it
reaches its destination the friend who opens it will naturally 
recognise the
kindly intention of the sender, and by that very recognition will 
open himself
towards the influence, and adopt unconsciously a recipient 
attitude. As
he reads the written message, the helpful thoughts and feelings are 
playing all
the while upon his mind and emotions, and the effect produced upon 
him will be
out of all proportion to the mere physical words. 
The action of
the letter does not cease here. The recipient reads it, lays it 
aside and
perhaps forgets it, but its vibrations are nevertheless steadily 
radiating,
and they continue to influence him long after the letter itself has 
passed from
his mind. If he happens to put the letter in his pocket and carry it 
about with
him, its influence upon him will naturally be closer and stronger; 
but in any
case such a letter of helpfulness and good intention will fill the 
whole room
with peace and comfort, so that the mourner will feel its effect 
whenever he
enters his chamber, however unconscious he may be as to its source. 
Obviously it
is not only for consolation that this power can be employed. A 
mother, who
feels uneasy as to the temptations which may surround an absent son, 
may send him
letters which will encompass him with a halo of purity and peace, 
and bear him
unconscious and uncontaminated through many a scene of peril. A 
multitude of
words is not necessary; even a humble postcard may bear its message 
of love and
strength, and may be a real shield against evil thought, or an 
impulse in
the direction of good. 
It may occur
to some readers that a letter is handled by so many persons before 
it reaches
its destination that any magnetism that it might bring with it would 
necessarily
be of mixed character. There is much truth in this; but the postmen, 
the sorters
and the servants who handle it have no special interest in it, and 
consequently
such influence as their thoughts may exercise upon it is of the 
most
superficial character; whereas the writer has intentionally thrown into it 
a wealth of
feeling which has thoroughly permeated it and is strong enough to 
overpower all
casual connections of this sort. 
Incidentally
this helps us to understand that there is always a responsibility 
attached to
this action of writing a letter. We may charge our writing 
voluntarily
with a great force for good, and that needs a special effort of the 
will; but
even without any special effort, our mood when writing undoubtedly 
impresses itself
upon the paper, though naturally not so strongly. If therefore 
a man be in a
condition of irritation or depression when inditing a letter, 
these
emotions of his will be faithfully mirrored in his work, and the letter 
will bear
these vibrations with it and radiate them to the recipient, even 
though they
are not at all intended for him, and the original annoyance or 
depression
was in no way connected with him. If on the other hand the writer is 
serene and
happy, a letter for him, even though it be nothing but a curt 
business
communication, will contain within itself something of these qualities, 
and will
spread a good influence around it. 
It is
therefore exceedingly necessary that a person among whose duties it comes 
to write many
letters should cultivate serenity and kindliness, and should 
endeavour to
hold himself in a sympathetic and helpful frame of mind, in order 
that his
letters should carry with them this good influence. One who is captious 
and critical,
dictatorial and ill-tempered, is entirely unfit to hold any 
secretarial
position, as he will inevitably distribute discomfort and dissension 
to all those
who are so unfortunate as to have to correspond with him. 
The
preference which many sentimental people feel for a letter written in 
manuscript,
rather than for one produced by means of a typewriter, is due to the 
fact that in
passing the hand again and again over the paper a much greater 
amount of
personal magnetism is stored in the letter than when the hand does not 
come directly
into contact with it; though a student of occultism who writes a 
letter in
type charges it with magnetism by a single effort of his will far more 
effectually
than it is unconsciously charged when written by the hand of one who 
has not
learnt these truths. 
The occultist
extends this idea in many other directions. Every present which he 
gives to a
friend is made to produce a far more permanent result than the mere 
pleasure that
is caused by its arrival. If he gives or lends a book to some one, 
he does not
forget to add to the arguments of the author his own earnest desire 
that the
reader' s thoughts may be widened and liberalised. Let us all try to 
spread help
and blessing in this way; assuredly our efforts will not fail to 
bring about
their due effect. Every object about us must be a centre of 
influence,
and we may make its action strong or weak, useful or detrimental. It 
is for us
therefore to see that whenever we make a present to a friend its 
influence
shall be powerful and definite, and always for good. These matters are 
little
studied yet in the outer world, but they represent great truths for all 
that. Wise
men will pay attention to them and govern their lives accordingly, 
and thereby
make themselves both far happier and far more useful than those who 
are content
to remain ignorant of the higher science. 
WORK DURING
SLEEP 
One of the
most pleasing of the subsidiary points revealed to us by Theosophical 
study is that
of the possibility of usefully employing the hours during which 
the body is
sleeping. I well remember in my younger days how fiercely I resented 
the necessity
of spending time in sleep when there was such an overwhelming 
amount of
work to be done, and how I consequently tried to minimise the time 
devoted to
this. Being healthy and hardy, for some years I managed to exist on 
only four
hours of sleep each night, and thought that I was thereby gaining time 
for the work
which I had to do. Now that I know more about it, I realise that I 
was in error,
how that I could actually have increased my usefulness if I had 
allowed
myself to take an ordinary amount of rest, besides providing myself with 
a still
stronger body for the work of my later years. But it was indeed a 
comfort to me
when I found from the Theosophical literature that only the body 
is insensible
during sleep, and that the real man can continue his work and 
indeed do all
the more of it, and do it better, because he is untrammelled by 
his physical
vehicle. 
Yet even
Theosophical students, who are quite accustomed to think about the 
higher worlds
and the possibility of activity in them, often do not realise how 
entirely that
is the real life, and this in the physical world only an interlude 
in it. In our
waking consciousness most of us always consider the diurnal life 
as real, and
the nocturnal or dream life as unreal; but in truth the very 
reverse is
the case, as may easily be seen if we remember that in this life most 
of us know
nothing whatever of that , whereas in that life we remember the whole 
of this. This
life, therefore, has long daily breaks in its continuity; that is 
continuous
from the cradle to the grave and beyond it. Furthermore, because 
during that
life the physical body is for the time laid aside, the ego can 
manifest much
more of himself. The man in his astral body is much more nearly 
himself than
this fettered representation of him which is all that we can see 
down here.
When, later on in our evolution, further development takes place and 
the man can
function in his mental body, we are another whole stage nearer to 
the reality;
indeed, beyond that it is only one stage to the manifestation of 
the ego in
his causal body, having a unified consciousness which extends through 
all the ages,
from the time when long ago he rose from the animal kingdom to the 
infinity
which lies before him. 
Let us see
then what we can do with this life at night, while we leave our 
physical body
to its rest. Many forms of activity open before us, and as I have 
written fully
about them in the book called Invisible Helpers I will not repeat 
myself here.
I may summarise by saying that during our waking hours we can help 
anyone whom
we know to be in sorrow or suffering, by sitting down and forming a 
clear strong
thought-image of the sufferer, and then pouring out a stream of 
compassion,
affection and strength; but during the night we can do more than 
this-- we can
carry this treatment further, because we can ourselves go in the 
astral body and
stand by the bedside of the sufferer, so as to see exactly what 
is needed,
and give whatever may be specially required by the particular case, 
instead of
offering merely general comfort and consolation. 
Help and
encouragement, can be given not only to the living but also to the vast 
host of the
dead, and they often seriously need it, owing partly to the false 
and wicked
religious teaching which is so often given, and partly to the blank 
ignorance of
other-world conditions which obtains among the general public on 
this side of
the veil. In such work as this there is infinite variety, yet even 
this by no
means exhausts the possibilities which open before us. In the astral 
world we can
both give and receive instruction. From the anonymity of the astral 
world we can
assist, inspire and advise all sorts of people who would be 
unlikely to
listen to us physically. We can suggest good and liberal ideas to 
ministers and
statesmen, to poets and preachers, and to all the many varieties 
of writers in
books, magazines and newspapers. We can suggest alike plots to 
novelists and
good ideas to philanthropists. We are free to range wherever we 
will and to
do whatever work presents itself to us. Incidentally we can visit 
all the
interesting spots of the world, and see all its most magnificent 
buildings and
its most lovely scenery; its finest art and its grandest music are 
entirely at
our disposal, without money and without price, to say nothing, of 
the far
grander music and the far more splendid colouring of the astral world 
itself. 
What can a
man do down here to prepare himself to take part in that higher work? 
Well, the
life is a continuous life, and whatever characteristics a man shows 
here in his
physical body he will assuredly also show in his astral body. If 
here he is
full of cheerfulness and always anxious for an opportunity to do 
service--
then, even though he may remember nothing of it, he may be quite 
confident
that he is employing himself usefully to the utmost of his capacity in 
the astral
realm also. Any limitations of character which show themselves down 
here, such as
irritability, for example, are certainly contracting the sphere of 
his
usefulness in the astral world. And so, if a man who does not bring through 
any
recollection from that life wishes to make quite sure that he is well 
employed
there and is doing his full duty, he can easily be certain of it by 
carefully
making his life here such as he knows to be necessary for that 
purpose.
There is no mystery as to the requirements. Single-mindedness, 
calmness,
courage, knowledge and love will make a thoroughly useful astral 
worker, and
all these qualifications are within reach of any man who will take 
the trouble
to develop them in himself. 
It is not
difficult to see why all these are necessary. A man cannot throw all 
his energy
into such work as this unless the higher life is for him the one 
object.
Knowledge of the astral world, its habitants and its characteristics he 
must have;
otherwise he will constantly blunder, and will find himself helpless 
before every
emergency which arises. Courage he obviously needs, just as does 
the man who
plunges into unexplored jungles or trusts himself on the surface of 
the mighty
deep. Calmness also he must have, for though it is a sufficiently 
serious
matter for a man to loose his temper in the physical world, it is 
something
infinitely more serious when there is no physical matter to prevent 
the full
swing of the vibrations of anger. Any manifestations of irritability, 
excitement or
impatience in the astral world at once make him a fearsome object, 
so that those
whom he wishes to help fly from him in terror. Love of humanity, 
and the
consequent earnest desire to help, he must possess in the fullest 
degree, for
without that he can never have the patience to deal gently with the 
panic fear
and the unreasoning stupidity which we so often find among the dead. 
For many of
the cases with which we have to deal such exceeding gentleness and 
long-suffering
are required that no man, however energetic and earnest he may 
be, is of use
in dealing with them unless he is full of real affection and has 
his vehicles
perfectly under control. 
Much work is
done in the astral world besides that in which we are most 
specially
interested. Many physicians visit, during the sleep of the body, cases 
in which they
are keenly interested or about which they feel anxious. In most 
cases the man
in the physical body is not conscious of this, but any new 
information
that he gains from his astral investigations, often comes through as 
a kind of
intuition into the waking consciousness. I have known doctors who are 
able to do
this intentionally and in full consciousness, and naturally this 
capacity
gives them a great advantage over their colleagues. A doctor who dies, 
often
continues after death to take an interest in his patients, and sometimes 
endeavours to
cure them from the other side, or to suggest (to his successor in 
charge of the
case) treatment which, with his newly acquired astral faculty, he 
sees would be
useful. I knew one doctor (a member of our Society) who 
immediately
after his death went round to collect all his patients who had 
passed over
before him, and regularly preached Theosophy to them, so that he now 
goes about in
the astral world with a large band of attendant disciples. 
I have known
many cases also of friendships formed in the astral world. It often 
happens, for
example, that members of our Society who live at opposite sides of 
the world and
have no opportunity of meeting physically, yet know one another 
well in their
astral life. When they are actually on opposite sides of the world 
the day of
one is the night of the other, but there is generally sufficient 
overlapping
to make acquaintance possible. Those who are ready and effective 
lecturers in
the physical world usually continue their activities in that line 
during sleep.
Groups of students continue their meetings and, with the 
additional
facilities which the astral world gives to them, are frequently able 
to solve
problems which have presented difficulties down here. 
Not only dead
friends but living friends from the other side of the world are 
round us all
day long, although with our physical eyes we do not see them. We 
are never
alone, and as in the astral world most thoughts are visible, it 
behoves us to
bear that fact in mind, lest we should carelessly send out astral 
or mental
vibrations which would cause pain to those whom we love. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XXI 
BY COLLECTIVE
THOUGHT 
CHURCH HYMNS
AND RITUALS 
IN an earlier
chapter I have explained how the congregation and the parishioners 
are affected
by the ceremonies of the Church, and from what was then said it is 
not difficult
to see how the priest from his side can influence those about him. 
He has chosen
a position the responsibilities of which are great, and in order 
to discharge
them properly it is important that he should know something of the 
hidden side
of things, that he may understand the real meaning of the services 
of the Church
to which he belongs, and how to order them aright. 
Much
exception has been taken by the ignorant to the statement always made by 
the Church
that the celebration of the Eucharist is a daily repetition of the 
sacrifice of
the Christ. But when we understand from the occult point of view 
that that
sacrifice of the Christ means the descent into matter of the 
outpouring of
the Second Aspect of Deity, we see that the symbolism is an 
accurate one,
since the outflow of force evoked by the consecration has a 
special and
intimate connection with that department of nature which is the 
expression of
that divine Aspect. 
The priest
who comprehends this will not fail to assign to that service its due 
position, and
will take care to surround its culminating point with whatever in 
the way of
ritual and music will add to its effect and prepare the people to 
take part in
it more receptively. Realising also of how tremendous a mystery he 
is here the
custodian, he will approach its celebration with the utmost 
reverence and
awe, for though his attitude towards it makes no difference to the 
central fact
and to its effects, there is no doubt that his deep devotion, his 
comprehension
and co-operation can bring down an additional influence which will 
be of the
greatest help to his congregation and his parish. A priest who has the 
advantage of
being also an occultist has a magnificent opportunity of widespread 
usefulness. 
As a student
of magic, he appreciates to the full, the effect produced by music, 
and knows how
to utilise it so as to produce harmonious and powerful forms. A 
great deal
may be done by inducing the congregation as far as possible to join 
in the music
of the church. It is impossible that they should do so in the 
production of
the more elaborate and magnificent forms, which produce 
far-reaching
effects at higher levels, but they themselves may be helped to an 
almost incalculable
extent if they can be induced to join heartily in stirring 
and
well-chosen hymns and chants. 
This has been
more fully recognised by the English branch of the Catholic Church 
than by the
Roman, and a corresponding advantage has been reaped. The powerful 
influence of
the corresponding advantage has been reaped. The powerful influence 
of the
processional hymn must not be neglected, for this operates usefully in 
all
directions; first, by bringing the choir down among the congregation and 
moving them
slowly through the different sections of it, the people are greatly 
encouraged
and helped to throw themselves with vigour into the singing. 
Secondly, the
splendid appearance of a well-organised procession, the colour and 
light, the
rich banners and splendid vestments, all combine to fire the 
imagination,
to raise the people' s thoughts above the prosaic level of ordinary 
life, and to
help their devotion and enthusiasm. 
CONGREGATIONS
Many of these
considerations apply also to ministers of other denominations. 
Though they
have not the power of the priest which brings them into touch with 
the reservoir
of force arranged by the Christ for his Church, they may do a 
great deal
for their congregations, first by their own devotion and secondly by 
evoking that
of their people. The resources of congregational music are at their 
disposal, and
if they can work their followers up to the required level, they 
also may
produce the wonderful results which flow from the combined devotion of 
a large number
of people. 
A grand
outpouring of force, and a magnificent and effective collective 
thought-form
can thus be made by a gathering of men who join heartily in a 
service; but
there is generally great difficulty in obtaining this result, 
because the
members of the average congregation are entirely untrained in 
concentration,
and consequently the collective thought-form is usually a broken 
and chaotic
mass, instead of a splendid and organised whole. When it happens 
that a number
of occult students belong to such an assembly, they can be of 
great use to
their fellow-worshippers by consciously gathering together the 
scattered
streams of devotion and welding them into one harmonious and mighty 
current. It
is evident at once that every member of congregation has here a 
definite
duty. 
MONASTERIES 
Better
results than those produced by an ordinary congregation are frequently 
obtained from
the united devotions of a body of monks, because they have 
gradually
trained themselves into something approaching to concentration, and 
are also well
used to working together. The influence flowing from a monastery 
or nunnery of
the contemplative order is often beautiful and most helpful to the 
whole
country-side-- a fact which shows clearly how foolish and short-sighted is 
the objection
sometimes made by the Protestant that, while the active orders of 
monks are at
least doing good work among the poor and the sick, those who adopt 
a
contemplative line are merely dreaming away their lives in selfish isolation 
from the rest
of the world. 
In most of
such monasteries the hours of prayer are strictly observed, and the 
effect of
this is a regular out-flow of force over the neighbourhood many times 
each day.
There are some such institutions in which the scheme of perpetual 
adoration is
carried out before the consecrated Host in the chapel of the 
monastery,
and in such a case there is a steady and powerful stream always 
pouring out,
both night and day, bringing to the surrounding country a benefit 
which can
hardly be overestimated. 
EFFECT UPON
THE DEAD 
The effect
produced in all these cases is far wider than the ordinary thinker 
realises. The
young student of occultism, if he does not happen to be 
clairvoyant,
sometimes finds it difficult to remember that the host of the 
unseen is so
much greater than the number of the seen, and that therefore the 
people who
benefit by church services or by outpourings of collective thought 
and feeling
are not only the living but also the dead-- not only human beings 
even, but
great hosts of nature-spirits and of the lower orders of the angels. 
Naturally,
whatever feeling may be aroused in them reacts upon us in turn, so 
that many
different factors combine to strengthen us when we make any effort for 
good. 
The Christian
Church directs some of her efforts intentionally towards her 
departed
members, and prayers and masses for the dead are a great feature of the 
life in
Catholic countries. A most useful feature certainly; for not only do the 
good wishes
and the outpourings of force reach and help those at whom they are 
aimed, but
also the formation of such prayers and wishes is a good and 
charitable
undertaking for the living, besides providing them with a 
satisfactory
and consolatory outlet for their feelings in the shape of doing 
something to
help the departed instead of merely mourning for them. 
SAVING SOULS 
Hundreds of
good and earnest people are putting a great deal of strength and 
devotion into
efforts (as they put it) to “save souls”-- which to them generally 
means
imprisoning people within the limits of some particularly narrow and 
uncharitable
sect. Fortunately, their endeavours in this particular direction 
are not often
successful. But we must not suppose that all their energy and 
thought for
others is therefore necessarily wasted. It does not do half the good 
that it would
if it were intelligently directed; but such as it is, it is 
unselfish and
kindly meant, and so it brings down a certain amount of response 
from higher
levels, which is poured upon both the petitioner and the object of 
his prayers.
If the suppliant be earnest and free from conceit, Nature answers 
the spirit
rather than the letter of such a request, and brings general good and 
advancement
to its object without also inflicting upon him the curse of a narrow 
theology. 
PEOPLE WHO
DISLIKE CEREMONIES 
There are in
the world many people so constituted that ceremonies of any sort do 
not appeal to
them. It may be asked what kind of provision Nature makes for 
them, and how
they are compensated for their inability to appreciate or to share 
in the
benefits of these various lines of ecclesiastical influence of which I 
have written.
First to a considerable extent they do share in the benefit of 
them, though
they would probably be the last people to admit it. Perhaps they 
never enter
churches; but I have already described how these influences radiate 
far beyond
the mere buildings, and how the vibrations are sent out on all 
levels, and
consequently have something which affects all varieties of people. 
Still, it is
clear that such men miss a good deal which the others may gain if 
they will;
what sources then are open to them from which they may obtain 
corresponding
advance? They cannot well gain the same uplifting-- nor, I 
suppose,
would they desire it; but they may gain a mental stimulus. Just as the 
thought of
the great saint, radiating out all round him, arouses devotion in 
those who are
capable of feeling it, so does the thought of the great man of 
science, or
of anyone who is highly developed intellectually, radiate out upon 
the mental
level and affect the minds of others, so far as they are capable of 
responding to
it. Its action stimulates mental development, though it does not 
necessarily
act so directly upon the character and disposition of the man as 
does the
other influence. 
Perfect
knowledge must make for goodness of life as much as perfect devotion; 
but we are as
yet so far from perfection that in practical life we have to deal 
rather with
the intermediate or even elementary stages, and it seems clear that 
elementary
knowledge is less likely on the whole to affect the character than 
elementary
devotion. Both are necessary, and before Adeptship is reached both 
must be
acquired in their entirety; but at present we are so partially developed 
that the vast
majority of men are aiming at one and to some extent neglecting 
the other-- I
mean, of course, the majority of those men who are trying at all, 
for the
greater part of the world has not arrived as yet at recognising the 
necessity for
either knowledge or devotion. The only organisation, in western 
countries at
least, which fully meets and satisfies man' s requirements along 
both these
lines appears to me to be the Theosophical Society, and its meetings, 
small and
unimportant though they may seem to an outsider, are capable when 
properly
managed of radiating a powerful influence which will be exceedingly 
useful to the
community. 
THEOSOPHICAL
MEETINGS 
A meeting may
produce most important results, not only for those who take part 
in it, but
for their unconscious neighbours. But in order that it may do this, 
the members
must understand the hidden side of their meeting, and must work with 
a view to
produce the highest possible effects. Many members utterly overlook 
this most
important part of their work, and have in consequence quite an 
unworthy idea
of what the work of a Lodge is. 
I have
sometimes heard a member frankly confess that the Lodge meetings are 
often rather
dull, and so he does not always attend them. A member who makes 
such a remark
has not grasped the most rudimentary facts about the work of the 
Lodge; he
evidently supposes that it exists for the purpose of amusing him, and 
if its
meetings are not interesting to him he thinks that he is better off at 
home. The
excuse for such an attitude (if there is an excuse) is that through 
many lives,
and probably through the earlier part of this life, such a man has 
been looking
at everything entirely from the outside and from the selfish point 
of view, and
he is only now gradually accustoming himself to the true and higher 
standpoint--
the common-sense attitude which takes account of all the factors, 
the higher as
well as the lower and less important. 
The person
who attends a meeting for the sake of what he can get, or to be 
entertained
there, is thinking of himself only and not of his Lodge or of the 
Society. We
should join the Society not for anything that we get from it, but 
because,
having satisfied ourselves of the truth of what it proclaims, we are 
anxious to
spread that truth to others as far as possible. If we are merely 
selfish in regard
to this matter, we can buy the Theosophical books and study 
them without
belonging to the Society at all. We join it for the sake of 
spreading the
teaching, and for the sake of understanding it better by 
discussing it
with those who have spent years in trying to live it. We who 
belong to it
do get a good deal from it, in the way of instruction and of help 
in
understanding difficult points, of brotherly feeling and of kindly thought. 
I know that I
have received much of all these things during my thirty years of 
membership,
but I am quite sure that if I had joined the Society with the idea 
of getting
something out of it, I should not have gained half of what I have. In 
my experience
of the Society I have seen over and over again that the person who 
comes in with
the idea “What shall I get?” gains little, because so far as the 
flowing of
higher forces goes he is a cul-de-sac ; he is what plumbers call a 
“dead end,”
out of which nothing is running. What can there be in the dead end 
of a pipe but
a little stagnant water? But if the pipe be open and the water 
flows freely,
then a vast amount may pass through. 
In the same
way, if members come to a meeting, thinking all the time about 
themselves,
and how they like what is said or done, they assuredly gain but 
little good
from it, compared to what they might gain if their attitude were 
more
rational. No doubt such people have spasms of unselfishness; but that is 
insufficient.
The whole life of a member ought to be devoted to trying to fill 
his place
well, and to do his duty to the utmost of his power. Therefore, being 
a member of
the Society and of a Lodge, he has his duty to do from that point of 
view also. If
a member says that Lodge meetings are dull, one always feels 
inclined to
begin by asking him: “What are you doing to allow them to be dull? 
You are there
also and it is your business to see that things are kept going as 
far as may
be.” If each individual member feels resting upon him the duty of 
trying to
make each meeting a success, it will be much more likely to succeed 
than if he
goes there just to be amused or even merely to be instructed. 
Let us
consider then the hidden side of the meeting of a Theosophical Lodge. 
For the
purposes of our illustration I will take the ordinary weekly meetings, 
at which the
Lodge is prosecuting its definite line of study. I am referring to 
the meetings
of members of the Lodge only, for the occult effect which I wish to 
describe is
impossible in connection with any meetings to which non-members are 
admitted. 
Naturally the
work of every Lodge has its public side. There are lectures given 
to the
public, and opportunities offered for their questions; all this is good 
and necessary.
But every Lodge which is worthy of the name is also doing 
something far
higher than any work in the physical world, and this higher work 
can only be
done by virtue of its own private meetings. Furthermore, it can be 
done only if
these private meetings are properly conducted and entirely 
harmonious.
If the members are thinking of themselves in any way-- if they have 
personal
vanity, such as might show itself in the desire to shine or to take a 
prominent
part in the proceeding; if they have other personal feelings, so that 
they would be
capable of taking offence or of being affected by envy or 
jealousy-- no
useful occult effect can possibly be produced. But if they have 
forgotten
themselves in the earnest endeavour to comprehend the subject 
appointed for
study, a considerable and beneficial result, of which they usually 
have no
conception, may readily be produced. Let me explain the reason of this. 
We will
assume a series of meetings at which a certain book is being used for 
study. Every
member knows beforehand what paragraph or page will be taken at the 
approaching
meeting, and it is expected that he shall take the trouble to 
prepare
himself to bear his part in it intelligently. He must not be in the 
attitude of
the young nestling, waiting with open mouth and expecting that 
someone else
will feed him; on the contrary, every member should have an 
intelligent
comprehension of the subject which is to be considered, and should 
be prepared
to contribute his share of information with regard to it. 
A good plan
is for each member of the circle to make himself responsible for the 
examination
of certain of our Theosophical books-- one taking the first volume 
of The Secret
Doctrine, let us say, another the second, another the third, 
another The
Ancient Wisdom, another Esoteric Buddhism, and so on. Some of the 
members could
easily take two or three of the smaller books, and on the other 
hand, if the
Lodge be large enough, a volume of The Secret Doctrine might very 
well be
divided among several members, each taking up a hundred or a hundred and 
fifty pages.
The exact subject to be considered at the next meeting is announced 
at the
previous one, and each member makes himself responsible for looking 
carefully
through the book or books committed to his charge for any reference to 
it, so that
when he comes to the meeting he is already possessed of any 
information
about it which is contained in that particular book, and is prepared 
to contribute
this when called upon. In this way every member has his work to 
do, and each
is greatly helped to a full and clear comprehension of the matter 
under
consideration, because all present are thus earnestly fixing their thought 
upon it. When
the meeting opens, the chairman will first appoint some one to 
read the
passage chosen for study, and will then ask each member in turn what, 
if anything,
his book has to say which bears upon it. After all have thus borne 
their part,
questions may be asked and any points which are not quite clear may 
be discussed.
If any question arises which the older members present do not feel 
themselves
fully competent to answer, it should be written out and sent to the 
Headquarters
of the Society. 
If some such
plan as that be adopted, no one will have reason to complain of the 
dullness of
the meetings, for every member will exert himself to bear his own 
part in each
of them. Each must go to the meeting in a spirit of helpfulness, 
thinking of
what he can contribute and in what way he can be useful, for upon 
the attitude of
mind much depends. 
Let us
consider what effect such a meeting will produce upon the neighbourhood 
in which it
is held. We have already noted that a Church service is a powerful 
centre of
influence; how does a Theosophical meeting act in this respect? 
To understand
that, recall for a moment what has been said as to the action of 
thought. The
thought-wave may be generated at various levels of the mental body. 
A selfish
thought uses the lowest kind of mental matter, while an unselfish 
thought, or
an attempt to comprehend some elevated idea, uses the higher kinds 
only. An
intense effort at the realisation of the abstract-- an attempt to 
comprehend
what is meant by the fourth dimension or by the tabularity of a 
table--
means, if successful, a dawning activity of the causal body; while if 
the thought
is mingled with unselfish affection, with high aspiration or 
devotion, it
is even possible that a vibration of the intuitional world may 
enter into it
and multiply its power a hundredfold. 
The distance
to which a thought-wave can radiate effectively, depends partly 
upon its
nature and partly upon the opposition with which it meets. Waves in the 
lower types
of astral matter are usually soon deflected or overwhelmed by a 
multitude of
other vibrations at the same level, just as in the midst of the 
roar of a
great city a soft sound is entirely drowned. 
For this
reason the ordinary self-centred thought of the average man, which 
begins on the
lowest of the mental levels, and instantly plunges down to 
correspondingly
low levels of the astral, is comparatively ineffective. Its 
power in both
the worlds is limited, because, however violent it may be, there 
is such an
immense and turbulent sea of similar thought surging all around that 
its waves are
inevitably soon lost and overpowered in that confusion. A thought 
generated at
a higher level, however, has a much clearer field for its action, 
because at
present the number of thoughts producing such waves is very small-- 
indeed,
Theosophical thought is almost a class by itself from this point of 
view. There
are religious people whose thought is quite as elevated as ours, but 
never so
precise and definite; there are large numbers of people whose thoughts 
on matters of
business and money-making are as precise as could be desired, but 
they are not
elevated or altruistic. Even scientific thought is scarcely ever in 
the same
class as that of the true Theosophist, so that our students have 
practically a
field to themselves in the mental world. 
The result of
this is that when a man thinks on Theosophical subjects, he is 
sending out
all round him a wave which is powerful because it is practically 
unopposed,
like a sound in the midst of a vast silence, or a light shining forth 
on the
darkest night. It sets in motion a level of mental matter which is as yet 
but rarely
used, and the radiations which are caused by it impinge upon the 
mental body
of the average man at a point where it is quite dormant. This gives 
to such
thought its peculiar value, not only to the thinker but to others round 
him; for its
tendency is to awaken and to bring into use an entirely new part of 
the thinking
apparatus. Such a wave does not necessarily convey Theosophical 
thought to
those who are ignorant of it; but in awakening this higher portion of 
the mental
body, it tends to elevate and liberalise the man' s thought as a 
whole, along
whatever lines it may be in the habit of moving, and in this way 
produces an
incalculable benefit. 
If the
thought of a single man produces these results, the thought of twenty or 
thirty people
directed to the same subject will achieve an effect enormously 
greater. The
power of the united thought of a number of men is always far more 
than the sum
of their separate thoughts; it would be much more nearly 
represented
by their product. So it will be seen that, even from this point of 
view alone,
it is an exceedingly good thing for any city or community that a 
Theosophical
Lodge should be constantly meeting in its midst, for its 
proceedings,
if they are conducted in a proper spirit, cannot but have a 
distinctly
elevating and ennobling effect upon the thought of the surrounding 
population.
Naturally there are many people whose minds cannot yet be awakened 
at all upon those
higher levels; but even for them the constant beating of the 
waves of this
more advanced thought at least brings nearer the time of their 
awakening. 
Nor must we
forget the result produced by the formation of definite 
thought-forms.
These also are radiated from the centre of activity, but they can 
affect only
such minds as are already to some extent responsive to ideas of this 
nature. In
these days, however, there are many such minds, and our members can 
attest the
fact that after they have been discussing such a question as 
reincarnation
it not infrequently happens that they are themselves asked for 
information
upon that subject by persons whom they had not previously supposed 
to be
interested in it. The thought-form is capable of conveying the exact 
nature of the
thought to those who are somewhat prepared to receive it, whereas 
the
thought-vibration, though it reaches a far wider circle, is much less 
definite in
its action. 
Here is
already a momentous effect upon the mental level, produced quite 
unintentionally
by our members in the ordinary course of their study-- something 
far greater
in reality than their intentional efforts in the way of propaganda 
are ever
likely to produce. But this is not all, for by far the most important 
part is yet
to come. Every Lodge of this Society is a centre of interest to the 
Great Masters
of the Wisdom, and when it works well and loyally Their thoughts 
and those of
Their pupils are frequently turned towards it. In this way a force 
more exalted
than our own may often shine out from our gatherings, and an 
influence of
inestimable value may be focused where, so far as we know, it would 
not otherwise
specially rest. This may indeed seem the ultimate limit which our 
work can
attain; yet there is something beyond even this. 
All students
of the occult are aware that the Life and Light of the Deity flood 
the whole of
His system-- that in every world, at every level, is outpoured from 
Him that
especial manifestation of His strength which is appropriate to it. 
Naturally,
the higher the world, the less veiled is His glory, because as we 
ascend we are
drawing nearer to its Source. Normally the force outpoured in each 
world is
strictly limited to it; but it can descend into and illuminate a lower 
level if a
special channel be prepared for it. 
Such a
channel is always provided whenever any thought or feeling has an 
entirely
unselfish aspect. The selfish emotion moves in a closed curve, and so 
brings its
own response on its own level; the utterly unselfish emotion is an 
outrush of
energy which does not return, but in its upward movement provides a 
channel for a
downpouring of divine Power from the level next above, which is 
the reality
lying at the back of the old idea of the answer to prayer. 
To a
clairvoyant this channel is visible as a great vortex, a kind of gigantic 
cylinder or
funnel. This is the nearest we can come to explaining it in the 
physical
world, but it does not really give at all an adequate idea of its 
appearance,
for as the force flows down through the channel it somehow makes 
itself one
with the vortex, and issues from it coloured by it, and bearing with 
it
distinctive characteristics which show through what channel it has come. 
Such a
channel can be made only if all the thought is earnest and harmonious. I 
do not mean
that there must be no discussion at the meetings, but that all such 
discussion
must invariably be of the most friendly character, and conducted with 
the fullest
brotherly feeling. We must never suppose that a man differs from us 
is
necessarily weak in thought or uncomprehending. There are always at least two 
sides to
every question, so that the man who disagrees may often simply be 
seeing
another side. If that is so, we may gather something from him and he 
something
from us, and in that way we may do each other good; but if we become 
angry over a
discussion we do each other harm and the harmony of the 
thought-waves
is lost. One such thought as that so often spoils a beautiful 
effect. I
have seen that happen many times-- a number of people working along 
quite happily
and building up a beautiful channel; suddenly some one of them 
will say
something unkind or personal, and then in a moment the thing breaks up, 
and the
opportunity to help is lost. 
Whenever
anyone is speaking, or reading a paragraph, or trying to do anything 
helpful, try
for the time to help him, and do not be everlastingly thinking how 
much better
you could do it yourself. Do not criticise, but give him the aid of 
your thought.
You may afterwards enquire as to any points that are not clear, 
but do not at
the time send a hostile or critical thought against him, because 
if you do you
may interfere with the sequence of his thought and spoil his 
lecture. Make
a mental note of any point about which you wish to ask, but for 
the time try
to see what good there is in what he says, as in that way you will 
strengthen
him. 
A clairvoyant
sees the current of thought flowing out from the lecturer, and 
other
currents of comprehension and appreciation rising from the audience and 
joining with
it; but critical thought meets it with an opposing rate of 
vibration,
breaks up the stream, and throws it all into confusion. One who sees 
this
influence in action will find these considerations so forcibly impressed 
upon him that
he is little likely to forget them and act contrary to them. The 
helpful
thoughts of members of his audience tend to make a lecturer' s 
presentation
clearer, and to impress it upon those to whom it is not familiar. 
For this
reason members should be present even at public lectures upon the most 
elementary
subjects delivered by their fellows, in order that they, who 
understand
thoroughly, may help the lecturer by making clear thought-forms 
connected
with his subject, which will impress themselves upon the minds of the 
public who
are trying to understand. 
The man who
is occupied in the earnest study of higher things is for the time 
lifted
entirely out of himself, and generates a powerful thought-form in the 
mental world,
which is immediately employed as a channel by the force hovering 
in the world
next above. When a body of men join together in a thought of this 
nature, the
channel which they make is out of all proportion larger in its 
capacity than
the sum of their separate channels; and such a body of men is 
therefore an
inestimable blessing to the community amidst which it works, for 
through them
(even in their most ordinary meetings for study, when they are 
considering
such subjects as rounds and races and planetary chains) there may 
come an
outpouring into the lower mental world of that force which is normally 
peculiar to
the higher mental; while if they turn their attention to the higher 
side of the
Theosophical teaching, and study such questions of ethics and of 
soul-development
as we find in At the Feet of the Master, Light on the Path, The 
Voice of the
Silence and our other devotional books, they may make a channel of 
more elevated
thought through which the force of the intuitional world itself 
may descend
into the mental, and thus radiate out an influence for good upon 
many a soul
who would not be in the least open to the action of that force if it 
had remained
on its original level. 
This is the
real and the greatest function of a Lodge of the Theosophical 
Society-- to
furnish a channel for the distribution of the Divine Life; and thus 
we have
another illustration to show us how far greater is the unseen than the 
seen. To the
dim physical eye all that is visible is a small band of humble 
students
meeting weekly in the earnest endeavour to learn and to qualify 
themselves to
be of use to their fellow-men; but to those who can see more of 
the world,
from this tiny root there springs a glorious flower, for no less than 
four mighty
streams of influence are radiating from that seemingly insignificant 
centre-- the
stream of thought-waves, the cluster of thought-forms, the 
magnetism of
the Masters of the Wisdom, and the mighty torrent of the Divine 
Energy. 
Here also is
an instance of the eminently practical importance of a knowledge of 
the unseen
side of life. For lack of such knowledge many a member has been lax 
in the
performance of his duty, careless as to his attendance at Lodge meetings; 
and thus he
has lost the inestimable privilege of being part of a channel for 
the Divine
Life. Such a man has not yet grasped the elementary fact that he 
joined not to
receive but to give, not to be interested and amused, but to take 
his share in
a mighty work for the good of mankind. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XXII 
BY OUR
RELATION TO CHILDREN 
FROM the
Theosophic standpoint the subject of our relation to children is an 
exceedingly
important and practical one. If we realise the purpose for which the 
ego descends
into incarnation, and if we know to how great an extent its 
attainment of
that purpose depends upon the training given to its various 
vehicles
during their childhood and growth, we cannot but feel that a tremendous 
responsibility
attaches to all who are in any way connected with children, 
whether as
parents, elder relatives, or teachers. It is well, therefore, that we 
should
consider what hints Theosophy can give us as to the way in which we can 
best discharge
this responsibility. 
What is the
present condition of our relation to children-- to boys, at any 
rate-- here
in the midst of our European civilisation? The practical result of 
nineteen
centuries of ostensibly Christian teaching is that our boys live among 
us as an
alien race, with laws and rules of life of their own, entirely 
different
from ours, and with a code of morals of their own, also entirely 
different
from that by which we consider ourselves bound. They regard grown-up 
people (in the
mass) with scarcely veiled hostility, or, at the best, with a 
kind of armed
neutrality, and always with deep distrust, as foreigners whose 
motives are
incomprehensible to them, and whose actions are perpetually 
interfering
in the most unwarrantable and apparently malicious manner with their 
right to
enjoy themselves in their own way. 
This may
sound rather a startling statement to those who have never considered 
the matter,
but any parent who has boys at one of our large schools will 
appreciate
the truth of it; and if he can look back to his own school-days, and 
in thought
realise once more the feelings and conditions of that period (which 
most of us
have so entirely forgotten), he will recognise, perhaps with a start 
of surprise,
that it is not an inaccurate description of what his own attitude 
once was. 
Whenever the
laws and customs of this race (living among us, yet not us) differ 
from ours,
they are invariably a reversion to an earlier type, and tend in the 
direction of
primitive savagery-- a fact which might be cited in support of the 
Theosophical
theory that in each incarnation, before the ego has acquired 
control of
his vehicles, the earlier stages of our evolution are hurriedly run 
through once
more. The only right recognised among them is the right of the 
strongest;
the boy who rules their little State is not the best boy, nor the 
cleverest
boy, but the one who can fight best; and their leadership is usually 
decided by
combat, just as it is to this day among many a savage tribe. 
Their code of
morals is distinctly their own, and though it cannot be so 
directly
paralleled among primitive races as some of their other customs, it is 
decidedly on
a lower level than even our own. To oppress and ill-treat the weak, 
and even
torture them to the utmost limit of endurance, seems to be thought a 
comparatively
innocent form of recreation, and it would be only an unusually 
severe case
which would arouse even a passing manifestation of public opinion 
against the
offender. The theft of money is, happily, regarded as contemptible, 
but the theft
of fruit or jam is not; nor, indeed, would the stealing of 
anything
eatable be considered criminal. Falsehood of the most outrageous kind 
is considered
as not only allowable but amusing, when practised upon some 
too-credulous
youngster; if restored to in order to conceal from an adult the 
misdeeds of a
fellow-criminal, it is often looked upon as heroic and noble. But 
the most
heinous crime of all-- the very lowest abyss of turpitude-- is to call 
in the
intervention of a grown-up person to right even the most flagrant wrongs; 
and many a
weak and nervous child endures agonies both physically and mentally 
from the
barbarity of bullies without breathing a word of his sufferings either 
to parent or
teacher-- so deep is the distrust with which public opinion amongst 
boys regards
the hostile race of adults. 
In spite of
the terrible suffering which it frequently entails upon the weak and 
sensitive
boy, I am in no way blind to the good side of public-school life-- to 
the courage
and self-reliance, which it gives to the strong and hardy lad, and 
the training
in the command of the others with which it provides the members of 
its higher
forms. I suppose that England is the only country on earth where the 
maintenance
of order in the small world of school life can be (and is) left 
practically
in the hands of the boys themselves, and there is much in this to be 
highly
commended; but I am at present concerned with the relations between boys 
as a class
and adults as a class, and it can hardly be denied that on the whole 
these are
somewhat strained, the distrust of which I have spoken on the one side 
being
frequently met by dislike and entire want of comprehension on the other. 
Many a man
(or woman) thinks of boys only as noisy, dirty, greedy, clumsy, 
selfish and
generally objectionable; and he never realises that there may be a 
good deal of
selfishness in this point of view of his, and that if any part of 
his
indictment is true, the fault is not so much in the boys themselves as in 
the
unreasonable way in which they have been brought up; furthermore, that in 
any case his
duty is not to widen the chasm between them and himself by adopting 
an attitude
of dislike and distrust, but rather to endeavour to improve the 
position of
affairs by judicious kindness and hearty, patient friendliness and 
sympathy. 
Surely there
is something wrong about such unsatisfactory relations; surely some 
improvement
might be brought about in this unfortunate condition of mutual 
hostility and
mistrust. There are honourable exceptions; there are boys who 
trust their
masters, and masters who trust their boys, and I myself have never 
found any
difficulty in winning the confidence of the juveniles by treating them 
properly; but
in a sadly large number of instances the case is as I have 
described it.
That it need
not be so is shown, not only by the exceptions mentioned above, but 
by the
condition of affairs which we find existing in some Oriental lands. I 
have not yet
had the pleasure of visiting the Empire of Japan, but I hear from 
those who
have been there and have made some study of this question, that there 
is no country
in the world where children are so well and so sensibly treated-- 
where their
relations with their elders are so completely satisfactory. 
Harshness, it
is said, is entirely unknown, yet the children in no way presume 
upon the
gentleness of the older people. 
Indeed, no
properly treated child ever does or ever would so presume in any 
country. If
he could do so, it would be a clear indication that the adult had 
failed in his
management. All harshness in the treatment of children is a relic 
of savagery;
it may be that when we were at the level of the stone-age we knew 
no better,
but in these days of supposed enlightenment it is simply criminal. 
The
intentional infliction of pain upon any living creature is one of the most 
serious of
sins, and the karma which follows upon it is of the most appalling 
character.
The suggestion that it is intended to produce a good result is no 
excuse
whatever; in this case, as in all others, it can never be right to do 
evil that
good may come. And that quite apart from the fact that good never does 
come. Nothing
but the most horrible evil results from the common delusion on 
this subject.
The whole
thing is an abomination which cries to heaven for a remedy, just as is 
the ghastly,
ceaseless slaughter of animals in order that men may degrade 
themselves by
putting into their bodies a peculiarly unsuitable and 
objectionable
form of food. In both these case-- the ill-treatment of children 
and the
slaughter of animals-- we, in England, are in a condition of absolute 
barbarism;
and the men of the future, looking back upon this time, will find it 
impossible to
understand how such utterly horrible practices could co-exist with 
the knowledge
of philosophy, ethics and religion which we possess. Our eyes are 
blinded to
the wickedness of these things by the glamour of custom; but anyone 
who studies
the hidden side of things soon learns that custom is an entirely 
unreliable
guide and that he must face the facts of nature as they are, and not 
as ignorant
people suppose them to be. 
This almost
universal cruelty to children is the reason for the lack of 
confidence
between them and adults; if we treat them as savages we are doing our 
best to
induce them to act as savages. The incompetent parent or teacher 
pretends that
he intentionally injures a child with a view to correcting his 
faults; if he
knew anything of the real facts of life he would be aware that the 
effect of
such injury is in every case far worse than that of the fault which he 
imagines
himself to be trying to correct. His method is so entirely irrational 
that it seems
to the occultist like the crazy inconsequence of a nightmare-- all 
the more so
when we think of the vast mass of hatred, hostility and 
misunderstanding
for which it is responsible. 
But how, it
may be asked, is it proposed that this position of mutual mistrust 
and
misunderstanding should be improved ? Well, it is evident that in cases 
where this
breach already exists, it can only be bridged over by unwearying 
kindness, and
by gradual, patient, but constant efforts to promote a better 
understanding
by steadily showing unselfish affection and sympathy; in fact, by 
habitually
putting ourselves in the child' s place and trying to realise exactly 
how all these
matters appear to him. If we, who are adults, had not so entirely 
forgotten our
own childish days, we should make far greater allowances for the 
children of
to-day, and should understand and get on with them much better. 
This is,
however, emphatically one of the cases in which the old proverb holds 
good, which
tells us that prevention is better than cure. If we will but take a 
little
trouble to begin in the right way with our children from the first, we 
shall easily
be able to avoid the undesirable state of affairs which we have 
been
describing. And this is exactly where Theosophy has many a valuable hint to 
offer to
those who are in earnest in wishing to do their duty by the young ones 
committed to
their charge. 
THE DUTY OF
PARENTS 
The absolute
nature of this duty of parents and teachers towards children must 
first be
recognised. It cannot be too strongly or too repeatedly insisted upon 
that
parentage is an exceedingly heavy responsibility of a religious nature, 
however
lightly and thoughtlessly it may often be undertaken. Those who bring a 
child into
the world make themselves directly responsible to the law of karma 
for the
opportunities of evolution which they ought to give to that ego, and 
heavy indeed
will be their penalty if by their carelessness or selfishness they 
put
hindrances in his path, or fail to render him all the help and guidance 
which he has
a right to expect from them. Yet how often the modern parent 
entirely
ignores this obvious responsibility; how often a child is to him 
nothing but a
cause of fatuous vanity or an object of thoughtless neglect! 
If we want to
understand our duty towards the child we must first consider how 
he came to be
what he is; we must trace him back in thought to his previous 
incarnation.
Whatever may have been his outward circumstances at that time, he 
had a
definite disposition of his own-- a character containing various more or 
less
developed qualities, some good and some bad. 
In due course
of time that life of his came to an end; but whether that end came 
slowly by
disease or old age, or swiftly by some accident or violence, its 
advent made
no sudden change of any sort in his character. A curious delusion 
seems to
prevail in many quarters that the mere fact of death at once turns a 
demon into a
saint-- that, whatever a man' s life may have been, the moment he 
dies he
becomes practically an angel of goodness. No idea could possibly be 
further from
the truth, as those whose work lies in trying to help the departed 
know full
well. The casting off of a man' s physical body no more alters his 
disposition
than does the casting off of his overcoat; he is precisely the same 
man the day
after his death as he was the day before, with the same vices and 
the same
virtues. 
True, now
that he is functioning only in the astral world he has not the same 
opportunities
of displaying them; but though they may manifest themselves in the 
astral life
in a different manner, they are none the less still there, and the 
conditions
and duration of that life are their result. In that world he must 
stay until
the energy poured forth by his lower desires and emotions during 
physical life
has worn itself out-- until the astral body which he has made for 
himself,
disintegrates; for only then can he leave it for the higher and more 
peaceful
realm of the heaven-world. But though those particular passions are the 
time worn out
and done with for him, the germs of the qualities in him, which 
made it
possible for them to exist in his nature, are still there. They are 
latent and
ineffective, certainly, because desire of that type requires astral 
matter for
its manifestation; they are what Madame Blavatsky once called 
“privations
of matter,” but they are quite ready to come into renewed activity, 
if
stimulated, when the man again finds himself under conditions where they can 
act. 
An analogy
may perhaps, if not pushed too far, be of use in helping us to grasp 
this idea. If
a small bell be made to ring continuously in an air-tight vessel, 
and the air
be then gradually withdrawn, the sound will grow fainter and 
fainter,
until it becomes inaudible. The bell is still ringing as vigorously as 
ever, yet its
vibration is no longer manifest to our ears, because the medium by 
means of
which alone it can produce any effect upon them is absent. Admit the 
air to the
vessel, and immediately you hear the sound of the bell once more just 
as before. 
Similarly,
there are certain qualities in man' s nature which need astral matter 
for their
manifestation, just as sound needs either air or some denser matter 
for its
vehicle; and when, in the process of his withdrawal into himself after 
what we call
death, he leaves the astral world for the mental, those qualities 
can no longer
find expression, and must therefore perforce remain latent. But 
when,
centuries later, on his downward course into reincarnation he re-enters 
the astral
realm, these qualities which have remained latent for so long 
manifest
themselves once more, and become the tendencies of the next 
personality. 
In the same
way there are qualities of the mind which need for their expression 
the matter of
the lower mental levels; and when, after his long rest in the 
heaven-world,
the consciousness of the man withdraws into the true ego upon the 
higher mental
levels, these qualities also pass into latency. 
But when the
ego is about to reincarnate, he has to reverse this process of 
withdrawal--
to pass downward through the very same worlds through which he came 
on his upward
journey. When the time of his outflow comes, he puts himself down 
first on to
the lower levels of his own world, and seeks to express himself 
there, as far
as is possible in that less perfect and less plastic matter. In 
order that he
may so express himself and function in that world, he must clothe 
himself in
its matter. 
Thus the ego
aggregates around himself matter of the lower mental levels-- the 
matter which
will afterwards become his mind-body. But this matter is not 
selected at
random; out of all the varied and inexhaustible store around him he 
attracts to
himself just such a combination as is perfectly fitted to give 
expression to
his latent mental qualities. In precisely the same way, when he 
makes the
further descent to the astral world, the matter of that world which is 
by natural
law attracted to him to serve as his vehicle is exactly that which 
will give
expression to the desires which were his at the conclusion of his 
astral life.
In point of fact, he resumes his life in each world just where he 
left it last
time. 
His qualities
are not as yet in any way in action; they are simply the germs of 
qualities,
and for the moment their only influence is to secure for themselves a 
possible
field of manifestation by providing suitable matter for their 
expression in
the various vehicles of the child. Whether they develop once more 
in this life
into the same definite tendencies as in the last one, will depend 
largely upon
the encouragement or otherwise given to them by the surroundings of 
the child
during his early years. Any one of them, good or bad, may be readily 
stimulated
into activity by encouragement, or, on the other hand, may be starved 
out for lack
of that encouragement. If stimulated, it becomes a more powerful 
factor in the
man' s life this time than it was in his previous existence; if 
starved out, it
remains merely as an unfructified germ, which presently 
atrophies and
dies out, and does not make its appearance in the succeeding 
incarnation
at all. 
This, then,
is the condition of the child when first he comes under his parents' 
care. He
cannot be said to have as yet a definite mind-body or a definite astral 
body, but he
has around and within him the matter out of which these are to be 
builded. 
He possesses
tendencies of all sorts, some of them good and some of them evil, 
and it is in
accordance with the development of these tendencies that this 
building will
be regulated. And this development in turn depends almost entirely 
upon the
influences brought to bear upon him from outside during the first few 
years of his
existence. During these years the ego has as yet but little hold 
over his
vehicles, and he looks to the parents to help him to obtain a firmer 
grasp, and to
provide him with suitable conditions; hence their responsibility. 
THE
PLASTICITY OF CHILDHOOD 
It is impossible
to exaggerate the plasticity of these unformed vehicles. We 
know that the
physical body of a child, if only its training be begun at a 
sufficiently
early age, may be modified to a considerable extent. An acrobat, 
for example,
will take a boy of five or six years old, whose bones and muscles 
are not yet
as hardened and firmly set as ours are, and will gradually accustom 
his limbs and
body to take readily and with comfort all sorts of positions which 
would be
absolutely impossible for most of us now, even with any amount of 
training. Yet
our own bodies at the same age differed in no essential respect 
from that
boy' s, and if they had been put through the same exercises they would 
have become
as supple and elastic as his. 
If the
physical body of a child is thus plastic and readily impressible, his 
astral and
mental vehicles are far more so. They thrill in response to every 
vibration
which they encounter, and are eagerly receptive with regard to all 
influences,
whether good or evil, which emanate from those around them. They 
resemble the
physical body also in this other characteristic-- that though in 
early youth
they are so susceptible and so easily moulded, they soon set and 
stiffen and
acquire definite habits which, when once firmly established, can be 
altered only
with great difficulty. 
When we
realise this, we see at once the extreme importance of the surroundings 
in which a
child passes his earliest years, and the heavy responsibility which 
rests upon
every parent to see that the conditions of the child' s development 
are as good
as they can be made. The little creature is as clay in our hands to 
mould almost
as we will; moment by moment the germs of good or evil quality 
brought over
from the last birth are awakening into activity; moment by moment 
are being
built up those vehicles which will condition the whole of his 
after-life;
and it rests with us to awaken the germ of good, to starve out the 
germ of evil.
To a far larger extent than is ever realised by even the fondest 
parents, the
child' s future is under their control. 
Think of all
the friends whom you know so well, and try to imagine what splendid 
specimens of
humanity they would be if all their good qualities were enormously 
intensified,
and all the less estimable features absolutely weeded out of their 
characters. 
That is the
result which it is in your power to produce in your child, if you do 
your full
duty by him; such a specimen of humanity you may make him if you will 
but take the
trouble. 
THE INFLUENCE
OF PARENTS 
But how? you
will say; by precept? by education? Yes, truly, much may be done in 
that way when
the time comes; but another and far greater power than that is in 
your hands--
a power which you may begin to wield from the very moment of the 
child' s
birth, and even before that; and that is the power of the influence of 
your own
life. 
To some
extent this is recognised, for most civilised people are careful of 
their words
and actions in the presence of a child, and it would be an unusually 
depraved
parent who would allow his children to hear him use violent language, 
or to see him
give away to a fit of passion; but what a man does not realise is 
that if he
wishes to avoid doing the most serious harm to his little ones, he 
must learn to
control not only his words and deeds, but also his thoughts. It is 
true that you
cannot immediately see the pernicious effect of your evil thought 
or desire
upon the mind of your child, but none the less it is there, and it is 
more real and
more terrible, more insidious and more far-reaching than the harm 
which is
obvious to the physical eye. 
If a parent
allows himself to cherish feelings of anger or jealousy, of envy or 
avarice, of
selfishness or pride, even though he may never give them outward 
expression,
the waves of emotion which he thereby causes in his own desire-body 
are assuredly
acting all the while upon the plastic astral body of his child, 
tuning its
undulations to the same key, awakening into activity any germs of 
those sins
that may have been brought over from his past life, and setting up in 
him also the
same set of evil habits, which when they have once become 
definitely
formed will be exceedingly difficult to correct. And this is exactly 
what is being
done in the case of most of the children whom we see around us. 
THE AURA OF A
CHILD 
As it
presents itself to a clairvoyant, the subtle body of a child is often a 
most
beautiful object-- pure and bright in its colour, free, as yet, from the 
stains of
sensuality and avarice, and from the dull cloud of ill-will and 
selfishness
which so frequently darkens all the life of the adult. In it are to 
be seen lying
latent all the germs and tendencies of which we have spoken-- some 
of them evil,
some of them good; and thus the possibilities of the child' s 
future life
lie plain before the eye of the watcher. 
But how sad
it is to see the change which almost invariably comes over that 
lovely
child-aura as the years pass on-- to note how persistently the evil 
tendencies
are fostered and strengthened by his environment, and how entirely 
the good ones
are neglected! And so incarnation after incarnation is almost 
wasted, and a
life which, with just a little more care and self-restraint on the 
part of
parents and teachers, might have borne rich fruit of spiritual 
development,
comes practically to nothing, and at its close leaves scarce any 
harvest to be
garnered into the ego of which it has been so one-sided an 
expression. 
CARELESSNESS
OF PARENTS 
When one
watches the criminal carelessness with which those who are responsible 
for the
bringing-up of children allow them to be perpetually surrounded by all 
kinds of evil
and worldly thoughts, one ceases to marvel at the extraordinary 
slowness of
human evolution, and the almost imperceptible progress which is all 
that the ego
has to show for life after life spent in the toil and struggle of 
this lower
world. Yet with so little more trouble so vast an improvement might 
be
introduced! 
It needs no
astral vision to see what a change would come over this weary old 
world if the
majority, or even any large proportion of the next generation, were 
subjected to
the process suggested above-- if all their evil qualities were 
steadily
repressed and atrophied for lack of nourishment, while all the good in 
them was
assiduously cultivated and developed to the fullest possible extent. 
One has only
to think what they in turn would do for their children, to realise 
that in two
or three generations all the conditions of life would be different, 
and a true
golden age would have begun. For the world at large age may still be 
distant, but
surely we who are members of the Theosophical Society ought to be 
doing our
best to hasten its advent: and though the influence of our example may 
not extend
far, it is at least within our power to see that our own children 
have for
their development every advantage which we can give them. 
The greatest
care, then, ought to be taken as to the surroundings of children, 
and people
who will persist in thinking coarse and unloving thoughts should at 
least learn
that while they are doing so, they are unfit to come near the young, 
lest they
infect them with a contagion more virulent than fever. 
Much care is
needed, for example, in the selection of the nurses to whom 
children must
sometimes be committed; though it is surely obvious that the less 
they are left
in the hands of servants the better. Nurses often develop the 
strongest
affection for their charges, and treat them as though they were of 
their own
flesh and blood; yet this is not invariably the case, and, even if it 
be, the
servants are almost inevitably less educated and less refined than their 
mistresses. A
child who is left too much to their companionship is therefore 
constantly
subjected to the impact of thought which is likely to be of a less 
elevated
order than even the average level of that of his parents. So that the 
mother who
wishes her child to grow up into a refined and delicate-minded man 
should
entrust him to the care of others as little as possible, and should, 
above all
things, take good heed to her own thoughts while watching over him. 
Her great and
cardinal rule should be to allow herself to harbour no thought and 
no desire
which she does not wish to see reproduced in her son. Nor is this 
merely
negative conquest over herself sufficient, for, happily, all that has 
been said
about the influence and power of thought is true of good thoughts just 
as much as of
evil ones, and so the parents' duty has a positive as well as a 
negative
side. Not only must they abstain most carefully from fostering, by 
unworthy or
selfish thoughts of their own, any evil tendency which may exist in 
their child,
but it is also their duty to cultivate in themselves strong, 
unselfish
affection, pure thoughts, high and noble aspirations, in order that 
all these may
react upon their charge, quicken whatever of good is already 
latent in
him, and create a tendency towards any good quality which is as yet 
unrepresented
in his character. 
Nor need they
have any fear that such effort on their part will fail in its 
effect, because
they are unable to follow its action for lack of astral vision. 
To the sight
of a clairvoyant the whole transaction is obvious; he distinguishes 
the waves set
up in the mind-body of the parent by the inception of the thought, 
sees it
radiating forth, and notes the sympathetic undulations created by its 
impingement
upon the mind-body of the child; and if he renews his observation at 
intervals
during some considerable period, he discerns the gradual but permanent 
change
produced in that mind-body by the constant repetition of the same 
stimulus to
progress. If the parents themselves possess astral sight, it will, 
no doubt, be
of great assistance to them in showing exactly what are the 
capabilities of
their child, and in what directions he most needs development; 
but if they
have not yet that advantage, there need not therefore be the 
slightest
doubt or question about the result, for that must with mathematical 
certainty
follow sustained effort, whether the process of its working be visible 
to them or
not. 
With whatever
care the parents may surround the child, it cannot but be (if he 
lives in the
world at all) that he will some day encounter influences which will 
stimulate the
germs of evil in his composition. But it makes all the difference 
in the world
which germs are stimulated first. Usually the evil is thoroughly 
awakened into
activity before the ego has any hold upon the vehicles, and so 
when he does
grasp them he finds that he has to combat a strong predisposition 
to various
evils. When the germs of good are tardily aroused they have to 
struggle to
assert themselves against a set of inharmonious thought-wave which 
are already
firmly established; and often they do not succeed. If, however, by 
exceeding
care before birth and for several years after it the parents are 
fortunate
enough to be able to excite only the good undulations, as the ego 
gains control
he finds it naturally easy to express himself along those lines, 
and a decided
habit is set up in that direction. Then when the evil excitation 
comes, as
come it surely will some time or other, it finds a strong momentum in 
the direction
of good, which it strives in vain to overcome. 
The command
of the ego over this lower vehicles is often but small, unless he is 
unusually
advanced; but his will is always for good, because his desire in 
connection
with these vehicles is to evolve himself by their means, and such 
power as he
is able to throw into the balance is therefore always on the right 
side. But
with his at present somewhat uncertain grasp upon his astral and 
mental
bodies, he is frequently unable to overcome a strong tendency in the 
direction of
evil when that has been already established. If, however, he finds 
the strong
tendency set up in the opposite direction, he is enable thereby to 
get hold of
his vehicles more effectually; and after he has done that, the evil 
suggestion
which comes later can only with difficulty succeed in obtaining an 
entrance. In
the one case there is in the personality a taste for evil, a 
readiness to
receive it and indulge in it; in the other there is a strong 
natural
distaste for evil which makes the work of the ego much easier. 
Not only
should a parent watch his thoughts, but his moods also. A child is 
quick to
notice and to resent injustice; and if he finds himself scolded at one 
time for an
action which on another occasion caused only amusement, what wonder 
that his
sense of the invariability of Nature' s laws is outraged! Again, when 
trouble or
sorrow comes upon the parent, as in this world it sometimes must, it 
is surely his
duty to try, as far as possible, to prevent his load of grief from 
weighing upon
his children as well as upon himself; at least when in their 
presence he
should make a special effort to be cheerful and resigned, lest the 
dull, leaden
hue of depression should extend itself from his astral body to 
theirs. 
Many a
well-meaning parent has an anxious and fussy nature-- is always fidgeting 
about trifles,
and worrying his children and himself about matters which are 
really quite
unimportant. If he could but observe clairvoyantly the utter unrest 
and disquiet
which he thus produces in his own higher bodies, and could further 
see how these
disturbed waves introduce quite unnecessary agitation and 
irritation
into the susceptible vehicles of his children, he would no longer be 
surprised at
their occasional outbursts of petulance or nervous excitability, 
and would
realise that in such a case he is often far more to blame than they. 
What he
should contemplate and set before him as his object, is a restful, 
unruffled
spirit-- the peace which passeth all understanding-- the perfect calm 
which comes
from the confidence that all will at last be well. 
Above all
things must he strive to become an embodiment of the Divine Love, so 
that he may
fully realise it in his own life, in order that he may flood with it 
the life of
his child. The body must live in an atmosphere of love; he ought 
never to meet
with a jarring vibration, never even to know in his young days 
that there is
anything but love in this world. And when the time comes, as come 
it unhappily
must, when he learns that in the outside world love is often sadly 
lacking-- all
the more let him feel that his home will never fail him, that 
there, at
least, he may always count upon the uttermost love, the fullest 
comprehension.
It is obvious
that the training of the parents' character which is necessitated 
by these
considerations is in every respect a splendid one, and that in thus 
helping on
the evolution of their children they also benefit themselves to an 
extent which
is absolutely incalculable, for the thoughts which at first have 
been summoned
by conscious effort for the sake of the child will soon become 
natural and
habitual, and will, in time, form the background of the parents' 
entire life. 
It must not
be supposed that these precautions may be relaxed as the child grows 
older, for
though this extraordinary sensitiveness to the influence of his 
surroundings
commences as soon as the ego descends upon the embryo, long before 
birth takes
place, it continues, in most cases, up to about the period of 
maturity. If
such influences as are above suggested have been brought to bear 
upon him
during infancy and childhood, the body of twelve or fourteen will be 
far better
equipped for the efforts which lie before him than his less fortunate 
companions,
with whom no special trouble has been taken. But he is still far 
more
impressionable than an adult; he still needs to be surrounded by the same 
boundless sea
of never-failing love; the same strong help and guidance upon the 
mental level
must still be continued, in order that the good habits both of 
thought and
of action may not yield before the newer temptations which are 
likely to
assail him. 
Although in
his earlier years it was naturally chiefly to his parents that he 
had to look
for such assistance, all that has been said of their duties applies 
equally to
anyone who comes into contact with children in any capacity, and most 
especially to
those who undertake the tremendous responsibilities of the 
teacher. This
influence of a master for good or for evil over his pupils is one 
that cannot
readily be measured, and (exactly as before) it depends not only 
upon what he
says or what he does, but even more upon what he thinks. Many a 
master
repeatedly reproves in his boys the exhibition of tendencies for the 
creation of
which he is himself directly responsible; if his thought is selfish 
or impure,
then he will find selfishness and impurity reflected all around him, 
nor does the
evil caused by such a thought end with those whom it immediately 
affects. 
The young
minds upon which it is reflected take it up and magnify and strengthen 
it, and thus
it reacts upon others in turn and becomes an unholy tradition 
handed down
from one generation of boys to another, and so stamps its peculiar 
character
upon a particular school or a particular class. Happily, a good 
tradition may
be set up almost as easily as a bad one-- not quite as easily, 
because there
are always undesirable external influences to be taken into 
account; but
still a teacher who realises his responsibilities and manages his 
school upon
the principles that have been suggested will soon find that his 
self-control
and self-devotion have not been fruitless. 
THE NECESSITY
FOR LOVE 
There is only
one way in which either parent or teacher can really obtain 
effective
influence over a child and draw out all the best that is in him-- and 
that is by
enfolding him in the pure fire of a warm, constant, personal love, 
and thereby
winning his love and confidence in return. More than any other 
qualification
is this insisted upon in Alcyone' s wonderful book Education as 
Service -- a
book which every parent and teacher should read, for the sake of 
the sweet
spirit which it breathes, and the valuable hints which it contains. 
It is true
that obedience may be extorted and discipline preserved by inspiring 
fear, but
rules enforced by such a method are kept only so long as he who 
imposes them
(or some one representing him) is present, and are invariably 
broken when
there is no fear of detection; the child keeps them because he must, 
and not
because he wishes to do so; and meantime the effect upon his character 
is of the
most disastrous description. 
If, on the
other hand, his affection has been invoked, his will at once ranges 
itself on the
side of the rule; he wishes to keep it, because he knows that in 
breaking it
he would cause sorrow to one whom he loves; and if only this feeling 
be strong
enough, it will enable him to rise superior to all temptation, and the 
rule will be
binding, no matter who may be present or absent. Thus the object is 
attained not
only much more thoroughly, but also much more easily and pleasantly 
both for
teacher and pupil, and all the best side of the child' s nature is 
called into
activity, instead of all the worst. Instead of rousing the child' s 
will into
sullen and persistent opposition, the teacher arrays it on his own 
side in the
contest against distractions or temptations; the danger of deceit 
and
secretiveness is avoided, and thus results are achieved which could never be 
approached on
the other system. 
It is of the
utmost importance always to try to understand the child, and to 
make him feel
certain that he has one' s friendliness and sympathy. All 
appearance of
harshness must be carefully avoided, and the reason of all 
instructions
given to him should always be fully explained. It must indeed be 
made clear to
him that sometimes sudden emergencies arise in which the older 
person has no
time to explain his instructions, and he should understand that in 
such a case
he should obey, even though he may not fully comprehend; but even 
then the
explanation should be always given afterwards. 
Unwise
parents or teachers often make the mistake of habitually exacting 
obedience
without understanding-- a most unreasonable demand; indeed, they 
expect from
the child at all times and under all conditions an angelic patience 
and
saintliness which they are far indeed from possessing themselves. They have 
not yet
realised that harshness towards a child is always not only wicked, but 
absolutely
unreasonable and foolish as well, since it can never be the most 
effective way
of obtaining from him what is desired. 
A child' s
faults are often the direct results of the unnatural way in which he 
is treated.
Sensitive and nervous to a degree, he constantly finds himself 
misunderstood
and scolded or ill-treated for offences whose turpitude he does 
not in the
least comprehend; is it wonderful that, when the whole atmosphere 
about him
reeks with the deceit and falsehood of his elders, his fears should 
sometimes
drive him into untruthfulness also? In such a case the karma of the 
sin will fall
most heavily upon those who by their criminal harshness have 
placed a weak
and undeveloped being in a position where it was almost impossible 
for him to
avoid it. 
If we expect
truth from our children, we must first of all practise it 
ourselves; we
must think truth as well as speak truth and act truth, before we 
can hope to
be strong enough to save them from the sea of falsehood and deceit 
which
surrounds us on every side. But if we treat them as reasonable beings-- if 
we explain
fully and patiently what we want from them, and show them that they 
have nothing
to fear from us, because “perfect love casteth out fear”-- then we 
shall find no
difficulty about truthfulness. 
A curious but
not uncommon delusion-- a relic, perhaps, of the terrible days 
when, for its
sins, this unhappy country of England groaned under the ghastly 
tyranny of
puritanism-- is, that children can never be good unless they are 
unhappy, that
they must be thwarted at every turn, and never by any chance 
allowed to
have their own way in anything, because when they are enjoying 
themselves
they must necessarily be in a condition of desperate wickedness! 
Absurd and
atrocious as this doctrine is, various modifications of it are still 
widely
prevalent, and it is responsible for a vast amount of cruelty and 
unnecessary
misery, wantonly inflicted upon little creatures whose only crime is 
that they are
natural and happy. Undoubtedly Nature intends that childhood shall 
be a happy
time, and we ought to spare no efforts to make it so, for in that 
respect, as
in all others, if we thwart Nature we do so at our peril. A hymn 
tells us: 
God would
have us happy, happy all the day, 
and in this
case as in all others it is our duty and our privilege to be 
fellow-workers
together with Him. 
It will help
us much in our dealings with children if we remember that they also 
are egos,
that their small and feeble physical bodies are but the accident of 
the moment,
and that in reality we are all about the same age; so that we owe 
them respect
as well as affection, and we must not expect to impose our will or 
individuality
upon theirs. Our business in training them is to develop only that 
in their
lower vehicles which will co-operate with the ego-- which will make 
them better
channels for the ego to work through. Long ago, in the golden age of 
the old
Atlantean civilisation, the importance of the office of the teacher of 
the children
was so fully recognised that none was permitted to hold it except a 
trained
clairvoyant, who could see all the latent qualities and capabilities of 
his charges,
and could, therefore, work intelligently with each, so as to 
develop what
was good in him and to amend what was evil. 
In the
distant future of the sixth root-race that will be so once more; but that 
time is, as
yet, far away, and we have to do our best under less favourable 
conditions.
Yet unselfish affection is a wonderful quickener of the intuition, 
and those who
really love their children will rarely be at a loss to comprehend 
their needs;
and keen and persistent observation will give them, though at the 
cost of much
more trouble, some approach to the clearer insight of their 
Atlantean
predecessors. At any rate, it is well worth the trying, for when once 
we realise
our true responsibility in relation to children we shall assuredly 
think no
labour too great which enables us to discharge it better. Love is not 
always wise,
we know; but at least it is wiser than carelessness, and parents 
and teachers
who truly love will be thereby spurred on to gain wisdom for the 
sake of the
children. 
RELIGIOUS
TRAINING 
Many members
of our Society, while feeling that their children need something to 
take the
place filled in ordinary education by the religious training, have yet 
found it
almost impossible so to put Theosophy before them as to make it in any 
way
intelligible to them. Some have even permitted their children to go through 
the ordinary
routine of bible lessons, saying that they did not know what else 
to do, and
that though much of the teaching was obviously untrue it could be 
corrected
afterwards. This course is entirely indefensible; no child should ever 
waste his
time in learning what he will have to unlearn afterwards. If the true 
inner meaning
of Christianity can be taught to our children, that indeed is 
well, because
that is pure Theosophy; but unfortunately that is not the form 
which
religious instruction takes in ordinary schools. 
There is no
real difficulty in putting the grand truths of Theosophy 
intelligibly
before the minds of our children. It is useless to trouble them 
with rounds
and races, with mulaprakriti and planetary chains; but then, however 
interesting
and valuable all this information may be, it is of little importance 
in the
practical regulation of conduct, whereas the great ethical truths upon 
which the
whole system rests can, happily, be made clear even to the childish 
understanding.
What could be simpler in essence than the three great truths 
which are
given to Sensa in The Idyll of the White Lotus? 
The soul of
man is immortal, and its future is the future of a thing whose 
growth and
splendour have no limit. 
The principle
which gives life dwells in us and without us, is undying and 
eternally
beneficent, is not heard, nor seen, nor smelt, but is perceived by the 
man who
desires perception. 
Each man is
his own absolute lawgiver, the dispenser of glory or gloom to 
himself-- the
decreer of his life, his reward, his punishment. 
These truths,
which are as great as is life, itself, are as simple as the 
simplest mind
of man. Feed the hungry with them. 
We might
express these more tersely by saying: “Man is immortal; God is good; as 
we sow, so
shall we reap.” Surely none of our children can fail to grasp these 
simple ideas
in their broad outline, though as they grow older they may spend 
many a year
in learning more and more of the immensity of their full meaning. 
Teach them
the grand old formula that “death is the gate of life”-- not a 
terrible fate
to be feared, but simply a stage of progress to be welcomed with 
interest.
Teach them to live, not for themselves, but for others-- to go through 
the world as
friends and helpers, earnest in loving reverence and care for all 
living
things. Teach them to delight in seeing and in causing happiness in 
others, in
animals and birds as well as in human beings; teach them that to 
cause pain to
any living thing is always a wicked action, and can never have 
aught of
interest or amusement for any right-thinking or civilised man. A child' 
s sympathies
are so easily roused, and his delight in doing something is so 
great, that
he responds at once to the idea that he should try to help, and 
should never
harm, all the creatures around him. He should be taught to be 
observant,
that he may see where help is needed, whether by man or by animal, 
and promptly
to supply the want so far as lies in his power. 
A child likes
to be loved, and he likes to protect, and both these feelings may 
be utilised
in training him to be a friend of all creatures. He will readily 
learn to
admire flowers as they grow, and not wish to pluck them heedlessly, 
casting them
aside a few minutes later to wither on the roadside; those which he 
plucks he
will pick carefully, avoiding injury to the plant; he will preserve 
and tend
them, and his way through wood and field will never be traceable by 
fading
blossoms and uprooted plants. 
PHYSICAL
TRAINING 
The physical
training of the child is a matter of the greatest importance, for a 
strong, pure,
healthy body is necessary for the full expression of the 
developing
soul within. Teach him from the first the exceeding importance of 
physical
purity, so that he may regard his daily bath as just as much an 
integral part
of his life as his daily food. See to it that his body is never 
befouled with
such filthy abominations of modern savagery as meat, alcohol or 
tobacco; see
to it that he has always plenty of sunlight, of fresh air and of 
exercise. 
We have seen
in an earlier chapter how horrible are the surroundings in a great 
town; and if
these are evil in their influence on adults, they are ten times 
worse for the
more sensitive children. The truth is that no children ought ever 
to be brought
up in a town at all; and those whose evil karma compels them to 
work in such
places should at least try if possible to live a little way outside 
of them for
the sake of their children. It is far better for the children to be 
brought up in
the country, even though it be in comparative poverty, than that, 
in order to
amass money for them, the parents should allow them to grow up 
amidst all
the noxious influences of a large town. Where the urban life is 
unfortunately
unavoidable, they should at least be taken out of the city as 
often as
possible, and kept out as long as possible. 
So shall your
child grow up pure, healthy and happy; so shall you provide, for 
the soul
entrusted to your care, a casket of which it need not be ashamed, a 
vehicle
through which it shall receive only the highest and best that the 
physical
world can give-- which it can use as a fitting instrument for the 
noblest and
the holiest work. 
As the parent
teaches the child, he will also be obliged to set the example in 
this as in
other things, and so the child will thus again civilise his elders as 
well as
improve himself. Birds and butterflies, cats and dogs, all will be his 
friends, and
he will delight in their beauty instead of longing to chase or 
destroy them.
Children thus trained will grow up into men and women who 
recognise
their place in evolution and their work in the world, and each will 
serve as a
fresh centre of humanising force, gradually changing the direction of 
human
influence on all lower things. 
If thus we
train our children, if we are thus careful in our relations with 
them, we
shall bear nobly our great responsibility, and in so doing we shall 
help on the
grand work of evolution; we shall be doing our duty, not only to our 
children, but
to the human race-- not only to these particular egos, but to the 
many millions
yet to come. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XXIII 
BY OUR
RELATION TO LOWER KINGDOMS 
DOMESTIC
ANIMALS 
WE have a
responsibility which must not be forgotten towards the animals which 
we draw
around us. This may be of two kinds, or rather of two degrees. A farmer 
in the course
of his business has to deal with a large number of animals which 
may be
described as semi-domesticated. His duty towards them is clearly to feed 
them well and
to take all possible care to keep them in perfect health. He may 
sometimes
attach to himself some one of these, but on the whole his relation 
towards them
is in the mass only, and as they are yet far from the possibility 
of
individualisation, it is not likely that his influence over them can go far, 
or be more
than a general one. His relation with them is, in fact, a business 
relation,
though he should look after them as carefully as though they were 
human. 
The case is
quite different with the really domestic animals which live in the 
house with
us, and come into intimate personal relations with us. No one is 
obliged to
keep a dog or a cat, but if he does so he incurs a much greater 
responsibility
towards that animal than the farmer has towards any member of his 
flock. It
would be unpardonable selfishness for anyone who keeps such an animal 
to think only
of his own pleasure in connection with it, and not of the animal' 
s
development. 
The domestic
animal is in fact a kind of younger child-- with this difference, 
that whereas
the child is already an ego and has to be helped to control his new 
vehicles, the
animal is not yet a separate ego and has to be helped to become 
one. The
process of the individualisation of an animal has been often described; 
notes upon it
may be found in A Text-book of Theosophy, The Inner Life, Man 
Visible and
Invisible and The Christian Creed. A perusal of what is there 
written will
show at once along what line our duties to the animals lie. We must 
endeavour to
develop their affection and their intellect, and the principal 
factor in
both those developments is the affection which we feel for them. 
I have
written at considerable length, in The Inner Life , Vol. ii, upon 
mistakes
which are frequently made by men in their relation to domestic animals. 
All those
mistakes are due to a selfish attitude with regard to the animal, an 
endeavour to
employ him for the gratification of our own evil passions-- as, for 
example, when
a dog is trained to hunt, and made in that way to do vastly more 
harm than his
forefathers ever did as wild beasts in the jungle. For the wild 
beast kills
only for food, when impelled to do so by hunger; but the dog is 
trained to
kill for the pleasure of killing, and is thereby degraded in the 
scale of
evolution instead of being raised. 
Between the
two categories, of really domestic animals and farm animals, we may 
place the
horse, for it comes into more individual relation with the rider than 
does the farm
animal, and yet at the same time it is far from possessing the 
intelligence
of the dog or the cat. It also must be treated intelligently, and 
above all
with unvarying kindness. The rider should remember always that the 
horse does
not exist solely to serve him, but has an evolution of its own which 
it is his
duty to forward. There is no wrong in his utilising it to help him, 
because the
association with him may develop its affection and intelligence; but 
he must treat
it always as he would treat a human servant, and never forget its 
interest
while he is making it serve his own. 
BIRDS 
A student of
the hidden side of life cannot but deprecate the practice of 
keeping birds
in cages. Perfect liberty and the sense of great open spaces are 
of the very
essence of the life of a bird, and his misery at being imprisoned is 
often intense
and most pathetic. This is always especially marked in the case of 
those birds
which are natives of the country, and all such ought certainly at 
once to be
set free. 
Foreign birds,
which can live happily only in other climates, come under a 
different
category. They also spend most of the time in memories of splendid 
tropical
scenes, and in longing for the home from which they have been taken-- 
to which they
ought to be sent back at the earliest possible moment. The sin 
there lies
with those who originally caught them; and those who keep them now 
share in it
only so far as that their action makes it profitable. A student who 
has already
thoughtlessly acquired such birds as these, can hardly do other than 
keep them,
unless he is in a position to return them to their native country; 
but he should
provide them with the largest cages, and let them out of them to 
fly about the
room as often as possible, while he certainly should not encourage 
a nefarious
traffic by buying any more of such creatures. 
The only
rational and useful relation that we can establish with birds is that 
which
occasionally exists in country places-- that food is regularly put out for 
the birds in
a certain place and they come and take it, while remaining 
otherwise
perfectly free. If a man wants to keep a bird, he should keep it 
precisely as
he would keep a cat-- provide it with plenty of food and an abiding 
place
whenever it chooses to accept it, but leave it otherwise free to go where 
it will. The
difficulty in the way is that the bird' s intelligence is so much 
less
developed than the cat' s that it would be more difficult to get it to 
understand
the conditions of the arrangement. By far the best plan is to have 
nothing to do
with foreign birds, but to try to make friends of the wild birds 
of the
neighbourhood. 
Individualisation
is not a possibility, as the bird is not developing along our 
line; when it
transcends the bird evolution is passes directly into one of the 
higher orders
of nature-spirits. Nevertheless, kindness shown to birds arouses 
gratitude and
affection in them, and helps them forward in their evolution. 
PLANTS 
Another direction
in which we may exercise a good deal of influence if we will, 
is upon the
plants in our gardens. Plants, like animals, are quick to respond to 
wise and
loving care, and are distinctly affected not only by what we do for 
them
physically, but also by our feelings towards them. Anyone who possesses 
astral sight
will be aware that flowers delight in and respond to a feeling of 
admiration.
The feelings of the vegetable differ rather in degree than in kind 
from those of
the animal or of the human being, and they bear somewhat the same 
relation to
those of the animal as do those of the animal to those of the human 
being. 
The animal is
less complex in his emotions than the human being, but he is 
capable of
affection and hatred, of fear and pride, of jealousy or of shame. 
Some animals,
too, seem to have a sense of humour; at any rate, they keenly 
enjoy playing
tricks on one another, and they object greatly to being made to 
appear
ridiculous or to being laughed at. There is nothing to show that these 
emotions are
less in proportion in the animal than they are in us; but we may 
say that the
animal has fewer emotions and that they are less complex, and his 
methods of
expressing them are more limited. 
If we descend
to the vegetable kingdom we find that the vegetable has scarcely 
any power of
expression; but we shall be making a grave mistake if we therefore 
assume that
there are no feelings to express. Emotion in the vegetable kingdom 
is again far
less complex even than that of the animal, and it is altogether 
vaguer-- a
sort of blind instinctual feeling. The chief physical manifestation 
of it is the
well-known fact that some people are always fortunate with plants, 
while others
are always unfortunate, even when the physical measures adopted are 
precisely the
same. This difference exists everywhere, but in India it has been 
specially
noted, and certain people are described as having the lucky hand, and 
it is
recognised that almost anything which those people plant will grow; even 
under quite
unfavourable conditions, and that anything which they cultivate is 
sure to turn
out well. When this influence is universal over the vegetable 
kingdom it is
not a question of individual liking, but of certain 
characteristics
in the person, and certain qualities in his astral and etheric 
vehicles
which prove generally attractive, just as there are some people with 
whom all dogs
will at once make friends, and others who without effort can 
manage the
most recalcitrant horses. 
But plants
are also capable of individual attachment, and when they get to know 
people well,
they are pleased to see (or rather to feel) them near. A person who 
pours upon
his flowers a stream of admiration and affection evokes in them a 
feeling of
pleasure-- first of a general pleasure in receiving admiration, which 
might be
thought of as a sort of germ of pride, and then, secondly, a feeling of 
pleasure at
the presence of the person who admires, which in the same way is the 
germ of love
and gratitude. Plants are also capable of anger and dislike, though 
outwardly
they have hardly any means of showing them. 
An occultist
who has a garden will make a point of seeing that it is in every 
way perfectly
and carefully looked after, and more than this, he will himself 
make friends
with the flowers and trees and shrubs, and will go sometimes to 
visit them
and give each its due meed of admiration, and so in giving pleasure 
to these
lowly organisms he will himself be surrounded by a vague feeling of 
affection. 
It may be
said that the feeling of a vegetable can hardly be strong enough to be 
worth taking
into account. It is true that the influence exerted by it upon a 
human being
is less than would be produced by the feeling of an animal; but 
these influences
do exist, and though the feeling of one plant may not seem 
important,
the feeling of hundreds begins to be a recognisable factor, and if we 
wish to make
the best possible conditions, we must not ignore our less developed 
brethren of
the lower kingdoms. That much even from the purely selfish point of 
view; but the
occultist naturally thinks first of the effect upon the plant. 
When we form
a garden we are drawing round us a number of members of the 
vegetable
kingdom for our own pleasure; but at the same time this affords us an 
opportunity
of helping them in their evolution, an opportunity which should not 
be neglected.
Plants differ much in their power to receive and respond to human 
influences. A
large tree, for example, with its slow growth and its long life, 
is capable of
forming a far stronger a attachment than anything which is merely 
annual. Such
a tree comes to have a decided personality of its own, and is even 
sometimes
able temporarily to externalise that personality, so that it can be 
seen by the
clairvoyant. In such a case it usually takes upon itself human form 
for the time,
as I have mentioned in The Inner Life, Vol. ii. Those who wish to 
understand
how much more intelligence there is in the vegetable kingdom than we 
usually
think, should read a delightful book called The Sagacity and Morality of 
Plants by
J.E. Taylor. 
NATURE-SPIRITS
This
wonderful evolution has been described in an earlier chapter, but from the 
point of view
of its effect upon us, rather than of ours upon it. Here we must 
consider the
outer side of that relation-- the influence which we may exercise 
upon the
nature-spirits of our neighbourhood, and the friendship which we may 
make with
them. Many of their tribes are so beautiful and so interesting that 
their
acquaintance would repay cultivation, and we may help to develop their 
intellect and
affection, and so do them much good. Those of them who possess 
etheric
bodies have the power to make themselves physically visible if they 
choose, so
men who are happy enough to gain their friendship may occasionally be 
rewarded by a
view of them even with ordinary sight. There is also a probability 
that such
friends may be helped by these elves to attain flashes of temporary 
clairvoyance,
in order that in that way they may see them. 
A fairy has
many points of resemblance to a wild animal, and the method of 
making
friends with him is much what we should have to adopt if we were trying 
to tame birds
or deer. He is shy and distrustful towards man; how is this 
distrust to
be overcome? One who wishes to study at first-hand the habits of a 
bird usually
goes to the haunt of the creature, conceals himself, and remains 
perfectly quiet,
in the hope that the bird will not see him, or if it does, will 
be reassured
by his absolute stillness. The etheric sight of a nature-spirit 
pierces
through walls or bushes, so it is hopeless to attempt to evade his 
observation;
and for him the stillness which is important is not that of the 
physical
body, but of the astral. He objects to the filthy physical emanations 
of the
average man-- of meat, of tobacco, of alcohol, and of general 
uncleanliness;
obviously one who wishes to make friends with him must be free 
from all
these. He objects, too, to storms of passion and impurity; so the man 
who seeks him
must also be free from all low and selfish feelings, such as lust, 
anger, envy,
jealousy, avarice or depression. 
These
negative qualifications being in order, can anything positive be done to 
invite the
approach of so coy a visitor? Animals can often be attracted by the 
offer of
food, but as a fairy does not eat, that particular allurement is not 
available in
his case. The student can provide for him conditions which he is 
known to
enjoy. Strong unselfish affection or devotion, or indeed any high 
feeling which
burns steadily and without wild surgings, creates an atmosphere in 
which the
nature-spirit delights to bathe. 
The man-- the
right sort of man-- who rests for a while in some lovely, lonely 
spot-- in a
wood perhaps, or by a stream or a waterfall-- and revels in such 
thoughts as
have been suggested, is quite likely to become aware of an 
unfamiliar
presence, of something fascinating, yet strange and non-human; and 
perchance, if
fortune greatly favours him, he may even see as well as feel, when 
the shy, wild
creature becomes a little more accustomed to him, and gradually 
learns to
trust and like him. But if the student remembers that to the 
nature-spirit
this is an adventure such as it would be for a mouse to make 
friends with
a cat, or for a man to endeavour to establish fraternal relations 
with a tiger
in the jungle, he will learn to exercise unlimited patience, and 
not to expect
immediate results. 
Almost all
nature-spirits delight in music, and some are specially attracted by 
certain
melodies; so if the experimenter happens to be a performer upon some 
portable instrument,
such as the flute, it may increase his chances of success 
if he plays
upon it. I knew an elf in Italy who was so fascinated by a 
particular
piece of music that when it was played on the piano, he would 
actually
leave the wood in which he dwelt and come into the drawing-room to 
enjoy it and
dance to it-- or rather to bathe in its sound-waves, to pulsate and 
sway in
harmony with them. But I never knew him to do this if there were more 
than two or
three people in the room-- and even those must be friends whom he 
had learned
to trust. 
More than
once I have seen a shepherd-boy in Sicily, sitting in some lonely spot 
on the
hillside, playing on his home-made double Pan-pipe like an ancient Greek, 
with an
appreciative audience of fairies frisking round him of which he was 
probably
blissfully unconscious, though no doubt their delight reacted upon him 
and added
zest to his playing. Sometimes the peasants do see the nature-spirits, 
however;
plenty of instances may be found in Mr. Wentz' Fairy Faith in Celtic 
Countries. 
INANIMATE
SURROUNDINGS 
We are all
the while exerting an influence even on what we commonly consider our 
inanimate
surroundings. Some of these, by the way, are not quite so inanimate as 
we are apt to
think. We all know that the Divine Life exists in the mineral 
kingdom as
well as in those which are higher, and in that sense rocks, stones, 
and minerals
may rightly be thought of as alive. But certain objects have a more 
vivid and
special kind of life, the study of which is of great interest. 
To explain it
we must revert for a moment to a familiar analogy. We know how the 
life of the
elemental essence of the astral body gathers itself up into a kind 
of
personality (which we call the desire elemental) and exists for the time as a 
separate
being with definite desires and dislikes of its own, and with 
sufficient
power to exercise a great effect in the course of its life on the man 
whose vehicle
it informs. We know that the similar consciousness animating the 
cells of the
physical body (including of course its etheric part) manifests 
itself in
certain instinctive movements. In a way analagous to this, the 
consciousness
which animates the molecules of certain minerals will combine into 
a temporary
whole when those molecules are welded together into a definite form; 
and
especially is this the case when that form demands the presence and 
attention of
man, as machinery does. 
A SHIP 
The most
perfect example of what I mean is to be found in a ship, for there we 
have a
structure built of an enormous number of component parts, and usually of 
different
substances. Kipling' s story of The Ship that Found Herself is not 
mere fiction,
but has a real and important truth behind it. When a ship is first 
built she is
not thus conscious of herself as a unit, but is a mere aggregation 
of a number
of separate sentiences. But the whole fabric does become in time a 
unit of
consciousness or awareness-- being to a certain extent aware of itself 
as a whole--
however dim and vague its percipience may be as compared with our 
own. 
And that
consciousness has what we can hardly describe as otherwise than 
feelings,
indistinct though they are as compared with anything to which we 
usually give
that name. Such an obscure semi-entity certainly may (and often 
does) like
one person better than another, so that one person can do with it 
what another
cannot. This in no way modifies the other fact that some men are 
better seaman
than others, and with a little practice can get out of any ship 
the best that
is to be got. Just so, some men are splendid riders, and can 
almost
immediately establish a friendly understanding with any horse; but quite 
apart from
that, a horse may become attached to a certain man, and learn to 
understand
his wishes far more readily than a stranger' s. The same thing is 
true of the
vaguer consciousness of the ship. I do not wish to be understood as 
suggesting by
this term anything comparable, in definiteness or responsiveness, 
to the
consciousness in man; but there certainly is a something, however loose 
and
uncertain, which we cannot define by any other word. 
MACHINES 
The same
thing is true of a railway engine, of a motor-car or a bicycle. Just as 
the driver or
rider becomes accustomed to his machine and learns to know exactly 
what it will
do, and to humour its various little tricks, so the machine in its 
turn becomes
used to the driver and will do more for him in various ways than 
for a
stranger. The same must be true of many other sorts of machinery, though 
for that I
have not had the benefit of personal observation. 
Apart from
the influence acquired by an individual over the blended 
consciousness
of a machine, the mere blending itself produces an effect upon the 
molecules of
the substance of which it is made. Iron which has formed part of a 
machine, and
so has experienced what is for it this exaltation of consciousness, 
may be
thought of as somewhat more developed than iron which has not been used 
in the
building of a self-contained system. It has become capable of responding 
to additional
and more complicated vibrations, and that for a mineral is 
evolution. It
is more awake than other iron. This condition of greater vitality 
would be
easily visible to a clairvoyant who had learnt its indications, but I 
do not know
of any method by which it could be observed physically. 
The
additional power of response is not always of the same kind, and variants of 
it may be
aroused in different ways. Wrought iron, for example, is much more 
alive than
cast iron, and this result is produced by the frequent blows which it 
receives in
the process of its working. The same thing may be observed to a 
greater
degree with a horse-shoe, for not only has that been wrought in the 
first place,
but it has been subjected to constant striking upon the road when 
it was worn
by the horse. This long-continued process has awakened it in a 
certain way
which makes it exceedingly repulsive to some of the lowest and most 
malignant
types of the astral and etheric entities; and that is the reason for 
the old
superstition, that when hung over the door it kept away evil and brought 
good fortune
to its possessor. 
Another
interesting point with regard to this curious composite consciousness is 
that after a
certain time it gets tired-- a fact which has frequently been 
observed by
those who have much to do with machinery. After a certain time a 
machine,
though perfectly in order, gets into a condition in which it will not 
work
properly, but becomes slack in its action. It often seems impossible to do 
anything to
cure it, but if it is left alone for a time it presently recovers 
its tone and
will go on working as before. 
Metals show
plainly that they are subject to fatigue. A steel pen will sometimes 
scratch and
write badly when it has been used continually for several hours, but 
the clerk who
understands nature so far, will put the pen aside, instead of 
throwing it
away, and maybe the next day will find it even better than it was at 
first. A barber
often finds his razor refusing to take a keen edge, and it is 
quite
customary for him to say that it is “getting tired” and to put it aside to 
rest. Some
days later that same razor will be in perfect order, keen and sharp 
as ever. 
Railway
engines are known to want regular rest, and after a certain amount of 
work are put
into the shed, and allowed to cool; and so the engine has its rest 
just as
regularly a human being. So we see that fatigue is one of the conditions 
possible to
the mineral kingdom and may be felt by metals as well as by men in 
their
physical bodies. (See Response in the Living and Non-living, by Professor 
J.C. Bose.)
As a matter of fact fatigue is not felt anywhere except in the 
physical
world. 
There are
men, but so far I know only few, who are unusually charged with 
electricity,
and thus produce a special effect upon any metal with which they 
habitually
come into contact. It is said, for example, that such people cause 
quite
considerable deflections of a ship' s compass when they come near it; but 
this is
physical, and hardly occult. 
UNLUCKY SHIPS
A curious
instance of the intervention of the hidden side in the ordinary 
affairs of
life is furnished by the experience of practical men connected with 
such matters,
that certain ships or engines are what is called unlucky-- that 
accident
after accident occurs in connection with them, without any obvious 
negligence to
account for it. Naturally some machines are better made than 
others; some
men are more careful than others; but I am not referring to cases 
into which
either of these factors enters. In some cases where two ships or two 
engines are
precisely similar, and the men who manage them are of equal 
capacity, one
proves always fortunate, or meets with only an average proportion 
of accidents,
while the other is perpetually in trouble for no obvious reason. 
There is no
question at all that this is so, and it offers an interesting 
problem to
the occult student. I am inclined to think that various reasons may 
sometimes
comes into play in producing the results. In one such case at least it 
appeared to
be due to feelings of intense hatred nourished by all the men 
against the
first captain of the vessel, who seems to have been a petty tyrant 
of the most
objectionable description. A large number of men continually cursed 
the captain,
the ship, and all that belonged to her, with all the will-power at 
their
command; and the state of their feeling produced this evil result, that 
disaster
after disaster overtook her. By the time that that captain was removed, 
the ship had
acquired a definite reputation of being unlucky, and so her 
successive
crews have surrounded her with thought-forms to that effect , which 
naturally
enough justify themselves by continuing the series of misfortunes. 
In other
cases I think that ill-feeling directed towards the builder of the 
vessel has
produced similar results. I doubt whether any such directions of evil 
force would
in themselves be sufficient actually to cause serious misfortune. 
But in the
life of every ship there are a great many occasions on which an 
accident is
only just averted by vigilance and promptitude-- in which a single 
moment' s
delay or slackness would be sufficient to precipitate a catastrophe. 
Such a mass
of thought-forms as I have described would be amply sufficient to 
cause that
momentary lack of vigilance or that momentary hesitation; and that 
would be the
easiest line along which its malignity could work. 
STONE USED IN
BUILDING 
In speaking
of our houses I have already mentioned the effect which we are 
constantly
producing upon the walls which surround us and the articles of 
furniture in
our rooms. It obviously follows that stone which has been used for 
a building is
never afterwards in the same condition as the stone which is as 
yet
unquarried. It has been permeated, probably for many years in succession, 
with
influences of a certain kind, and that means that for ever after it is 
capable of
responding to such influences more readily than is the unused stone. 
We are
therefore actually assisting in the evolution of the mineral kingdom when 
we use these
various materials for our buildings. I have already explained how 
the different
influences which we put into them react upon us; so that just as a 
church
radiates devotion, and a prison radiates gloom, so each house in the 
business part
of a city radiates anxiety and effort, too often coupled also with 
weariness and
despair. There are instances in which a knowledge of these facts 
may prove
useful in the prosaic matters of physical life. 
SEA-SICKNESS 
We know, for
example, that many sensitive ladies are often seized with the pangs 
of sickness
as soon as they go on board a vessel, even though the sea may be 
perfectly
smooth and there may be no physical excuse for the sensation. No doubt 
this is
partially auto-suggestion, but most of it comes from outside. Many a 
cabin is so
thoroughly loaded with this suggestion that it requires considerable 
mental force
for a newcomer to resist it; so it is not only the physical 
consideration
of fresh air which makes it desirable for anyone who is likely to 
suffer in
this way to be on deck as much as possible. 
FIFTH SECTION
CONCLUSION 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XXIV 
THE RESULTS
OF THE KNOWLEDGE 
A SUMMARY 
TO know
something of the hidden side of nature makes life far more interesting 
for us;
interesting most of all, naturally, to the clairvoyant who can see it, 
or to the
sensitive who can feel it, but interesting in a less degree even to 
those who
cannot directly see or feel, and equally important to all, because all 
are
influencing and being influenced, even though it be unconsciously to 
themselves so
far as their physical brain is concerned. 
In each case,
as we have considered it, I have tries to indicate the lesson to 
be learnt
from it, but I will summarise the results here. First and foremost we 
learn the
duty of happiness, the necessity of casting away from us depression 
and sorrow,
even under the circumstances which most readily produce it in those 
who do not
know. Yet at the same time we learn that life must be taken 
seriously,
and must be lived not for selfish enjoyment but for the helping of 
our
fellow-men. We see that we must be on our guard against unsuspected 
influences,
such, for example, as the prejudices connected with race, religion, 
or class, and
the weight of public opinion, never allowing these to bias our 
judgment, but
trying always to arrive at the truth and to weigh the facts for 
ourselves;
that we must not yield ourselves unquestioningly even to presumed 
spiritual
inspiration, but in that case also must “try the spirits” and use our 
common sense.
We learn
desirability of systematic work or training; the futility of taking 
offence, of
becoming angry, or of allowing our serenity to be disturbed in any 
way whatever,
and the necessity of maintaining a ceaseless watch over our 
thoughts as
well as our words and actions, lest they should draw round us 
unpleasant
influences and act as temptations to our neighbours. And we see that 
from those
influences which we have mentioned above and from all others which 
are
undesirable, we can readily protect ourselves by the formation of shells, 
though a
better protection still is to be so full of the divine Love, that it is 
always pouring
itself out from us in the shape of love to our fellow-men. 
We learn the
danger of becoming slaves to the alcohol, corpse-eating or tobacco 
habits; we
learn to keep ourselves free from participation in the cruelties 
so-called
sport; we realise that we must be careful of the situation and the 
decoration of
our houses or rooms, avoiding harmful influences and taking care 
always to
flood them with sunlight and fresh air; that our clothing should be 
dictated by
considerations of health and common sense, and not merely by 
fashion; that
those who have the good fortune to be specially in contact with 
children,
should treat them with the uttermost love, gentleness and patience; 
that we
should recognise the brotherhood of all forms of the Divine Life in our 
treatment of
animals and plants; that we should never work unnecessary 
destruction
upon anything, whether it be what we call animate or inanimate, 
since the
occultist knows the Divine Life in everything, and respects it; that 
what we are,
what we think and what we do are even more important in relation to 
their action
upon others than upon ourselves; that we must preserve the 
uttermost
truth in thought and speech, and utter no word that is not true, kind, 
pleasant and
helpful; that every man possesses a certain amount of force and is 
responsible
for making the best use of it. We learn that ignorance of the law is 
not accepted
by Nature as an excuse, because it does not alter the effect of 
what we do;
that evil is but the dark shadow of good, and is always temporary, 
while good is
eternal; and that while, in everything human, good and evil are 
mixed, yet
the powers behind always use to the utmost the good in everything and 
everybody. 
These points
on which I have written are but specimens of a vast host, for to 
everything
there is an unseen side, and to live the life of the occultist is to 
study this
higher, hidden side of Nature, and then intelligently to adapt 
oneself to
it. The occultist looks at the whole of each subject which is brought 
before him,
instead of only at the lowest and least important part of it, and 
then orders
his action according to what he sees, in obedience to the dictates 
of plain
common sense, and to the Law of Love which guides the Universe. Those 
therefore who
would study and practise occultism must develop within themselves 
these three
priceless possessions-- knowledge, common sense and love. 
Such if the
course of action suggested to us by a study of the hidden side of 
things. But
remember that this hidden side will not always remain hidden, for 
every day
more and more of our fellow-men learning to understand, because one by 
one,
scattered here and there, more and more are learning to see it. Since it is 
obvious that
this is the line of evolution and that the few who see now are only 
precursors of
the many who will see hereafter, what in the light of these 
considerations
may be predicted as the probable future of humanity? 
THE FUTURE 
Ingenious
speculation upon this subject is a prominent feature of our modern 
fiction. It
was attempted by Edward Bellamy in Looking Backward, and more 
recently by
Mr. H. G. Wells in a number of quaintly interesting works. The line 
most usually
taken is to pursue to a logical conclusion some of the many 
socialistic theories
which are at present in the air, and to endeavour to 
calculate how
these will work in practice among men as we know them. In one of 
the
pleasantest of these books, In the Days of the Comet, Mr. Wells boldly 
introduces an
entirely new factor-- a change in the constitution of our 
atmosphere
which suddenly inoculates mankind with common sense and fraternal 
feeling. When
that is achieved, naturally many other obvious changes immediately 
follow: war
becomes a ridiculous impossibility, our present social system is 
regarded with
horror and amazement, our business methods are thrown aside as 
unworthy of
human beings, and so on. For this much of common sense we may surely 
presently
hope in real life, though it will probably come much more slowly than 
in Mr. Wells'
story. 
It may be of
interest to see what light is thrown upon the problem of the future 
by the higher
extensions of human consciousness of which we have spoken 
elsewhere. We
find that from this point of view the future divides itself into 
three parts--
the immediate, the remote, and the ultimate; and, oddly enough, it 
is of that
which is furthest from us that we are able to speak with the greatest 
certainty,
because the plan of evolution is visible to the higher sight, and its 
goal is
clear. Nothing can interfere with the attainment of that goal, but the 
stages that
lead up to it may be largely modified by the free-will of the 
individuals
concerned, and can, therefore, be foreseen only in their general 
outline. 
The end, so
far as this cycle is concerned, is the accomplishment of the 
perfection of
man. Each individual is to become something much more than what we 
now mean by a
great and good man, for he is to be perfect in intellect and 
capacity as
well as spirituality. All the intellect of the greatest philosopher 
or man of
science, and far more; all the devotion and spirituality of the 
greatest of
saints, and far more; these are to be the possessions of every unit 
of humanity
before our cycle ends. 
To understand
how such a stupendous result can be possible, we must grasp the 
plan by which
evolution works. Obviously, on the ordinary theory of one poor 
little life
of seventy years, followed by an eternity of purposeless joy or 
suffering,
nothing of this sort could ever be achieved; but when once we realise 
that what we
commonly call our life is only one day in the real life, and that 
we may have
just as many of such days as are necessary for our development, we 
see that the
command of Christ: “Be ye perfect even as your Father in heaven is 
perfect,” is
no vain hyperbole, but a plain direction which we may reasonably 
expect to be
able in due time to obey. 
The ultimate
future, then, is perfection for every human being, no matter how 
low or
undeveloped he may now be. Man will become more than man. This is what 
was meant in
the early Church by the doctrine of ` deification' to which many of 
the Fathers
refer. It is a matter not of pious opinion but of utter certainty to 
those who see
the working of the scheme. 
Obviously,
however, we are yet very far from this attainment; a long upward path 
lies before
us before we can reach that far-distant summit, and though on the 
whole it
rises steadily, there must necessarily be many minor ups and downs in 
the future as
there have been in the past. History shows us that hitherto the 
advancement
mankind has been cyclic in its character. 
Each unit
lives his long series of progressive lives, not in one race but in 
many
successive races, in order that he may learn the special lessons which each 
has to teach.
One can image a soul incarnating in ancient India to develop 
religious
fervour, in classical Greece to gain artistic capacity, in the Rome of 
the Caesars
to learn the immense power of discipline and order, among ourselves 
at the
present day to acquire the scientific habit of mind, and so on. 
The same
great host of souls sweeps on through all ages, animating all the these 
races in
turn, and learning from all; but the races themselves arise, grow, 
decay and
fall as they are needed. So when a nation loses its former glory and 
falls behind
in the race (as, for example, modern Greece seems to have done in 
comparison
with ancient Greece), it does not mean that a certain group of men is 
decadent, but
that there are at the moment no souls who need precisely the type 
of training
which that race at its best used to give, or that that training is 
now being
given elsewhere. 
Consequently,
the physical bodies of the descendants of those great men of old 
are now
animated by souls of a lower type, while the great men themselves are 
now (as ever)
in the forefront of evolution, but incarnated in some other race 
in order to
grow still greater by developing in new directions. A race dies 
precisely as
a class at a university might die if there were no longer any 
students
taking up that particular subject. 
Clairvoyance
enables us to examine a much larger section of the earth' s past 
history than
can be reached along ordinary lines; and this fuller study of the 
past makes it
possible, to some extent, to forecast by analogy some of the steps 
in the more
immediate future. From such a study of the records it appears fairly 
certain that
we are at the moment passing through a transition period, and that 
instead of
representing, as we often fondly imagine, the highest development yet 
seen on
earth, we are in reality in the trough between two waves of progress. 
The
democratic tendency of which some of us are so proud does not represent, as 
is generally
supposed, the ultimate achievement of human wisdom, but is an 
experiment
which was tried thoroughly and carried out to its logical conclusion 
thousands of
years ago, and then abandoned in universal disgust as irrational, 
unworkable,
and leading to endless confusion. If we are to repeat the course of 
that
experiment, it seems unpleasantly certain that we shall have to pass 
through a
good deal of this confusion and suffering once again, before we arrive 
at the stage
of common sense which Mr. Wells so happily describes in the story 
previously
mentioned. 
But when that
madness is over and reason begins to reassert itself, it is 
manifest that
there will be before us a period of far more rapid progress, in 
which we
shall be able to avail ourselves of many aids which are not now at our 
disposal. The
mere fact that the use of the higher faculties is slowly spreading 
among
humanity, will presently make an almost incalculable difference in many 
directions. 
Imagine a
condition in which all deception or fraud will be impossible, in which 
misunderstandings
can no longer occur, because each man can read the thought of 
the other--
in which no one will ever again be set to do work for which he is 
unfitted,
because from the first, parents and tutors will be able to see exactly 
the
capacities of those committed to their care-- in which a doctor cannot make 
mistakes,
because he will see for himself exactly what is the matter with his 
patient, and
can watch in detail the action of his remedies. Think what a 
difference it
will make in our lives when death no longer separates us from 
those whom we
love, because the astral world lies open to us just as does the 
physical;
when it will be impossible for men any longer to doubt the reality of 
the Divine
scheme, because its lower stages are visibly before their eyes. Art 
and music
will be far grander then, for astral colours and harmonies will be at 
our command
as well as those which we now know. 
The problems
of science will be solved, for the vast additions to human 
knowledge
will blend all its branches into one perfect scheme. Geometry and 
mathematics
will be far more satisfactory, because we shall then see what they 
really mean
and what part they play in the splendid system of the worlds. 
Geometry as
we have it now is but a fragment; it is an exoteric preparation for 
the esoteric
reality. Because we have lost the true sense of space, the first 
step towards
that knowledge is the cognition of the fourth dimension. For 
example,
there are five, and only five, possible regular solids-- those which 
are sometimes
called the Platonic Solids; to us, that is an interesting fact and 
no more, but
the student who has been initiated into the Mysteries knows that, 
with a point
at one end of the series and a sphere at the other, they make a set 
of seven
which bears a mystic meaning, explaining the relations one to the other 
of the
different types of matter in the seven planes of our Solar System, and 
the power of
the forces that play through them. Treated only from the physical 
plane,
studied as ends in themselves, instead of as means to an end, geometry 
and
mathematics must always remain incomplete, like beautiful avenues that lead 
nowhere. 
Every feature
of life will be wider and fuller, because we shall see much more 
than we do
now of the beautiful and wonderful world in which our lot is cast; 
understanding
more, we cannot but admire and love more, so we shall be 
infinitely
happier, as we draw steadily nearer to that ultimate perfection which 
is absolute
happiness, because it is union with the Eternal Love. 
-------Cardiff Theosophical Society in Wales-------
206 Newport Road, Cardiff, Wales, UK. CF24-1DL
http://www.theosophywales.org.uk      http://www.theosophycardiff.org 
CHAPTER XXV 
THE WAY TO
SEERSHIP 
I HAVE no
doubt that many people will find it difficult to believe much of what 
I have
written. I sympathise with them, because I realise quite well how 
fantastic
much of it would have appeared to me before I had studied these 
matters or
was able to see them for myself. I know also that, without throwing 
the slightest
imputation upon my good faith, many people will inevitably doubt 
whether I
have seen all these things clearly and reported them exactly. One 
quaint
criticism was offered by a friend, who said: 
“It seems as
though you had written this to justify your own peculiarities, for 
the things
that you recommend here are just those in which you differ from many 
others.” 
The friend
was confusing cause and effect; if I do, or try to do, these various 
things which
I have prescribed, it is just because I have seen with regard to 
them what I
have described in the book. If, however, there are those, as there 
well may be,
who find these things hard to believe, I can only say to them that 
the best way
to get corroboration of any of the Theosophical ideas is to take 
them for
granted and work with them, for then it will soon be found that they 
prove
themselves. 
It is within
the power of every man to develop the faculties by which all this 
has been
seen, nor is there any mystery as to the method by which such 
development
is achieved. These faculties will inevitably come to every one in 
the course of
his evolution, but most men still stand a long way from the point 
at which they
are likely to unfold, though sporadic flashes of clairvoyance are 
by no means
uncommon, and many people have at least a certain amount of 
sensitiveness.
Let me not be
misunderstood when I say that the ordinary man is still far from 
the
probability of possessing these senses. I do not mean because he is not good 
enough, for
it is not a question of goodness at all-- although it is certainly 
true that if
a man of impure or cruel tendency should acquire such faculties he 
would do far
more harm than good with them, to himself and to every one else. I 
mean that the
whole trend of modern life and thought is unfavourable to such 
unfolding,
and that the man who wishes to undertake it must to a great extent 
abstract
himself from the life of the world and get himself into an entirely 
different
atmosphere. 
Such a life
as I have prescribed on this book is precisely that which would put 
a man into a
favourable position for the growth of these faculties; and it is 
not difficult
to see how far from this is the ordinary life of the present day. 
That is why
it seems unhopeful to suggest to the average person that he should 
undertake the
task of opening out these powers. They are unquestionably within 
his reach;
but to get himself into a position from which he could begin a real 
effort
towards them means already much radical alteration in the life which he 
has been
accustomed to live. And then, even when he has gradually eradicated 
from his body
all the poisonous products of flesh, alcohol and tobacco, when he 
has raised
his aspirations from the lower to the higher, when he has cast out 
from himself
all traces of self-consciousness or impurity-- even then the effort 
required is
greater then many men could make. 
The eventual
result is as certain as the working out of a problem in Euclid, but 
the time
occupied may be long, and iron determination and an indomitable will 
are required
for the work; and these are faculties which at present are the 
possession of
but few. Nevertheless “what man has done man can do” if he will; I 
who write
have succeeded in this thing, and I have known others who have 
succeeded;
and all who have gained that prize feel it to be far more than worth 
all the
efforts put forth in the course of its attainment. Let me then conclude 
my book by a
plain statement, made as simply as possible, of what these powers 
are, by means
of which it has been written, why they are desirable, and how they 
may be
acquired. 
A fish is a
denizen of our world, just as a man is; but it is obvious that his 
conception of
that world must be exceedingly imperfect. Confined as he is to his 
one element,
what can he know of the beauty of landscapes, of the glory of 
sunsets, of
the far-reaching interests of our varied and complex human life? He 
lives on a
globe of which he knows almost nothing; yet no doubt he is perfectly 
satisfied,
and thinks that what he knows is all there is to know. 
It is not
flattering to our self-conceit, yet it is an absolute fact, that the 
majority of
mankind are precisely in the position of the fish. They are living 
in a world,
only one small department of which is within their ken; yet they are 
quite content
with that, and are usually blankly ignorant or fiercely 
incredulous
as to the wider and grander life which surrounds them on every side. 
How do we
know of this wider life? Not only by religious revelation, but because 
there are men
who have learnt how to see, not indeed the whole of our world, but 
at least much
more of it than is seen by most people. These are the men whom we 
call seers,
or clairvoyants. 
How do they
see more than others? By the opening of latent faculties-- faculties 
which every
one possesses, but which few as yet know how to use. Every man has 
other
vehicles of matter finer than the physical-- what St. Paul calls a 
“spiritual
body” as well as a “natural body”. Just as through the senses of the 
physical body
we become aware of physical things, so through what may be called 
the senses of
these finer bodies do we become aware of higher things. 
The
advantages of such sight are manifold. For its possessor most of the 
problems of
life are solved; for him it is not a matter of belief but of 
knowledge
that man survives what is called death, that eternal Justice rules the 
world, that
there is no possibility of final failure for anyone, and that, 
however
deceptive appearances may be, in reality all things are working together 
for good. The
man who is a seer can not only learn much more than others; he can 
also be much
more helpful to his fellows than others. 
Since this
seership is so desirable, since it lies latent in every one of us, is 
it possible
for us to develop it ? Certainly it is possible, if we are willing 
to take the
trouble; but for most men it is no light task, for it means 
self-control
and self-denial, perseverance and single-mindedness. Other men have 
done it, so
you can do it; but you cannot do it unless you are prepared to throw 
all your
strength into the effort, with an iron determination to succeed. 
The motive
too, must be pure and good. The man whose enquiry is prompted merely 
by curiosity,
or by an ignoble desire to obtain advantage or wealth for himself, 
will do well
to take warning in time, and leave any sort of occult training 
severely
alone until mental and moral growth are further advanced. For added 
power and
knowledge mean added responsibility, and the higher sight may be a 
curse instead
of a blessing to a man who is not ready for it. 
There are
many ways by which the inner sight may be opened, and most of them are 
full of
danger, and decidedly to be avoided. It may be done by the use of 
certain
drugs, by self-hypnotisation, or by mesmerism; but all these methods may 
bring with
them evil results which far outweigh the gain. There is, however, one 
process which
can by no possibility do harm, and that is the way of 
thought-control
and meditation. I do not say that the undertaking is easy; on 
the contrary,
it is excessively difficult; but I do say that it can be done by 
determined
effort, because it has been done. 
The man who
wishes to attempt this must begin by acquiring control over his 
mind-- a
herculean task in itself. He must learn to concentrate himself upon 
whatever he
may be doing, so that it shall be as well done as is possible for 
him to do it.
He must learn to wield his mind as a skilful fencer wields his 
weapon,
turning it at will in this direction or that, and able to hold it as 
firmly as he
wishes. Try to keep your mind fixed on one definite subject for 
five minutes;
before half the time has passed you will find that wandering 
thoughts have
slipped in unawares, and that the mind has soared far away beyond 
the limits
which you set for it. That means that it is not perfectly under your 
control, and
to remedy this condition of affairs is our first step-- by no means 
an easy one. 
Nothing but
steady practice will give you this power; but fortunately that 
practice can
be had all day long, in business as well as during hours of 
leisure. If
you are writing a letter, keep your mind on that letter, so that it 
may be
written perfectly, clearly, quickly. If you are reading a book, keep your 
mind on that
book, so that you may fully grasp the author' s meaning, and gain 
from it all
that he intended you to gain. 
In addition
to thus practising concentration in the ordinary course of life, it 
will help you
greatly if you set apart a certain time each day for special 
effort along
these lines. Early morning is the most suitable; but, at any rate, 
it should be
at time when you can be sure of being undisturbed, and it should 
always be at
the same hour, for regularity is of the essence of the 
prescription.
Sit down quietly and get your mind perfectly calm; agitation or 
worry of any
sort is absolutely fatal to success. Then turn the mind upon some 
subject
selected beforehand, and consider it attentively and exhaustively, never 
allowing your
thoughts to stray aside from it in the slightest degree, even for 
a moment. Of
course at first they will stray; but each time you must drag them 
back again
and start afresh. You will find it best to take concrete subjects at 
first; it is
only after much practice that the more abstract can profitably be 
considered. 
When through
long habitude all this has become thoroughly familiar to you, when 
you have
attained the power of concentration, and when the mind is well under 
your control,
another step may be taken. Begin now to choose for the subject of 
your morning
meditation the highest ideal that you know. What the ideal is does 
not matter in
the least, for we are dealing now with basic facts and not with 
outer forms.
The Hindu may take Shri Krishna, the Muhammadan, Allah, the Parsi, 
Zoroaster,
the Buddhist, the Lord BUDDHA, and the Christian, the Lord Christ, or 
if he be a
Catholic, perhaps the Blessed Virgin or one of the Saints. It matters 
not at all,
so long as the contemplation of that ideal arouses within the man 
all the
ardour, devotion and reverence of which he is capable. Let him 
contemplate
it with ecstasy, till his soul is filled with its glory and its 
beauty; and
then, putting forth all the strength which his long practice of 
concentration
had given him, let him make a determined effort to raise his 
consciousness
to that ideal, to merge himself in it, to become one with it. 
He may make
that endeavour many times, and yet fail; but if he perseveres, and 
if his
attempt is made in all truth and unselfishness, there will come a time 
when suddenly
he knows that he has succeeded, when the blinding light of the 
higher life
bursts upon him, and he realises that ideal a thousandfold more than 
ever before.
Then he sinks back again into the light of common day; yet that one 
momentary
glimpse can never be forgotten, and even if he goes no further, life 
will never
look the same to him as it did before he saw. 
But if he
persists in his endeavour, that splendid flash of glory will come to 
him again and
yet again, each time staying with him longer and longer, until at 
last he will
find himself able to raise his consciousness to that higher level 
whenever he
wishes-- to observe, to examine and explore that phase of life just 
as he now
does this; and thus he joins the ranks of those who know, instead of 
guessing or
vaguely hoping, and he becomes a power for good in the world. 
END 
 
Return to Searchable Text Index
Searchable Theosophical Texts
Theosophy House

Quick Explanations with Links to More Detailed Info
What is Theosophy ?  Theosophy Defined (More Detail)
Three Fundamental Propositions  Key Concepts of Theosophy
Cosmogenesis  Anthropogenesis  Root Races
Ascended Masters  After Death States
The Seven Principles of Man  Karma
Reincarnation   Helena Petrovna Blavatsky
Colonel Henry Steel Olcott  William Quan Judge
The Start of the Theosophical
Society
History of the Theosophical
Society
Theosophical Society Presidents
History of the Theosophical
Society in Wales
The Three Objectives of the
Theosophical Society
Explanation of the Theosophical
Society Emblem
The Theosophical Order of
Service (TOS)
Glossaries of Theosophical Terms
Index of Searchable
Full Text Versions of 
Definitive
Theosophical Works
H P Blavatsky’s Secret Doctrine 
Isis Unveiled by H P Blavatsky
H P Blavatsky’s Esoteric Glossary
Mahatma Letters to A P Sinnett 1 - 25
A Modern Revival of Ancient Wisdom
(Selection of Articles by H P Blavatsky)
The Secret Doctrine – Volume 3
A compilation of H P Blavatsky’s 
writings published after her death
Esoteric Christianity or the Lesser Mysteries
The Early Teachings of The Masters 
A Collection of Fugitive Fragments
Fundamentals of the Esoteric Philosophy
Obras Teosoficas En Espanol
Theosophische Schriften Auf Deutsch